home *** CD-ROM | disk | FTP | other *** search
Text File | 1996-10-11 | 680.8 KB | 14,787 lines |
-
- SENSE AND SENSIBILITY
-
- by Jane Austen
- (1811)
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER 1
-
-
- The family of Dashwood had long been settled in Sussex.
- Their estate was large, and their residence was at Norland Park,
- in the centre of their property, where, for many generations,
- they had lived in so respectable a manner as to engage
- the general good opinion of their surrounding acquaintance.
- The late owner of this estate was a single man, who lived
- to a very advanced age, and who for many years of his life,
- had a constant companion and housekeeper in his sister.
- But her death, which happened ten years before his own,
- produced a great alteration in his home; for to supply
- her loss, he invited and received into his house the family
- of his nephew Mr. Henry Dashwood, the legal inheritor
- of the Norland estate, and the person to whom he intended
- to bequeath it. In the society of his nephew and niece,
- and their children, the old Gentleman's days were
- comfortably spent. His attachment to them all increased.
- The constant attention of Mr. and Mrs. Henry Dashwood
- to his wishes, which proceeded not merely from interest,
- but from goodness of heart, gave him every degree of solid
- comfort which his age could receive; and the cheerfulness
- of the children added a relish to his existence.
-
- By a former marriage, Mr. Henry Dashwood had one
- son: by his present lady, three daughters. The son,
- a steady respectable young man, was amply provided
- for by the fortune of his mother, which had been large,
- and half of which devolved on him on his coming of age.
- By his own marriage, likewise, which happened soon afterwards,
- he added to his wealth. To him therefore the succession
- to the Norland estate was not so really important as to
- his sisters; for their fortune, independent of what might
- arise to them from their father's inheriting that property,
- could be but small. Their mother had nothing, and their
- father only seven thousand pounds in his own disposal;
- for the remaining moiety of his first wife's fortune was
- also secured to her child, and he had only a life-interest
- in it.
-
- The old gentleman died: his will was read, and
- like almost every other will, gave as much disappointment
- as pleasure. He was neither so unjust, nor so ungrateful,
- as to leave his estate from his nephew;--but he left it to him
- on such terms as destroyed half the value of the bequest.
- Mr. Dashwood had wished for it more for the sake of his
- wife and daughters than for himself or his son;--but to
- his son, and his son's son, a child of four years old,
- it was secured, in such a way, as to leave to himself
- no power of providing for those who were most dear
- to him, and who most needed a provision by any charge
- on the estate, or by any sale of its valuable woods.
- The whole was tied up for the benefit of this child, who,
- in occasional visits with his father and mother at Norland,
- had so far gained on the affections of his uncle,
- by such attractions as are by no means unusual in children
- of two or three years old; an imperfect articulation,
- an earnest desire of having his own way, many cunning tricks,
- and a great deal of noise, as to outweigh all the value
- of all the attention which, for years, he had received
- from his niece and her daughters. He meant not to
- be unkind, however, and, as a mark of his affection
- for the three girls, he left them a thousand pounds a-piece.
-
- Mr. Dashwood's disappointment was, at first, severe;
- but his temper was cheerful and sanguine; and he might
- reasonably hope to live many years, and by living economically,
- lay by a considerable sum from the produce of an estate
- already large, and capable of almost immediate improvement.
- But the fortune, which had been so tardy in coming, was his
- only one twelvemonth. He survived his uncle no longer;
- and ten thousand pounds, including the late legacies,
- was all that remained for his widow and daughters.
-
- His son was sent for as soon as his danger was known,
- and to him Mr. Dashwood recommended, with all the strength
- and urgency which illness could command, the interest
- of his mother-in-law and sisters.
-
- Mr. John Dashwood had not the strong feelings of the
- rest of the family; but he was affected by a recommendation
- of such a nature at such a time, and he promised to do
- every thing in his power to make them comfortable.
- His father was rendered easy by such an assurance,
- and Mr. John Dashwood had then leisure to consider how
- much there might prudently be in his power to do for them.
-
- He was not an ill-disposed young man, unless to
- be rather cold hearted and rather selfish is to be
- ill-disposed: but he was, in general, well respected;
- for he conducted himself with propriety in the discharge
- of his ordinary duties. Had he married a more amiable woman,
- he might have been made still more respectable than he
- was:--he might even have been made amiable himself; for he
- was very young when he married, and very fond of his wife.
- But Mrs. John Dashwood was a strong caricature of himself;--
- more narrow-minded and selfish.
-
- When he gave his promise to his father, he meditated
- within himself to increase the fortunes of his sisters
- by the present of a thousand pounds a-piece. He then
- really thought himself equal to it. The prospect of four
- thousand a-year, in addition to his present income,
- besides the remaining half of his own mother's fortune,
- warmed his heart, and made him feel capable of generosity.--
- "Yes, he would give them three thousand pounds: it would
- be liberal and handsome! It would be enough to make
- them completely easy. Three thousand pounds! he could
- spare so considerable a sum with little inconvenience."--
- He thought of it all day long, and for many days successively,
- and he did not repent.
-
- No sooner was his father's funeral over, than Mrs. John
- Dashwood, without sending any notice of her intention to her
- mother-in-law, arrived with her child and their attendants.
- No one could dispute her right to come; the house was
- her husband's from the moment of his father's decease;
- but the indelicacy of her conduct was so much the greater,
- and to a woman in Mrs. Dashwood's situation, with only
- common feelings, must have been highly unpleasing;--
- but in HER mind there was a sense of honor so keen,
- a generosity so romantic, that any offence of the kind,
- by whomsoever given or received, was to her a source
- of immoveable disgust. Mrs. John Dashwood had never
- been a favourite with any of her husband's family;
- but she had had no opportunity, till the present,
- of shewing them with how little attention to the comfort
- of other people she could act when occasion required it.
-
- So acutely did Mrs. Dashwood feel this ungracious
- behaviour, and so earnestly did she despise her
- daughter-in-law for it, that, on the arrival of the latter,
- she would have quitted the house for ever, had not the
- entreaty of her eldest girl induced her first to reflect
- on the propriety of going, and her own tender love for all
- her three children determined her afterwards to stay,
- and for their sakes avoid a breach with their brother.
-
- Elinor, this eldest daughter, whose advice was
- so effectual, possessed a strength of understanding,
- and coolness of judgment, which qualified her,
- though only nineteen, to be the counsellor of her mother,
- and enabled her frequently to counteract, to the advantage
- of them all, that eagerness of mind in Mrs. Dashwood
- which must generally have led to imprudence. She had
- an excellent heart;--her disposition was affectionate,
- and her feelings were strong; but she knew how to govern
- them: it was a knowledge which her mother had yet to learn;
- and which one of her sisters had resolved never to be taught.
-
- Marianne's abilities were, in many respects,
- quite equal to Elinor's. She was sensible and clever;
- but eager in everything: her sorrows, her joys, could have
- no moderation. She was generous, amiable, interesting: she
- was everything but prudent. The resemblance between
- her and her mother was strikingly great.
-
- Elinor saw, with concern, the excess of her
- sister's sensibility; but by Mrs. Dashwood it was valued
- and cherished. They encouraged each other now in the
- violence of their affliction. The agony of grief
- which overpowered them at first, was voluntarily renewed,
- was sought for, was created again and again. They gave
- themselves up wholly to their sorrow, seeking increase
- of wretchedness in every reflection that could afford it,
- and resolved against ever admitting consolation
- in future. Elinor, too, was deeply afflicted; but still
- she could struggle, she could exert herself. She could
- consult with her brother, could receive her sister-in-law
- on her arrival, and treat her with proper attention;
- and could strive to rouse her mother to similar exertion,
- and encourage her to similar forbearance.
-
- Margaret, the other sister, was a good-humored,
- well-disposed girl; but as she had already imbibed
- a good deal of Marianne's romance, without having
- much of her sense, she did not, at thirteen, bid fair
- to equal her sisters at a more advanced period of life.
-
-
-
- CHAPTER 2
-
-
- Mrs. John Dashwood now installed herself mistress
- of Norland; and her mother and sisters-in-law were degraded
- to the condition of visitors. As such, however, they were
- treated by her with quiet civility; and by her husband
- with as much kindness as he could feel towards anybody
- beyond himself, his wife, and their child. He really
- pressed them, with some earnestness, to consider Norland
- as their home; and, as no plan appeared so eligible
- to Mrs. Dashwood as remaining there till she could
- accommodate herself with a house in the neighbourhood,
- his invitation was accepted.
-
- A continuance in a place where everything reminded
- her of former delight, was exactly what suited her mind.
- In seasons of cheerfulness, no temper could be more cheerful
- than hers, or possess, in a greater degree, that sanguine
- expectation of happiness which is happiness itself.
- But in sorrow she must be equally carried away by her fancy,
- and as far beyond consolation as in pleasure she was
- beyond alloy.
-
- Mrs. John Dashwood did not at all approve of what her
- husband intended to do for his sisters. To take three
- thousand pounds from the fortune of their dear little boy
- would be impoverishing him to the most dreadful degree.
- She begged him to think again on the subject. How could
- he answer it to himself to rob his child, and his only
- child too, of so large a sum? And what possible claim
- could the Miss Dashwoods, who were related to him only by
- half blood, which she considered as no relationship at all,
- have on his generosity to so large an amount. It was very
- well known that no affection was ever supposed to exist
- between the children of any man by different marriages;
- and why was he to ruin himself, and their poor little Harry,
- by giving away all his money to his half sisters?
-
- "It was my father's last request to me," replied
- her husband, "that I should assist his widow and daughters."
-
- "He did not know what he was talking of, I dare say;
- ten to one but he was light-headed at the time.
- Had he been in his right senses, he could not have thought
- of such a thing as begging you to give away half your
- fortune from your own child."
-
- "He did not stipulate for any particular sum,
- my dear Fanny; he only requested me, in general terms,
- to assist them, and make their situation more comfortable
- than it was in his power to do. Perhaps it would
- have been as well if he had left it wholly to myself.
- He could hardly suppose I should neglect them.
- But as he required the promise, I could not do less
- than give it; at least I thought so at the time.
- The promise, therefore, was given, and must be performed.
- Something must be done for them whenever they leave Norland
- and settle in a new home."
-
- "Well, then, LET something be done for them;
- but THAT something need not be three thousand pounds.
- Consider," she added, "that when the money is once
- parted with, it never can return. Your sisters will marry,
- and it will be gone for ever. If, indeed, it could
- be restored to our poor little boy--"
-
- "Why, to be sure," said her husband, very gravely,
- "that would make great difference. The time may come when
- Harry will regret that so large a sum was parted with.
- If he should have a numerous family, for instance, it would
- be a very convenient addition."
-
- "To be sure it would."
-
- "Perhaps, then, it would be better for all parties,
- if the sum were diminished one half.--Five hundred pounds
- would be a prodigious increase to their fortunes!"
-
- "Oh! beyond anything great! What brother on earth
- would do half so much for his sisters, even if REALLY
- his sisters! And as it is--only half blood!--But you
- have such a generous spirit!"
-
- "I would not wish to do any thing mean," he replied.
- "One had rather, on such occasions, do too much than
- too little. No one, at least, can think I have not
- done enough for them: even themselves, they can hardly
- expect more."
-
- "There is no knowing what THEY may expect,"
- said the lady, "but we are not to think of their
- expectations: the question is, what you can afford to do."
-
- "Certainly--and I think I may afford to give them five
- hundred pounds a-piece. As it is, without any addition
- of mine, they will each have about three thousand pounds
- on their mother's death--a very comfortable fortune
- for any young woman."
-
- "To be sure it is; and, indeed, it strikes me that
- they can want no addition at all. They will have ten
- thousand pounds divided amongst them. If they marry,
- they will be sure of doing well, and if they do not,
- they may all live very comfortably together on the interest
- of ten thousand pounds."
-
- "That is very true, and, therefore, I do not know whether,
- upon the whole, it would not be more advisable to do
- something for their mother while she lives, rather than
- for them--something of the annuity kind I mean.--My sisters
- would feel the good effects of it as well as herself.
- A hundred a year would make them all perfectly comfortable."
-
- His wife hesitated a little, however, in giving
- her consent to this plan.
-
- "To be sure," said she, "it is better than parting with
- fifteen hundred pounds at once. But, then, if Mrs. Dashwood
- should live fifteen years we shall be completely taken in."
-
- "Fifteen years! my dear Fanny; her life cannot
- be worth half that purchase."
-
- "Certainly not; but if you observe, people always
- live for ever when there is an annuity to be paid them;
- and she is very stout and healthy, and hardly forty.
- An annuity is a very serious business; it comes over
- and over every year, and there is no getting rid
- of it. You are not aware of what you are doing.
- I have known a great deal of the trouble of annuities;
- for my mother was clogged with the payment of three
- to old superannuated servants by my father's will,
- and it is amazing how disagreeable she found it.
- Twice every year these annuities were to be paid; and then
- there was the trouble of getting it to them; and then one
- of them was said to have died, and afterwards it turned
- out to be no such thing. My mother was quite sick of it.
- Her income was not her own, she said, with such perpetual
- claims on it; and it was the more unkind in my father,
- because, otherwise, the money would have been entirely at
- my mother's disposal, without any restriction whatever.
- It has given me such an abhorrence of annuities, that I am
- sure I would not pin myself down to the payment of one for
- all the world."
-
- "It is certainly an unpleasant thing," replied Mr. Dashwood,
- "to have those kind of yearly drains on one's income.
- One's fortune, as your mother justly says, is NOT one's own.
- To be tied down to the regular payment of such a sum,
- on every rent day, is by no means desirable: it takes away
- one's independence."
-
- "Undoubtedly; and after all you have no thanks for it.
- They think themselves secure, you do no more than what
- is expected, and it raises no gratitude at all. If I were you,
- whatever I did should be done at my own discretion entirely.
- I would not bind myself to allow them any thing yearly.
- It may be very inconvenient some years to spare a hundred,
- or even fifty pounds from our own expenses."
-
- "I believe you are right, my love; it will be better
- that there should by no annuity in the case; whatever I
- may give them occasionally will be of far greater assistance
- than a yearly allowance, because they would only enlarge
- their style of living if they felt sure of a larger income,
- and would not be sixpence the richer for it at the end
- of the year. It will certainly be much the best way.
- A present of fifty pounds, now and then, will prevent
- their ever being distressed for money, and will, I think,
- be amply discharging my promise to my father."
-
- "To be sure it will. Indeed, to say the truth,
- I am convinced within myself that your father had no idea
- of your giving them any money at all. The assistance
- he thought of, I dare say, was only such as might be
- reasonably expected of you; for instance, such as looking
- out for a comfortable small house for them, helping them
- to move their things, and sending them presents of fish
- and game, and so forth, whenever they are in season.
- I'll lay my life that he meant nothing farther; indeed,
- it would be very strange and unreasonable if he did.
- Do but consider, my dear Mr. Dashwood, how excessively
- comfortable your mother-in-law and her daughters may live
- on the interest of seven thousand pounds, besides the
- thousand pounds belonging to each of the girls, which brings
- them in fifty pounds a year a-piece, and, of course,
- they will pay their mother for their board out of it.
- Altogether, they will have five hundred a-year amongst them,
- and what on earth can four women want for more than
- that?--They will live so cheap! Their housekeeping will
- be nothing at all. They will have no carriage, no horses,
- and hardly any servants; they will keep no company,
- and can have no expenses of any kind! Only conceive
- how comfortable they will be! Five hundred a year! I am
- sure I cannot imagine how they will spend half of it;
- and as to your giving them more, it is quite absurd to think
- of it. They will be much more able to give YOU something."
-
- "Upon my word," said Mr. Dashwood, "I believe you
- are perfectly right. My father certainly could mean
- nothing more by his request to me than what you say.
- I clearly understand it now, and I will strictly fulfil
- my engagement by such acts of assistance and kindness
- to them as you have described. When my mother removes
- into another house my services shall be readily given
- to accommodate her as far as I can. Some little present
- of furniture too may be acceptable then."
-
- "Certainly," returned Mrs. John Dashwood. "But, however,
- ONE thing must be considered. When your father and mother
- moved to Norland, though the furniture of Stanhill
- was sold, all the china, plate, and linen was saved,
- and is now left to your mother. Her house will therefore
- be almost completely fitted up as soon as she takes it."
-
- "That is a material consideration undoubtedly.
- A valuable legacy indeed! And yet some of the plate would
- have been a very pleasant addition to our own stock here."
-
- "Yes; and the set of breakfast china is twice
- as handsome as what belongs to this house. A great
- deal too handsome, in my opinion, for any place THEY
- can ever afford to live in. But, however, so it is.
- Your father thought only of THEM. And I must say this:
- that you owe no particular gratitude to him, nor attention
- to his wishes; for we very well know that if he could,
- he would have left almost everything in the world to THEM."
-
- This argument was irresistible. It gave to his
- intentions whatever of decision was wanting before; and he
- finally resolved, that it would be absolutely unnecessary,
- if not highly indecorous, to do more for the widow
- and children of his father, than such kind of neighbourly
- acts as his own wife pointed out.
-
-
-
- CHAPTER 3
-
-
- Mrs. Dashwood remained at Norland several months;
- not from any disinclination to move when the sight of every
- well known spot ceased to raise the violent emotion which it
- produced for a while; for when her spirits began to revive,
- and her mind became capable of some other exertion than that
- of heightening its affliction by melancholy remembrances,
- she was impatient to be gone, and indefatigable in her inquiries
- for a suitable dwelling in the neighbourhood of Norland;
- for to remove far from that beloved spot was impossible.
- But she could hear of no situation that at once answered
- her notions of comfort and ease, and suited the prudence
- of her eldest daughter, whose steadier judgment rejected
- several houses as too large for their income, which her
- mother would have approved.
-
- Mrs. Dashwood had been informed by her husband of the
- solemn promise on the part of his son in their favour,
- which gave comfort to his last earthly reflections.
- She doubted the sincerity of this assurance no more than he
- had doubted it himself, and she thought of it for her daughters'
- sake with satisfaction, though as for herself she was
- persuaded that a much smaller provision than 7000L would
- support her in affluence. For their brother's sake, too,
- for the sake of his own heart, she rejoiced; and she
- reproached herself for being unjust to his merit before,
- in believing him incapable of generosity. His attentive
- behaviour to herself and his sisters convinced her that
- their welfare was dear to him, and, for a long time,
- she firmly relied on the liberality of his intentions.
-
- The contempt which she had, very early in their acquaintance,
- felt for her daughter-in-law, was very much increased
- by the farther knowledge of her character, which half
- a year's residence in her family afforded; and perhaps
- in spite of every consideration of politeness or maternal
- affection on the side of the former, the two ladies might
- have found it impossible to have lived together so long,
- had not a particular circumstance occurred to give
- still greater eligibility, according to the opinions
- of Mrs. Dashwood, to her daughters' continuance at Norland.
-
- This circumstance was a growing attachment between
- her eldest girl and the brother of Mrs. John Dashwood,
- a gentleman-like and pleasing young man, who was introduced
- to their acquaintance soon after his sister's establishment
- at Norland, and who had since spent the greatest part
- of his time there.
-
- Some mothers might have encouraged the intimacy from
- motives of interest, for Edward Ferrars was the eldest son
- of a man who had died very rich; and some might have repressed
- it from motives of prudence, for, except a trifling sum,
- the whole of his fortune depended on the will of his mother.
- But Mrs. Dashwood was alike uninfluenced by either consideration.
- It was enough for her that he appeared to be amiable,
- that he loved her daughter, and that Elinor returned
- the partiality. It was contrary to every doctrine of
- her's that difference of fortune should keep any couple
- asunder who were attracted by resemblance of disposition;
- and that Elinor's merit should not be acknowledged
- by every one who knew her, was to her comprehension impossible.
-
- Edward Ferrars was not recommended to their good
- opinion by any peculiar graces of person or address.
- He was not handsome, and his manners required intimacy
- to make them pleasing. He was too diffident to do justice
- to himself; but when his natural shyness was overcome,
- his behaviour gave every indication of an open,
- affectionate heart. His understanding was good,
- and his education had given it solid improvement.
- But he was neither fitted by abilities nor disposition
- to answer the wishes of his mother and sister, who longed
- to see him distinguished--as--they hardly knew what.
- They wanted him to make a fine figure in the world in some
- manner or other. His mother wished to interest him in
- political concerns, to get him into parliament, or to see
- him connected with some of the great men of the day.
- Mrs. John Dashwood wished it likewise; but in the mean while,
- till one of these superior blessings could be attained, it would
- have quieted her ambition to see him driving a barouche.
- But Edward had no turn for great men or barouches.
- All his wishes centered in domestic comfort and the quiet
- of private life. Fortunately he had a younger brother
- who was more promising.
-
- Edward had been staying several weeks in the house
- before he engaged much of Mrs. Dashwood's attention;
- for she was, at that time, in such affliction as rendered
- her careless of surrounding objects. She saw only that he
- was quiet and unobtrusive, and she liked him for it.
- He did not disturb the wretchedness of her mind by
- ill-timed conversation. She was first called to observe
- and approve him farther, by a reflection which Elinor
- chanced one day to make on the difference between him
- and his sister. It was a contrast which recommended him
- most forcibly to her mother.
-
- "It is enough," said she; "to say that he is unlike
- Fanny is enough. It implies everything amiable.
- I love him already."
-
- "I think you will like him," said Elinor, "when you
- know more of him."
-
- "Like him!" replied her mother with a smile.
- "I feel no sentiment of approbation inferior to love."
-
- "You may esteem him."
-
- "I have never yet known what it was to separate
- esteem and love."
-
- Mrs. Dashwood now took pains to get acquainted with him.
- Her manners were attaching, and soon banished his reserve.
- She speedily comprehended all his merits; the persuasion
- of his regard for Elinor perhaps assisted her penetration;
- but she really felt assured of his worth: and even that
- quietness of manner, which militated against all her
- established ideas of what a young man's address ought to be,
- was no longer uninteresting when she knew his heart to be
- warm and his temper affectionate.
-
- No sooner did she perceive any symptom of love
- in his behaviour to Elinor, than she considered their
- serious attachment as certain, and looked forward
- to their marriage as rapidly approaching.
-
- "In a few months, my dear Marianne." said she,
- "Elinor will, in all probability be settled for life.
- We shall miss her; but SHE will be happy."
-
- "Oh! Mamma, how shall we do without her?"
-
- "My love, it will be scarcely a separation.
- We shall live within a few miles of each other, and shall
- meet every day of our lives. You will gain a brother,
- a real, affectionate brother. I have the highest opinion
- in the world of Edward's heart. But you look grave,
- Marianne; do you disapprove your sister's choice?"
-
- "Perhaps," said Marianne, "I may consider it
- with some surprise. Edward is very amiable, and I love
- him tenderly. But yet--he is not the kind of young
- man--there is something wanting--his figure is not striking;
- it has none of that grace which I should expect
- in the man who could seriously attach my sister.
- His eyes want all that spirit, that fire, which at once
- announce virtue and intelligence. And besides all this,
- I am afraid, Mamma, he has no real taste. Music seems
- scarcely to attract him, and though he admires Elinor's
- drawings very much, it is not the admiration of a person
- who can understand their worth. It is evident, in spite of
- his frequent attention to her while she draws, that in fact
- he knows nothing of the matter. He admires as a lover,
- not as a connoisseur. To satisfy me, those characters
- must be united. I could not be happy with a man whose
- taste did not in every point coincide with my own.
- He must enter into all my feelings; the same books,
- the same music must charm us both. Oh! mama, how spiritless,
- how tame was Edward's manner in reading to us last night!
- I felt for my sister most severely. Yet she bore it
- with so much composure, she seemed scarcely to notice it.
- I could hardly keep my seat. To hear those beautiful lines
- which have frequently almost driven me wild, pronounced
- with such impenetrable calmness, such dreadful indifference!"--
-
- "He would certainly have done more justice to
- simple and elegant prose. I thought so at the time;
- but you WOULD give him Cowper."
-
- "Nay, Mamma, if he is not to be animated by Cowper!--
- but we must allow for difference of taste. Elinor has
- not my feelings, and therefore she may overlook it, and
- be happy with him. But it would have broke MY heart,
- had I loved him, to hear him read with so little sensibility.
- Mama, the more I know of the world, the more am I convinced
- that I shall never see a man whom I can really love.
- I require so much! He must have all Edward's virtues,
- and his person and manners must ornament his goodness
- with every possible charm."
-
- "Remember, my love, that you are not seventeen.
- It is yet too early in life to despair of such a happiness.
- Why should you be less fortunate than your mother? In
- one circumstance only, my Marianne, may your destiny be
- different from her's!"
-
-
-
- CHAPTER 4
-
-
- "What a pity it is, Elinor," said Marianne,
- "that Edward should have no taste for drawing."
-
- "No taste for drawing!" replied Elinor, "why should
- you think so? He does not draw himself, indeed, but he has
- great pleasure in seeing the performances of other people,
- and I assure you he is by no means deficient in natural taste,
- though he has not had opportunities of improving it.
- Had he ever been in the way of learning, I think he would
- have drawn very well. He distrusts his own judgment
- in such matters so much, that he is always unwilling
- to give his opinion on any picture; but he has an innate
- propriety and simplicity of taste, which in general
- direct him perfectly right."
-
- Marianne was afraid of offending, and said no more
- on the subject; but the kind of approbation which Elinor
- described as excited in him by the drawings of other
- people, was very far from that rapturous delight, which,
- in her opinion, could alone be called taste. Yet, though
- smiling within herself at the mistake, she honoured
- her sister for that blind partiality to Edward which produced it.
-
- "I hope, Marianne," continued Elinor, "you do not
- consider him as deficient in general taste. Indeed, I think
- I may say that you cannot, for your behaviour to him
- is perfectly cordial, and if THAT were your opinion,
- I am sure you could never be civil to him."
-
- Marianne hardly knew what to say. She would
- not wound the feelings of her sister on any account,
- and yet to say what she did not believe was impossible.
- At length she replied:
-
- "Do not be offended, Elinor, if my praise of him
- is not in every thing equal to your sense of his merits.
- I have not had so many opportunities of estimating the minuter
- propensities of his mind, his inclinations and tastes,
- as you have; but I have the highest opinion in the world
- of his goodness and sense. I think him every thing that is
- worthy and amiable."
-
- "I am sure," replied Elinor, with a smile,
- "that his dearest friends could not be dissatisfied
- with such commendation as that. I do not perceive
- how you could express yourself more warmly."
-
- Marianne was rejoiced to find her sister so easily pleased.
-
- "Of his sense and his goodness," continued Elinor,
- "no one can, I think, be in doubt, who has seen him
- often enough to engage him in unreserved conversation.
- The excellence of his understanding and his principles
- can be concealed only by that shyness which too often
- keeps him silent. You know enough of him to do justice
- to his solid worth. But of his minuter propensities,
- as you call them you have from peculiar circumstances
- been kept more ignorant than myself. He and I have
- been at times thrown a good deal together, while you
- have been wholly engrossed on the most affectionate
- principle by my mother. I have seen a great deal of him,
- have studied his sentiments and heard his opinion on
- subjects of literature and taste; and, upon the whole,
- I venture to pronounce that his mind is well-informed,
- enjoyment of books exceedingly great, his imagination lively,
- his observation just and correct, and his taste delicate
- and pure. His abilities in every respect improve
- as much upon acquaintance as his manners and person.
- At first sight, his address is certainly not striking;
- and his person can hardly be called handsome, till the
- expression of his eyes, which are uncommonly good,
- and the general sweetness of his countenance, is perceived.
- At present, I know him so well, that I think him
- really handsome; or at least, almost so. What say you,
- Marianne?"
-
- "I shall very soon think him handsome, Elinor, if I
- do not now. When you tell me to love him as a brother,
- I shall no more see imperfection in his face, than I now do
- in his heart."
-
- Elinor started at this declaration, and was sorry for
- the warmth she had been betrayed into, in speaking of him.
- She felt that Edward stood very high in her opinion.
- She believed the regard to be mutual; but she required
- greater certainty of it to make Marianne's conviction
- of their attachment agreeable to her. She knew that
- what Marianne and her mother conjectured one moment,
- they believed the next--that with them, to wish was to hope,
- and to hope was to expect. She tried to explain the real
- state of the case to her sister.
-
- "I do not attempt to deny," said she, "that I think
- very highly of him--that I greatly esteem, that I like him."
-
- Marianne here burst forth with indignation--
-
- "Esteem him! Like him! Cold-hearted Elinor! Oh!
- worse than cold-hearted! Ashamed of being otherwise.
- Use those words again, and I will leave the room this moment."
-
- Elinor could not help laughing. "Excuse me,"
- said she; "and be assured that I meant no offence to you,
- by speaking, in so quiet a way, of my own feelings.
- Believe them to be stronger than I have declared;
- believe them, in short, to be such as his merit, and the
- suspicion--the hope of his affection for me may warrant,
- without imprudence or folly. But farther than this you must
- not believe. I am by no means assured of his regard for me.
- There are moments when the extent of it seems doubtful;
- and till his sentiments are fully known, you cannot wonder
- at my wishing to avoid any encouragement of my own partiality,
- by believing or calling it more than it is. In my heart
- I feel little--scarcely any doubt of his preference.
- But there are other points to be considered besides
- his inclination. He is very far from being independent.
- What his mother really is we cannot know; but, from Fanny's
- occasional mention of her conduct and opinions, we have
- never been disposed to think her amiable; and I am very
- much mistaken if Edward is not himself aware that there
- would be many difficulties in his way, if he were to wish
- to marry a woman who had not either a great fortune or
- high rank."
-
- Marianne was astonished to find how much the imagination
- of her mother and herself had outstripped the truth.
-
- "And you really are not engaged to him!" said she.
- "Yet it certainly soon will happen. But two advantages
- will proceed from this delay. I shall not lose you so soon,
- and Edward will have greater opportunity of improving
- that natural taste for your favourite pursuit which must
- be so indispensably necessary to your future felicity.
- Oh! if he should be so far stimulated by your genius as to
- learn to draw himself, how delightful it would be!"
-
- Elinor had given her real opinion to her sister.
- She could not consider her partiality for Edward
- in so prosperous a state as Marianne had believed it.
- There was, at times, a want of spirits about him which,
- if it did not denote indifference, spoke a something almost
- as unpromising. A doubt of her regard, supposing him
- to feel it, need not give him more than inquietude.
- It would not be likely to produce that dejection of mind
- which frequently attended him. A more reasonable cause
- might be found in the dependent situation which forbad
- the indulgence of his affection. She knew that his mother
- neither behaved to him so as to make his home comfortable
- at present, nor to give him any assurance that he might form
- a home for himself, without strictly attending to her views
- for his aggrandizement. With such a knowledge as this,
- it was impossible for Elinor to feel easy on the subject.
- She was far from depending on that result of his preference
- of her, which her mother and sister still considered
- as certain. Nay, the longer they were together the more
- doubtful seemed the nature of his regard; and sometimes,
- for a few painful minutes, she believed it to be no more
- than friendship.
-
- But, whatever might really be its limits, it was enough,
- when perceived by his sister, to make her uneasy,
- and at the same time, (which was still more common,)
- to make her uncivil. She took the first opportunity of
- affronting her mother-in-law on the occasion, talking to
- her so expressively of her brother's great expectations,
- of Mrs. Ferrars's resolution that both her sons should
- marry well, and of the danger attending any young woman
- who attempted to DRAW HIM IN; that Mrs. Dashwood could
- neither pretend to be unconscious, nor endeavor to be calm.
- She gave her an answer which marked her contempt,
- and instantly left the room, resolving that, whatever might
- be the inconvenience or expense of so sudden a removal,
- her beloved Elinor should not be exposed another week
- to such insinuations.
-
- In this state of her spirits, a letter was delivered
- to her from the post, which contained a proposal
- particularly well timed. It was the offer of a small house,
- on very easy terms, belonging to a relation of her own,
- a gentleman of consequence and property in Devonshire.
- The letter was from this gentleman himself, and written
- in the true spirit of friendly accommodation.
- He understood that she was in need of a dwelling;
- and though the house he now offered her was merely a cottage,
- he assured her that everything should be done to it which
- she might think necessary, if the situation pleased her.
- He earnestly pressed her, after giving the particulars
- of the house and garden, to come with her daughters to
- Barton Park, the place of his own residence, from whence
- she might judge, herself, whether Barton Cottage, for the
- houses were in the same parish, could, by any alteration,
- be made comfortable to her. He seemed really anxious to
- accommodate them and the whole of his letter was written
- in so friendly a style as could not fail of giving pleasure
- to his cousin; more especially at a moment when she was
- suffering under the cold and unfeeling behaviour of her
- nearer connections. She needed no time for deliberation
- or inquiry. Her resolution was formed as she read.
- The situation of Barton, in a county so far distant from
- Sussex as Devonshire, which, but a few hours before,
- would have been a sufficient objection to outweigh every
- possible advantage belonging to the place, was now its
- first recommendation. To quit the neighbourhood of Norland
- was no longer an evil; it was an object of desire;
- it was a blessing, in comparison of the misery of continuing
- her daughter-in-law's guest; and to remove for ever
- from that beloved place would be less painful than to
- inhabit or visit it while such a woman was its mistress.
- She instantly wrote Sir John Middleton her acknowledgment
- of his kindness, and her acceptance of his proposal;
- and then hastened to shew both letters to her daughters,
- that she might be secure of their approbation before her
- answer were sent.
-
- Elinor had always thought it would be more prudent
- for them to settle at some distance from Norland,
- than immediately amongst their present acquaintance.
- On THAT head, therefore, it was not for her to oppose
- her mother's intention of removing into Devonshire.
- The house, too, as described by Sir John, was on so
- simple a scale, and the rent so uncommonly moderate,
- as to leave her no right of objection on either point;
- and, therefore, though it was not a plan which brought
- any charm to her fancy, though it was a removal from
- the vicinity of Norland beyond her wishes, she made
- no attempt to dissuade her mother from sending a letter
- of acquiescence.
-
-
-
- CHAPTER 5
-
-
- No sooner was her answer dispatched, than Mrs. Dashwood
- indulged herself in the pleasure of announcing to her
- son-in-law and his wife that she was provided with a house,
- and should incommode them no longer than till every thing were
- ready for her inhabiting it. They heard her with surprise.
- Mrs. John Dashwood said nothing; but her husband civilly
- hoped that she would not be settled far from Norland.
- She had great satisfaction in replying that she was going
- into Devonshire.--Edward turned hastily towards her,
- on hearing this, and, in a voice of surprise and concern,
- which required no explanation to her, repeated,
- "Devonshire! Are you, indeed, going there? So far from hence!
- And to what part of it?" She explained the situation.
- It was within four miles northward of Exeter.
-
- "It is but a cottage," she continued, "but I hope
- to see many of my friends in it. A room or two can
- easily be added; and if my friends find no difficulty
- in travelling so far to see me, I am sure I will find
- none in accommodating them."
-
- She concluded with a very kind invitation to
- Mr. and Mrs. John Dashwood to visit her at Barton;
- and to Edward she gave one with still greater affection.
- Though her late conversation with her daughter-in-law had
- made her resolve on remaining at Norland no longer than
- was unavoidable, it had not produced the smallest effect
- on her in that point to which it principally tended.
- To separate Edward and Elinor was as far from being her
- object as ever; and she wished to show Mrs. John Dashwood,
- by this pointed invitation to her brother, how totally she
- disregarded her disapprobation of the match.
-
- Mr. John Dashwood told his mother again and again
- how exceedingly sorry he was that she had taken a house at
- such a distance from Norland as to prevent his being of any
- service to her in removing her furniture. He really felt
- conscientiously vexed on the occasion; for the very exertion
- to which he had limited the performance of his promise to
- his father was by this arrangement rendered impracticable.--
- The furniture was all sent around by water. It chiefly
- consisted of household linen, plate, china, and books,
- with a handsome pianoforte of Marianne's. Mrs. John
- Dashwood saw the packages depart with a sigh: she could
- not help feeling it hard that as Mrs. Dashwood's income
- would be so trifling in comparison with their own,
- she should have any handsome article of furniture.
-
- Mrs. Dashwood took the house for a twelvemonth; it was
- ready furnished, and she might have immediate possession.
- No difficulty arose on either side in the agreement; and she
- waited only for the disposal of her effects at Norland,
- and to determine her future household, before she set
- off for the west; and this, as she was exceedingly rapid
- in the performance of everything that interested her,
- was soon done.--The horses which were left her by her husband
- had been sold soon after his death, and an opportunity
- now offering of disposing of her carriage, she agreed
- to sell that likewise at the earnest advice of her
- eldest daughter. For the comfort of her children, had she
- consulted only her own wishes, she would have kept it;
- but the discretion of Elinor prevailed. HER wisdom
- too limited the number of their servants to three;
- two maids and a man, with whom they were speedily provided
- from amongst those who had formed their establishment
- at Norland.
-
- The man and one of the maids were sent off immediately
- into Devonshire, to prepare the house for their mistress's
- arrival; for as Lady Middleton was entirely unknown
- to Mrs. Dashwood, she preferred going directly to the
- cottage to being a visitor at Barton Park; and she relied
- so undoubtingly on Sir John's description of the house,
- as to feel no curiosity to examine it herself till she
- entered it as her own. Her eagerness to be gone from Norland
- was preserved from diminution by the evident satisfaction
- of her daughter-in-law in the prospect of her removal;
- a satisfaction which was but feebly attempted to be concealed
- under a cold invitation to her to defer her departure.
- Now was the time when her son-in-law's promise to his
- father might with particular propriety be fulfilled.
- Since he had neglected to do it on first coming to
- the estate, their quitting his house might be looked
- on as the most suitable period for its accomplishment.
- But Mrs. Dashwood began shortly to give over every
- hope of the kind, and to be convinced, from the general
- drift of his discourse, that his assistance extended no
- farther than their maintenance for six months at Norland.
- He so frequently talked of the increasing expenses
- of housekeeping, and of the perpetual demands upon his purse,
- which a man of any consequence in the world was beyond
- calculation exposed to, that he seemed rather to stand
- in need of more money himself than to have any design of
- giving money away.
-
- In a very few weeks from the day which brought Sir
- John Middleton's first letter to Norland, every thing was
- so far settled in their future abode as to enable
- Mrs. Dashwood and her daughters to begin their journey.
-
- Many were the tears shed by them in their last
- adieus to a place so much beloved. "Dear, dear Norland!"
- said Marianne, as she wandered alone before the house,
- on the last evening of their being there; "when shall I cease
- to regret you!--when learn to feel a home elsewhere!--Oh!
- happy house, could you know what I suffer in now viewing
- you from this spot, from whence perhaps I may view
- you no more!--And you, ye well-known trees!--but you
- will continue the same.--No leaf will decay because we
- are removed, nor any branch become motionless although we
- can observe you no longer!--No; you will continue the same;
- unconscious of the pleasure or the regret you occasion,
- and insensible of any change in those who walk under your
- shade!--But who will remain to enjoy you?"
-
-
-
- CHAPTER 6
-
-
- The first part of their journey was performed in too
- melancholy a disposition to be otherwise than tedious
- and unpleasant. But as they drew towards the end of it,
- their interest in the appearance of a country which they
- were to inhabit overcame their dejection, and a view of
- Barton Valley as they entered it gave them cheerfulness.
- It was a pleasant fertile spot, well wooded, and rich
- in pasture. After winding along it for more than a mile,
- they reached their own house. A small green court was
- the whole of its demesne in front; and a neat wicket gate
- admitted them into it.
-
- As a house, Barton Cottage, though small, was comfortable
- and compact; but as a cottage it was defective, for the
- building was regular, the roof was tiled, the window
- shutters were not painted green, nor were the walls covered
- with honeysuckles. A narrow passage led directly through
- the house into the garden behind. On each side of the
- entrance was a sitting room, about sixteen feet square;
- and beyond them were the offices and the stairs.
- Four bed-rooms and two garrets formed the rest of the house.
- It had not been built many years and was in good repair.
- In comparison of Norland, it was poor and small indeed!--but
- the tears which recollection called forth as they entered
- the house were soon dried away. They were cheered
- by the joy of the servants on their arrival, and each
- for the sake of the others resolved to appear happy.
- It was very early in September; the season was fine,
- and from first seeing the place under the advantage
- of good weather, they received an impression in its
- favour which was of material service in recommending
- it to their lasting approbation.
-
- The situation of the house was good. High hills rose
- immediately behind, and at no great distance on each side;
- some of which were open downs, the others cultivated and woody.
- The village of Barton was chiefly on one of these hills,
- and formed a pleasant view from the cottage windows.
- The prospect in front was more extensive; it commanded the
- whole of the valley, and reached into the country beyond.
- The hills which surrounded the cottage terminated
- the valley in that direction; under another name,
- and in another course, it branched out again between two
- of the steepest of them.
-
- With the size and furniture of the house Mrs. Dashwood
- was upon the whole well satisfied; for though her former
- style of life rendered many additions to the latter
- indispensable, yet to add and improve was a delight to her;
- and she had at this time ready money enough to supply all
- that was wanted of greater elegance to the apartments.
- "As for the house itself, to be sure," said she, "it is
- too small for our family, but we will make ourselves
- tolerably comfortable for the present, as it is too late
- in the year for improvements. Perhaps in the spring,
- if I have plenty of money, as I dare say I shall, we may
- think about building. These parlors are both too small
- for such parties of our friends as I hope to see often
- collected here; and I have some thoughts of throwing the
- passage into one of them with perhaps a part of the other,
- and so leave the remainder of that other for an entrance;
- this, with a new drawing room which may be easily added,
- and a bed-chamber and garret above, will make it a very snug
- little cottage. I could wish the stairs were handsome.
- But one must not expect every thing; though I suppose it
- would be no difficult matter to widen them. I shall see
- how much I am before-hand with the world in the spring,
- and we will plan our improvements accordingly."
-
- In the mean time, till all these alterations could
- be made from the savings of an income of five hundred
- a-year by a woman who never saved in her life, they were
- wise enough to be contented with the house as it was;
- and each of them was busy in arranging their particular
- concerns, and endeavoring, by placing around them books
- and other possessions, to form themselves a home.
- Marianne's pianoforte was unpacked and properly disposed of;
- and Elinor's drawings were affixed to the walls of their
- sitting room.
-
- In such employments as these they were interrupted
- soon after breakfast the next day by the entrance of
- their landlord, who called to welcome them to Barton,
- and to offer them every accommodation from his own house
- and garden in which theirs might at present be deficient.
- Sir John Middleton was a good looking man about forty.
- He had formerly visited at Stanhill, but it was too long
- for his young cousins to remember him. His countenance
- was thoroughly good-humoured; and his manners were
- as friendly as the style of his letter. Their arrival
- seemed to afford him real satisfaction, and their comfort
- to be an object of real solicitude to him. He said much
- of his earnest desire of their living in the most sociable
- terms with his family, and pressed them so cordially
- to dine at Barton Park every day till they were better
- settled at home, that, though his entreaties were carried
- to a point of perseverance beyond civility, they could
- not give offence. His kindness was not confined to words;
- for within an hour after he left them, a large basket
- full of garden stuff and fruit arrived from the park,
- which was followed before the end of the day by a present
- of game. He insisted, moreover, on conveying all their
- letters to and from the post for them, and would not be
- denied the satisfaction of sending them his newspaper
- every day.
-
- Lady Middleton had sent a very civil message by him,
- denoting her intention of waiting on Mrs. Dashwood as soon as
- she could be assured that her visit would be no inconvenience;
- and as this message was answered by an invitation
- equally polite, her ladyship was introduced to them the next day.
-
- They were, of course, very anxious to see a person on
- whom so much of their comfort at Barton must depend; and the
- elegance of her appearance was favourable to their wishes.
- Lady Middleton was not more than six or seven and twenty;
- her face was handsome, her figure tall and striking,
- and her address graceful. Her manners had all the elegance
- which her husband's wanted. But they would have been
- improved by some share of his frankness and warmth;
- and her visit was long enough to detract something from
- their first admiration, by shewing that, though perfectly
- well-bred, she was reserved, cold, and had nothing to say
- for herself beyond the most common-place inquiry or remark.
-
- Conversation however was not wanted, for Sir John
- was very chatty, and Lady Middleton had taken the wise
- precaution of bringing with her their eldest child, a fine
- little boy about six years old, by which means there was
- one subject always to be recurred to by the ladies in case
- of extremity, for they had to enquire his name and age,
- admire his beauty, and ask him questions which his mother
- answered for him, while he hung about her and held
- down his head, to the great surprise of her ladyship,
- who wondered at his being so shy before company, as he
- could make noise enough at home. On every formal visit
- a child ought to be of the party, by way of provision
- for discourse. In the present case it took up ten minutes
- to determine whether the boy were most like his father
- or mother, and in what particular he resembled either,
- for of course every body differed, and every body was
- astonished at the opinion of the others.
-
- An opportunity was soon to be given to the Dashwoods
- of debating on the rest of the children, as Sir John
- would not leave the house without securing their promise
- of dining at the park the next day.
-
-
-
- CHAPTER 7
-
-
- Barton Park was about half a mile from the cottage.
- The ladies had passed near it in their way along the valley,
- but it was screened from their view at home by the
- projection of a hill. The house was large and handsome;
- and the Middletons lived in a style of equal hospitality
- and elegance. The former was for Sir John's gratification,
- the latter for that of his lady. They were scarcely
- ever without some friends staying with them in the house,
- and they kept more company of every kind than any other
- family in the neighbourhood. It was necessary to the
- happiness of both; for however dissimilar in temper
- and outward behaviour, they strongly resembled each other
- in that total want of talent and taste which confined
- their employments, unconnected with such as society produced,
- within a very narrow compass. Sir John was a sportsman,
- Lady Middleton a mother. He hunted and shot, and she
- humoured her children; and these were their only resources.
- Lady Middleton had the advantage of being able to spoil her
- children all the year round, while Sir John's independent
- employments were in existence only half the time.
- Continual engagements at home and abroad, however,
- supplied all the deficiencies of nature and education;
- supported the good spirits of Sir John, and gave exercise
- to the good breeding of his wife.
-
- Lady Middleton piqued herself upon the elegance
- of her table, and of all her domestic arrangements;
- and from this kind of vanity was her greatest enjoyment
- in any of their parties. But Sir John's satisfaction
- in society was much more real; he delighted in collecting
- about him more young people than his house would hold,
- and the noisier they were the better was he pleased.
- He was a blessing to all the juvenile part of the neighbourhood,
- for in summer he was for ever forming parties to eat cold
- ham and chicken out of doors, and in winter his private
- balls were numerous enough for any young lady who was not
- suffering under the unsatiable appetite of fifteen.
-
- The arrival of a new family in the country was always
- a matter of joy to him, and in every point of view he was
- charmed with the inhabitants he had now procured for his
- cottage at Barton. The Miss Dashwoods were young, pretty,
- and unaffected. It was enough to secure his good opinion;
- for to be unaffected was all that a pretty girl could
- want to make her mind as captivating as her person.
- The friendliness of his disposition made him happy in
- accommodating those, whose situation might be considered,
- in comparison with the past, as unfortunate. In showing
- kindness to his cousins therefore he had the real satisfaction
- of a good heart; and in settling a family of females only
- in his cottage, he had all the satisfaction of a sportsman;
- for a sportsman, though he esteems only those of his sex who
- are sportsmen likewise, is not often desirous of encouraging
- their taste by admitting them to a residence within his own manor.
-
- Mrs. Dashwood and her daughters were met at the door
- of the house by Sir John, who welcomed them to Barton
- Park with unaffected sincerity; and as he attended them
- to the drawing room repeated to the young ladies the concern
- which the same subject had drawn from him the day before,
- at being unable to get any smart young men to meet them.
- They would see, he said, only one gentleman there
- besides himself; a particular friend who was staying at
- the park, but who was neither very young nor very gay.
- He hoped they would all excuse the smallness of the party,
- and could assure them it should never happen so again.
- He had been to several families that morning in hopes
- of procuring some addition to their number, but it
- was moonlight and every body was full of engagements.
- Luckily Lady Middleton's mother had arrived at Barton
- within the last hour, and as she was a very cheerful
- agreeable woman, he hoped the young ladies would not find
- it so very dull as they might imagine. The young ladies,
- as well as their mother, were perfectly satisfied with
- having two entire strangers of the party, and wished for
- no more.
-
- Mrs. Jennings, Lady Middleton's mother, was a
- good-humoured, merry, fat, elderly woman, who talked a
- great deal, seemed very happy, and rather vulgar. She was full
- of jokes and laughter, and before dinner was over had said
- many witty things on the subject of lovers and husbands;
- hoped they had not left their hearts behind them in Sussex,
- and pretended to see them blush whether they did or not.
- Marianne was vexed at it for her sister's sake, and turned
- her eyes towards Elinor to see how she bore these attacks,
- with an earnestness which gave Elinor far more pain than
- could arise from such common-place raillery as Mrs. Jennings's.
-
- Colonel Brandon, the friend of Sir John, seemed no
- more adapted by resemblance of manner to be his friend,
- than Lady Middleton was to be his wife, or Mrs. Jennings
- to be Lady Middleton's mother. He was silent and grave.
- His appearance however was not unpleasing, in spite
- of his being in the opinion of Marianne and Margaret
- an absolute old bachelor, for he was on the wrong side
- of five and thirty; but though his face was not handsome,
- his countenance was sensible, and his address was
- particularly gentlemanlike.
-
- There was nothing in any of the party which could
- recommend them as companions to the Dashwoods; but the cold
- insipidity of Lady Middleton was so particularly repulsive,
- that in comparison of it the gravity of Colonel Brandon,
- and even the boisterous mirth of Sir John and his
- mother-in-law was interesting. Lady Middleton seemed
- to be roused to enjoyment only by the entrance of her
- four noisy children after dinner, who pulled her about,
- tore her clothes, and put an end to every kind of discourse
- except what related to themselves.
-
- In the evening, as Marianne was discovered to be musical,
- she was invited to play. The instrument was unlocked,
- every body prepared to be charmed, and Marianne,
- who sang very well, at their request went through the
- chief of the songs which Lady Middleton had brought into
- the family on her marriage, and which perhaps had lain
- ever since in the same position on the pianoforte,
- for her ladyship had celebrated that event by giving
- up music, although by her mother's account, she had
- played extremely well, and by her own was very fond of it.
-
- Marianne's performance was highly applauded.
- Sir John was loud in his admiration at the end of every song,
- and as loud in his conversation with the others while every
- song lasted. Lady Middleton frequently called him to order,
- wondered how any one's attention could be diverted from music
- for a moment, and asked Marianne to sing a particular song
- which Marianne had just finished. Colonel Brandon alone,
- of all the party, heard her without being in raptures.
- He paid her only the compliment of attention; and she felt
- a respect for him on the occasion, which the others had
- reasonably forfeited by their shameless want of taste.
- His pleasure in music, though it amounted not to that
- ecstatic delight which alone could sympathize with her own,
- was estimable when contrasted against the horrible
- insensibility of the others; and she was reasonable enough
- to allow that a man of five and thirty might well have
- outlived all acuteness of feeling and every exquisite
- power of enjoyment. She was perfectly disposed to make
- every allowance for the colonel's advanced state of life
- which humanity required.
-
-
-
- CHAPTER 8
-
-
- Mrs. Jennings was a widow with an ample jointure.
- She had only two daughters, both of whom she had lived
- to see respectably married, and she had now therefore
- nothing to do but to marry all the rest of the world.
- In the promotion of this object she was zealously active,
- as far as her ability reached; and missed no opportunity
- of projecting weddings among all the young people
- of her acquaintance. She was remarkably quick in the
- discovery of attachments, and had enjoyed the advantage
- of raising the blushes and the vanity of many a young
- lady by insinuations of her power over such a young man;
- and this kind of discernment enabled her soon after her
- arrival at Barton decisively to pronounce that Colonel
- Brandon was very much in love with Marianne Dashwood.
- She rather suspected it to be so, on the very first
- evening of their being together, from his listening
- so attentively while she sang to them; and when the visit
- was returned by the Middletons' dining at the cottage,
- the fact was ascertained by his listening to her again.
- It must be so. She was perfectly convinced of it.
- It would be an excellent match, for HE was rich, and SHE
- was handsome. Mrs. Jennings had been anxious to see
- Colonel Brandon well married, ever since her connection
- with Sir John first brought him to her knowledge;
- and she was always anxious to get a good husband for every
- pretty girl.
-
- The immediate advantage to herself was by no means
- inconsiderable, for it supplied her with endless jokes
- against them both. At the park she laughed at the colonel,
- and in the cottage at Marianne. To the former her
- raillery was probably, as far as it regarded only himself,
- perfectly indifferent; but to the latter it was at
- first incomprehensible; and when its object was understood,
- she hardly knew whether most to laugh at its absurdity,
- or censure its impertinence, for she considered it as an
- unfeeling reflection on the colonel's advanced years,
- and on his forlorn condition as an old bachelor.
-
- Mrs. Dashwood, who could not think a man five years
- younger than herself, so exceedingly ancient as he appeared
- to the youthful fancy of her daughter, ventured to clear
- Mrs. Jennings from the probability of wishing to throw
- ridicule on his age.
-
- "But at least, Mamma, you cannot deny the absurdity
- of the accusation, though you may not think it intentionally
- ill-natured. Colonel Brandon is certainly younger than
- Mrs. Jennings, but he is old enough to be MY father;
- and if he were ever animated enough to be in love,
- must have long outlived every sensation of the kind.
- It is too ridiculous! When is a man to be safe from such wit,
- if age and infirmity will not protect him?"
-
- "Infirmity!" said Elinor, "do you call Colonel Brandon
- infirm? I can easily suppose that his age may appear much
- greater to you than to my mother; but you can hardly
- deceive yourself as to his having the use of his limbs!"
-
- "Did not you hear him complain of the rheumatism?
- and is not that the commonest infirmity of declining life?"
-
- "My dearest child," said her mother, laughing,
- "at this rate you must be in continual terror of MY decay;
- and it must seem to you a miracle that my life has been
- extended to the advanced age of forty."
-
- "Mamma, you are not doing me justice. I know very well
- that Colonel Brandon is not old enough to make his friends
- yet apprehensive of losing him in the course of nature.
- He may live twenty years longer. But thirty-five has
- nothing to do with matrimony."
-
- "Perhaps," said Elinor, "thirty-five and seventeen had
- better not have any thing to do with matrimony together.
- But if there should by any chance happen to be a woman
- who is single at seven and twenty, I should not think
- Colonel Brandon's being thirty-five any objection to his
- marrying HER."
-
- "A woman of seven and twenty," said Marianne,
- after pausing a moment, "can never hope to feel or inspire
- affection again, and if her home be uncomfortable,
- or her fortune small, I can suppose that she might
- bring herself to submit to the offices of a nurse,
- for the sake of the provision and security of a wife.
- In his marrying such a woman therefore there would be
- nothing unsuitable. It would be a compact of convenience,
- and the world would be satisfied. In my eyes it would
- be no marriage at all, but that would be nothing.
- To me it would seem only a commercial exchange, in which
- each wished to be benefited at the expense of the other."
-
- "It would be impossible, I know," replied Elinor,
- "to convince you that a woman of seven and twenty could
- feel for a man of thirty-five anything near enough
- to love, to make him a desirable companion to her.
- But I must object to your dooming Colonel Brandon and
- his wife to the constant confinement of a sick chamber,
- merely because he chanced to complain yesterday (a
- very cold damp day) of a slight rheumatic feel in one
- of his shoulders."
-
- "But he talked of flannel waistcoats," said Marianne;
- "and with me a flannel waistcoat is invariably connected
- with aches, cramps, rheumatisms, and every species of
- ailment that can afflict the old and the feeble."
-
- "Had he been only in a violent fever, you would not
- have despised him half so much. Confess, Marianne, is not
- there something interesting to you in the flushed cheek,
- hollow eye, and quick pulse of a fever?"
-
- Soon after this, upon Elinor's leaving the room,
- "Mamma," said Marianne, "I have an alarm on the subject
- of illness which I cannot conceal from you. I am sure
- Edward Ferrars is not well. We have now been here almost
- a fortnight, and yet he does not come. Nothing but real
- indisposition could occasion this extraordinary delay.
- What else can detain him at Norland?"
-
- "Had you any idea of his coming so soon?"
- said Mrs. Dashwood. "I had none. On the contrary,
- if I have felt any anxiety at all on the subject, it has
- been in recollecting that he sometimes showed a want
- of pleasure and readiness in accepting my invitation,
- when I talked of his coming to Barton. Does Elinor
- expect him already?"
-
- "I have never mentioned it to her, but of course
- she must."
-
- "I rather think you are mistaken, for when I
- was talking to her yesterday of getting a new grate
- for the spare bedchamber, she observed that there
- was no immediate hurry for it, as it was not likely
- that the room would be wanted for some time."
-
- "How strange this is! what can be the meaning of it!
- But the whole of their behaviour to each other has been
- unaccountable! How cold, how composed were their last
- adieus! How languid their conversation the last evening
- of their being together! In Edward's farewell there was no
- distinction between Elinor and me: it was the good wishes
- of an affectionate brother to both. Twice did I leave
- them purposely together in the course of the last morning,
- and each time did he most unaccountably follow me out
- of the room. And Elinor, in quitting Norland and Edward,
- cried not as I did. Even now her self-command is invariable.
- When is she dejected or melancholy? When does she try
- to avoid society, or appear restless and dissatisfied
- in it?"
-
-
-
- CHAPTER 9
-
-
- The Dashwoods were now settled at Barton with tolerable
- comfort to themselves. The house and the garden, with all
- the objects surrounding them, were now become familiar,
- and the ordinary pursuits which had given to Norland
- half its charms were engaged in again with far greater
- enjoyment than Norland had been able to afford, since the
- loss of their father. Sir John Middleton, who called
- on them every day for the first fortnight, and who was
- not in the habit of seeing much occupation at home,
- could not conceal his amazement on finding them always employed.
-
- Their visitors, except those from Barton Park,
- were not many; for, in spite of Sir John's urgent entreaties
- that they would mix more in the neighbourhood, and repeated
- assurances of his carriage being always at their service,
- the independence of Mrs. Dashwood's spirit overcame the
- wish of society for her children; and she was resolute
- in declining to visit any family beyond the distance
- of a walk. There were but few who could be so classed;
- and it was not all of them that were attainable.
- About a mile and a half from the cottage, along the narrow
- winding valley of Allenham, which issued from that of Barton,
- as formerly described, the girls had, in one of their
- earliest walks, discovered an ancient respectable looking
- mansion which, by reminding them a little of Norland,
- interested their imagination and made them wish to be
- better acquainted with it. But they learnt, on enquiry,
- that its possessor, an elderly lady of very good character,
- was unfortunately too infirm to mix with the world,
- and never stirred from home.
-
- The whole country about them abounded in beautiful walks.
- The high downs which invited them from almost every window
- of the cottage to seek the exquisite enjoyment of air
- on their summits, were a happy alternative when the dirt
- of the valleys beneath shut up their superior beauties;
- and towards one of these hills did Marianne and Margaret
- one memorable morning direct their steps, attracted by the
- partial sunshine of a showery sky, and unable longer to bear
- the confinement which the settled rain of the two preceding
- days had occasioned. The weather was not tempting enough
- to draw the two others from their pencil and their book,
- in spite of Marianne's declaration that the day would
- be lastingly fair, and that every threatening cloud would
- be drawn off from their hills; and the two girls set off together.
-
- They gaily ascended the downs, rejoicing in their own
- penetration at every glimpse of blue sky; and when they
- caught in their faces the animating gales of a high
- south-westerly wind, they pitied the fears which had prevented
- their mother and Elinor from sharing such delightful sensations.
-
- "Is there a felicity in the world," said Marianne,
- "superior to this?--Margaret, we will walk here at least
- two hours."
-
- Margaret agreed, and they pursued their way against
- the wind, resisting it with laughing delight for about
- twenty minutes longer, when suddenly the clouds united over
- their heads, and a driving rain set full in their face.--
- Chagrined and surprised, they were obliged, though unwillingly,
- to turn back, for no shelter was nearer than their own house.
- One consolation however remained for them, to which the
- exigence of the moment gave more than usual propriety;
- it was that of running with all possible speed down the steep
- side of the hill which led immediately to their garden gate.
-
- They set off. Marianne had at first the advantage,
- but a false step brought her suddenly to the ground;
- and Margaret, unable to stop herself to assist her,
- was involuntarily hurried along, and reached the bottom
- in safety.
-
- A gentleman carrying a gun, with two pointers
- playing round him, was passing up the hill and within
- a few yards of Marianne, when her accident happened.
- He put down his gun and ran to her assistance. She had
- raised herself from the ground, but her foot had been
- twisted in her fall, and she was scarcely able to stand.
- The gentleman offered his services; and perceiving that her
- modesty declined what her situation rendered necessary,
- took her up in his arms without farther delay, and carried
- her down the hill. Then passing through the garden,
- the gate of which had been left open by Margaret, he bore her
- directly into the house, whither Margaret was just arrived,
- and quitted not his hold till he had seated her in a chair
- in the parlour.
-
- Elinor and her mother rose up in amazement at
- their entrance, and while the eyes of both were fixed
- on him with an evident wonder and a secret admiration
- which equally sprung from his appearance, he apologized
- for his intrusion by relating its cause, in a manner
- so frank and so graceful that his person, which was
- uncommonly handsome, received additional charms from his voice
- and expression. Had he been even old, ugly, and vulgar,
- the gratitude and kindness of Mrs. Dashwood would
- have been secured by any act of attention to her child;
- but the influence of youth, beauty, and elegance,
- gave an interest to the action which came home to her feelings.
-
- She thanked him again and again; and, with a sweetness
- of address which always attended her, invited him to
- be seated. But this he declined, as he was dirty and wet.
- Mrs. Dashwood then begged to know to whom she was obliged.
- His name, he replied, was Willoughby, and his present
- home was at Allenham, from whence he hoped she would
- allow him the honour of calling tomorrow to enquire
- after Miss Dashwood. The honour was readily granted,
- and he then departed, to make himself still more interesting,
- in the midst of an heavy rain.
-
- His manly beauty and more than common gracefulness
- were instantly the theme of general admiration,
- and the laugh which his gallantry raised against Marianne
- received particular spirit from his exterior attractions.--
- Marianne herself had seen less of his person that the rest,
- for the confusion which crimsoned over her face, on his
- lifting her up, had robbed her of the power of regarding
- him after their entering the house. But she had seen
- enough of him to join in all the admiration of the others,
- and with an energy which always adorned her praise.
- His person and air were equal to what her fancy had ever
- drawn for the hero of a favourite story; and in his carrying
- her into the house with so little previous formality, there
- was a rapidity of thought which particularly recommended
- the action to her. Every circumstance belonging to him
- was interesting. His name was good, his residence was in
- their favourite village, and she soon found out that of all
- manly dresses a shooting-jacket was the most becoming.
- Her imagination was busy, her reflections were pleasant,
- and the pain of a sprained ankle was disregarded.
-
- Sir John called on them as soon as the next interval
- of fair weather that morning allowed him to get out
- of doors; and Marianne's accident being related to him,
- he was eagerly asked whether he knew any gentleman
- of the name of Willoughby at Allenham.
-
- "Willoughby!" cried Sir John; "what, is HE
- in the country? That is good news however; I will
- ride over tomorrow, and ask him to dinner on Thursday."
-
- "You know him then," said Mrs. Dashwood.
-
- "Know him! to be sure I do. Why, he is down here
- every year."
-
- "And what sort of a young man is he?"
-
- "As good a kind of fellow as ever lived, I assure you.
- A very decent shot, and there is not a bolder rider
- in England."
-
- "And is that all you can say for him?" cried Marianne,
- indignantly. "But what are his manners on more intimate
- acquaintance? What his pursuits, his talents, and genius?"
-
- Sir John was rather puzzled.
-
- "Upon my soul," said he, "I do not know much about him
- as to all THAT. But he is a pleasant, good humoured fellow,
- and has got the nicest little black bitch of a pointer
- I ever saw. Was she out with him today?"
-
- But Marianne could no more satisfy him as to the
- colour of Mr. Willoughby's pointer, than he could
- describe to her the shades of his mind.
-
- "But who is he?" said Elinor. "Where does he come
- from? Has he a house at Allenham?"
-
- On this point Sir John could give more certain intelligence;
- and he told them that Mr. Willoughby had no property
- of his own in the country; that he resided there only
- while he was visiting the old lady at Allenham Court,
- to whom he was related, and whose possessions he was
- to inherit; adding, "Yes, yes, he is very well worth
- catching I can tell you, Miss Dashwood; he has a pretty
- little estate of his own in Somersetshire besides;
- and if I were you, I would not give him up to my
- younger sister, in spite of all this tumbling down hills.
- Miss Marianne must not expect to have all the men to herself.
- Brandon will be jealous, if she does not take care."
-
- "I do not believe," said Mrs. Dashwood, with a
- good humoured smile, "that Mr. Willoughby will be incommoded
- by the attempts of either of MY daughters towards what
- you call CATCHING him. It is not an employment to which
- they have been brought up. Men are very safe with us,
- let them be ever so rich. I am glad to find, however,
- from what you say, that he is a respectable young man,
- and one whose acquaintance will not be ineligible."
-
- "He is as good a sort of fellow, I believe,
- as ever lived," repeated Sir John. "I remember
- last Christmas at a little hop at the park, he danced
- from eight o'clock till four, without once sitting down."
-
- "Did he indeed?" cried Marianne with sparkling eyes,
- "and with elegance, with spirit?"
-
- "Yes; and he was up again at eight to ride to covert."
-
- "That is what I like; that is what a young man ought
- to be. Whatever be his pursuits, his eagerness in them
- should know no moderation, and leave him no sense of fatigue."
-
- "Aye, aye, I see how it will be," said Sir John, "I see
- how it will be. You will be setting your cap at him now,
- and never think of poor Brandon."
-
- "That is an expression, Sir John," said Marianne,
- warmly, "which I particularly dislike. I abhor every
- common-place phrase by which wit is intended; and 'setting
- one's cap at a man,' or 'making a conquest,' are the most
- odious of all. Their tendency is gross and illiberal;
- and if their construction could ever be deemed clever,
- time has long ago destroyed all its ingenuity."
-
- Sir John did not much understand this reproof;
- but he laughed as heartily as if he did, and then replied,
-
- "Ay, you will make conquests enough, I dare say,
- one way or other. Poor Brandon! he is quite smitten already,
- and he is very well worth setting your cap at, I can
- tell you, in spite of all this tumbling about and spraining
- of ankles."
-
-
-
- CHAPTER 10
-
-
- Marianne's preserver, as Margaret, with more elegance
- than precision, styled Willoughby, called at the cottage
- early the next morning to make his personal enquiries.
- He was received by Mrs. Dashwood with more than politeness;
- with a kindness which Sir John's account of him and her own
- gratitude prompted; and every thing that passed during
- the visit tended to assure him of the sense, elegance,
- mutual affection, and domestic comfort of the family
- to whom accident had now introduced him. Of their
- personal charms he had not required a second interview
- to be convinced.
-
- Miss Dashwood had a delicate complexion,
- regular features, and a remarkably pretty figure.
- Marianne was still handsomer. Her form, though not so
- correct as her sister's, in having the advantage of height,
- was more striking; and her face was so lovely, that when
- in the common cant of praise, she was called a beautiful girl,
- truth was less violently outraged than usually happens.
- Her skin was very brown, but, from its transparency,
- her complexion was uncommonly brilliant; her features
- were all good; her smile was sweet and attractive;
- and in her eyes, which were very dark, there was a life,
- a spirit, an eagerness, which could hardily be seen
- without delight. From Willoughby their expression was at
- first held back, by the embarrassment which the remembrance
- of his assistance created. But when this passed away,
- when her spirits became collected, when she saw that to the
- perfect good-breeding of the gentleman, he united frankness
- and vivacity, and above all, when she heard him declare,
- that of music and dancing he was passionately fond,
- she gave him such a look of approbation as secured the
- largest share of his discourse to herself for the rest
- of his stay.
-
- It was only necessary to mention any favourite
- amusement to engage her to talk. She could not be
- silent when such points were introduced, and she
- had neither shyness nor reserve in their discussion.
- They speedily discovered that their enjoyment of dancing
- and music was mutual, and that it arose from a general
- conformity of judgment in all that related to either.
- Encouraged by this to a further examination of his opinions,
- she proceeded to question him on the subject of books;
- her favourite authors were brought forward and dwelt
- upon with so rapturous a delight, that any young man of
- five and twenty must have been insensible indeed, not to
- become an immediate convert to the excellence of such works,
- however disregarded before. Their taste was strikingly alike.
- The same books, the same passages were idolized by each--
- or if any difference appeared, any objection arose,
- it lasted no longer than till the force of her arguments
- and the brightness of her eyes could be displayed.
- He acquiesced in all her decisions, caught all her enthusiasm;
- and long before his visit concluded, they conversed
- with the familiarity of a long-established acquaintance.
-
- "Well, Marianne," said Elinor, as soon as he had left them,
- "for ONE morning I think you have done pretty well.
- You have already ascertained Mr. Willoughby's opinion in
- almost every matter of importance. You know what he thinks
- of Cowper and Scott; you are certain of his estimating
- their beauties as he ought, and you have received every
- assurance of his admiring Pope no more than is proper.
- But how is your acquaintance to be long supported, under such
- extraordinary despatch of every subject for discourse?
- You will soon have exhausted each favourite topic.
- Another meeting will suffice to explain his sentiments
- on picturesque beauty, and second marriages, and then
- you can have nothing farther to ask."--
-
- "Elinor," cried Marianne, "is this fair? is this
- just? are my ideas so scanty? But I see what you mean.
- I have been too much at my ease, too happy, too frank.
- I have erred against every common-place notion of decorum;
- I have been open and sincere where I ought to have
- been reserved, spiritless, dull, and deceitful--had
- I talked only of the weather and the roads, and had I
- spoken only once in ten minutes, this reproach would have
- been spared."
-
- "My love," said her mother, "you must not be offended
- with Elinor--she was only in jest. I should scold
- her myself, if she were capable of wishing to check
- the delight of your conversation with our new friend."--
- Marianne was softened in a moment.
-
- Willoughby, on his side, gave every proof of his
- pleasure in their acquaintance, which an evident wish
- of improving it could offer. He came to them every day.
- To enquire after Marianne was at first his excuse; but the
- encouragement of his reception, to which every day gave
- greater kindness, made such an excuse unnecessary before it
- had ceased to be possible, by Marianne's perfect recovery.
- She was confined for some days to the house; but never had
- any confinement been less irksome. Willoughby was a young
- man of good abilities, quick imagination, lively spirits,
- and open, affectionate manners. He was exactly formed
- to engage Marianne's heart, for with all this, he joined
- not only a captivating person, but a natural ardour
- of mind which was now roused and increased by the example
- of her own, and which recommended him to her affection
- beyond every thing else.
-
- His society became gradually her most exquisite enjoyment.
- They read, they talked, they sang together; his musical
- talents were considerable; and he read with all the
- sensibility and spirit which Edward had unfortunately wanted.
-
- In Mrs. Dashwood's estimation he was as faultless
- as in Marianne's; and Elinor saw nothing to censure in him
- but a propensity, in which he strongly resembled and peculiarly
- delighted her sister, of saying too much what he thought on
- every occasion, without attention to persons or circumstances.
- In hastily forming and giving his opinion of other people,
- in sacrificing general politeness to the enjoyment
- of undivided attention where his heart was engaged,
- and in slighting too easily the forms of worldly propriety,
- he displayed a want of caution which Elinor could not approve,
- in spite of all that he and Marianne could say in its support.
-
- Marianne began now to perceive that the desperation
- which had seized her at sixteen and a half, of ever
- seeing a man who could satisfy her ideas of perfection,
- had been rash and unjustifiable. Willoughby was all
- that her fancy had delineated in that unhappy hour
- and in every brighter period, as capable of attaching her;
- and his behaviour declared his wishes to be in that respect
- as earnest, as his abilities were strong.
-
- Her mother too, in whose mind not one speculative
- thought of their marriage had been raised, by his prospect
- of riches, was led before the end of a week to hope and
- expect it; and secretly to congratulate herself on having
- gained two such sons-in-law as Edward and Willoughby.
-
- Colonel Brandon's partiality for Marianne, which had
- so early been discovered by his friends, now first became
- perceptible to Elinor, when it ceased to be noticed
- by them. Their attention and wit were drawn off to his
- more fortunate rival; and the raillery which the other
- had incurred before any partiality arose, was removed
- when his feelings began really to call for the ridicule
- so justly annexed to sensibility. Elinor was obliged,
- though unwillingly, to believe that the sentiments which
- Mrs. Jennings had assigned him for her own satisfaction,
- were now actually excited by her sister; and that however
- a general resemblance of disposition between the parties
- might forward the affection of Mr. Willoughby, an equally
- striking opposition of character was no hindrance to the
- regard of Colonel Brandon. She saw it with concern;
- for what could a silent man of five and thirty hope,
- when opposed to a very lively one of five and twenty? and as
- she could not even wish him successful, she heartily wished
- him indifferent. She liked him--in spite of his gravity
- and reserve, she beheld in him an object of interest.
- His manners, though serious, were mild; and his reserve
- appeared rather the result of some oppression of spirits
- than of any natural gloominess of temper. Sir John
- had dropped hints of past injuries and disappointments,
- which justified her belief of his being an unfortunate man,
- and she regarded him with respect and compassion.
-
- Perhaps she pitied and esteemed him the more
- because he was slighted by Willoughby and Marianne,
- who, prejudiced against him for being neither lively
- nor young, seemed resolved to undervalue his merits.
-
- "Brandon is just the kind of man," said Willoughby
- one day, when they were talking of him together,
- "whom every body speaks well of, and nobody cares about;
- whom all are delighted to see, and nobody remembers
- to talk to."
-
- "That is exactly what I think of him," cried Marianne.
-
- "Do not boast of it, however," said Elinor, "for it
- is injustice in both of you. He is highly esteemed
- by all the family at the park, and I never see him myself
- without taking pains to converse with him."
-
- "That he is patronised by YOU," replied Willoughby,
- "is certainly in his favour; but as for the esteem
- of the others, it is a reproach in itself. Who would
- submit to the indignity of being approved by such a woman
- as Lady Middleton and Mrs. Jennings, that could command
- the indifference of any body else?"
-
- "But perhaps the abuse of such people as yourself
- and Marianne will make amends for the regard of Lady
- Middleton and her mother. If their praise is censure,
- your censure may be praise, for they are not more undiscerning,
- than you are prejudiced and unjust."
-
- "In defence of your protege you can even be saucy."
-
- "My protege, as you call him, is a sensible man;
- and sense will always have attractions for me.
- Yes, Marianne, even in a man between thirty and forty.
- He has seen a great deal of the world; has been abroad,
- has read, and has a thinking mind. I have found him
- capable of giving me much information on various subjects;
- and he has always answered my inquiries with readiness of
- good-breeding and good nature."
-
- "That is to say," cried Marianne contemptuously,
- "he has told you, that in the East Indies the climate is hot,
- and the mosquitoes are troublesome."
-
- "He WOULD have told me so, I doubt not, had I made
- any such inquiries, but they happened to be points
- on which I had been previously informed."
-
- "Perhaps," said Willoughby, "his observations may
- have extended to the existence of nabobs, gold mohrs,
- and palanquins."
-
- "I may venture to say that HIS observations
- have stretched much further than your candour.
- But why should you dislike him?"
-
- "I do not dislike him. I consider him, on the contrary,
- as a very respectable man, who has every body's good word,
- and nobody's notice; who, has more money than he can spend,
- more time than he knows how to employ, and two new coats
- every year."
-
- "Add to which," cried Marianne, "that he has
- neither genius, taste, nor spirit. That his understanding
- has no brilliancy, his feelings no ardour, and his voice
- no expression."
-
- "You decide on his imperfections so much in the mass,"
- replied Elinor, "and so much on the strength of your
- own imagination, that the commendation I am able to give
- of him is comparatively cold and insipid. I can only
- pronounce him to be a sensible man, well-bred, well-informed,
- of gentle address, and, I believe, possessing an amiable heart."
-
- "Miss Dashwood," cried Willoughby, "you are now using
- me unkindly. You are endeavouring to disarm me by reason,
- and to convince me against my will. But it will not do.
- You shall find me as stubborn as you can be artful. I have
- three unanswerable reasons for disliking Colonel Brandon;
- he threatened me with rain when I wanted it to be fine;
- he has found fault with the hanging of my curricle,
- and I cannot persuade him to buy my brown mare. If it
- will be any satisfaction to you, however, to be told,
- that I believe his character to be in other respects
- irreproachable, I am ready to confess it. And in return
- for an acknowledgment, which must give me some pain,
- you cannot deny me the privilege of disliking him as much
- as ever."
-
-
-
- CHAPTER 11
-
-
- Little had Mrs. Dashwood or her daughters imagined
- when they first came into Devonshire, that so many
- engagements would arise to occupy their time as shortly
- presented themselves, or that they should have such frequent
- invitations and such constant visitors as to leave them little
- leisure for serious employment. Yet such was the case.
- When Marianne was recovered, the schemes of amusement at home
- and abroad, which Sir John had been previously forming,
- were put into execution. The private balls at the park
- then began; and parties on the water were made and
- accomplished as often as a showery October would allow.
- In every meeting of the kind Willoughby was included;
- and the ease and familiarity which naturally attended
- these parties were exactly calculated to give increasing
- intimacy to his acquaintance with the Dashwoods, to afford
- him opportunity of witnessing the excellencies of Marianne,
- of marking his animated admiration of her, and of receiving,
- in her behaviour to himself, the most pointed assurance
- of her affection.
-
- Elinor could not be surprised at their attachment.
- She only wished that it were less openly shewn; and once
- or twice did venture to suggest the propriety of some
- self-command to Marianne. But Marianne abhorred all
- concealment where no real disgrace could attend unreserve;
- and to aim at the restraint of sentiments which were not
- in themselves illaudable, appeared to her not merely
- an unnecessary effort, but a disgraceful subjection
- of reason to common-place and mistaken notions.
- Willoughby thought the same; and their behaviour at
- all times, was an illustration of their opinions.
-
- When he was present she had no eyes for any one else.
- Every thing he did, was right. Every thing he said, was clever.
- If their evenings at the park were concluded with cards,
- he cheated himself and all the rest of the party to get
- her a good hand. If dancing formed the amusement
- of the night, they were partners for half the time;
- and when obliged to separate for a couple of dances,
- were careful to stand together and scarcely spoke a word
- to any body else. Such conduct made them of course
- most exceedingly laughed at; but ridicule could not shame,
- and seemed hardly to provoke them.
-
- Mrs. Dashwood entered into all their feelings with
- a warmth which left her no inclination for checking this
- excessive display of them. To her it was but the natural
- consequence of a strong affection in a young and ardent mind.
-
- This was the season of happiness to Marianne.
- Her heart was devoted to Willoughby, and the fond attachment
- to Norland, which she brought with her from Sussex,
- was more likely to be softened than she had thought it
- possible before, by the charms which his society bestowed
- on her present home.
-
- Elinor's happiness was not so great. Her heart was not
- so much at ease, nor her satisfaction in their amusements
- so pure. They afforded her no companion that could make
- amends for what she had left behind, nor that could teach
- her to think of Norland with less regret than ever.
- Neither Lady Middleton nor Mrs. Jennings could supply
- to her the conversation she missed; although the latter
- was an everlasting talker, and from the first had regarded
- her with a kindness which ensured her a large share of
- her discourse. She had already repeated her own history
- to Elinor three or four times; and had Elinor's memory been
- equal to her means of improvement, she might have known
- very early in their acquaintance all the particulars of
- Mr. Jenning's last illness, and what he said to his wife
- a few minutes before he died. Lady Middleton was more
- agreeable than her mother only in being more silent.
- Elinor needed little observation to perceive that her
- reserve was a mere calmness of manner with which sense
- had nothing to do. Towards her husband and mother she
- was the same as to them; and intimacy was therefore
- neither to be looked for nor desired. She had nothing
- to say one day that she had not said the day before.
- Her insipidity was invariable, for even her spirits were
- always the same; and though she did not oppose the parties
- arranged by her husband, provided every thing were conducted
- in style and her two eldest children attended her,
- she never appeared to receive more enjoyment from them
- than she might have experienced in sitting at home;--
- and so little did her presence add to the pleasure
- of the others, by any share in their conversation,
- that they were sometimes only reminded of her being
- amongst them by her solicitude about her troublesome boys.
-
- In Colonel Brandon alone, of all her new acquaintance,
- did Elinor find a person who could in any degree claim the
- respect of abilities, excite the interest of friendship,
- or give pleasure as a companion. Willoughby was out
- of the question. Her admiration and regard, even her
- sisterly regard, was all his own; but he was a lover;
- his attentions were wholly Marianne's, and a far less
- agreeable man might have been more generally pleasing.
- Colonel Brandon, unfortunately for himself, had no such
- encouragement to think only of Marianne, and in conversing
- with Elinor he found the greatest consolation for the
- indifference of her sister.
-
- Elinor's compassion for him increased, as she had reason
- to suspect that the misery of disappointed love had already
- been known to him. This suspicion was given by some words
- which accidently dropped from him one evening at the park,
- when they were sitting down together by mutual consent,
- while the others were dancing. His eyes were fixed
- on Marianne, and, after a silence of some minutes,
- he said, with a faint smile, "Your sister, I understand,
- does not approve of second attachments."
-
- "No," replied Elinor, "her opinions are all romantic."
-
- "Or rather, as I believe, she considers them
- impossible to exist."
-
- "I believe she does. But how she contrives it
- without reflecting on the character of her own father,
- who had himself two wives, I know not. A few years
- however will settle her opinions on the reasonable basis
- of common sense and observation; and then they may be
- more easy to define and to justify than they now are,
- by any body but herself."
-
- "This will probably be the case," he replied;
- "and yet there is something so amiable in the prejudices
- of a young mind, that one is sorry to see them give way
- to the reception of more general opinions."
-
- "I cannot agree with you there," said Elinor.
- "There are inconveniences attending such feelings
- as Marianne's, which all the charms of enthusiasm and
- ignorance of the world cannot atone for. Her systems have
- all the unfortunate tendency of setting propriety at nought;
- and a better acquaintance with the world is what I look
- forward to as her greatest possible advantage."
-
- After a short pause he resumed the conversation
- by saying,--
-
- "Does your sister make no distinction in her objections
- against a second attachment? or is it equally criminal
- in every body? Are those who have been disappointed
- in their first choice, whether from the inconstancy
- of its object, or the perverseness of circumstances,
- to be equally indifferent during the rest of their lives?"
-
- "Upon my word, I am not acquainted with the minutiae
- of her principles. I only know that I never yet heard her
- admit any instance of a second attachment's being pardonable."
-
- "This," said he, "cannot hold; but a change,
- a total change of sentiments--No, no, do not desire it;
- for when the romantic refinements of a young mind
- are obliged to give way, how frequently are they
- succeeded by such opinions as are but too common, and too
- dangerous! I speak from experience. I once knew a lady
- who in temper and mind greatly resembled your sister,
- who thought and judged like her, but who from an inforced
- change--from a series of unfortunate circumstances"--
- Here he stopt suddenly; appeared to think that he had said
- too much, and by his countenance gave rise to conjectures,
- which might not otherwise have entered Elinor's head.
- The lady would probably have passed without suspicion,
- had he not convinced Miss Dashwood that what concerned
- her ought not to escape his lips. As it was,
- it required but a slight effort of fancy to connect his
- emotion with the tender recollection of past regard.
- Elinor attempted no more. But Marianne, in her place,
- would not have done so little. The whole story would
- have been speedily formed under her active imagination;
- and every thing established in the most melancholy order
- of disastrous love.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER 12
-
-
- As Elinor and Marianne were walking together the
- next morning the latter communicated a piece of news
- to her sister, which in spite of all that she knew
- before of Marianne's imprudence and want of thought,
- surprised her by its extravagant testimony of both.
- Marianne told her, with the greatest delight, that
- Willoughby had given her a horse, one that he had bred
- himself on his estate in Somersetshire, and which was
- exactly calculated to carry a woman. Without considering
- that it was not in her mother's plan to keep any horse,
- that if she were to alter her resolution in favour of
- this gift, she must buy another for the servant, and
- keep a servant to ride it, and after all, build a stable
- to receive them, she had accepted the present without
- hesitation, and told her sister of it in raptures.
-
- "He intends to send his groom into Somersetshire
- immediately for it," she added, "and when it arrives we
- will ride every day. You shall share its use with me.
- Imagine to yourself, my dear Elinor, the delight of a gallop
- on some of these downs."
-
- Most unwilling was she to awaken from such a dream of
- felicity to comprehend all the unhappy truths which attended
- the affair; and for some time she refused to submit to them.
- As to an additional servant, the expense would be a trifle;
- Mamma she was sure would never object to it; and any horse
- would do for HIM; he might always get one at the park;
- as to a stable, the merest shed would be sufficient.
- Elinor then ventured to doubt the propriety of her receiving
- such a present from a man so little, or at least so lately
- known to her. This was too much.
-
- "You are mistaken, Elinor," said she warmly,
- "in supposing I know very little of Willoughby.
- I have not known him long indeed, but I am much better
- acquainted with him, than I am with any other creature
- in the world, except yourself and mama. It is not
- time or opportunity that is to determine intimacy;--
- it is disposition alone. Seven years would be insufficient
- to make some people acquainted with each other, and seven
- days are more than enough for others. I should hold
- myself guilty of greater impropriety in accepting a horse
- from my brother, than from Willoughby. Of John I know
- very little, though we have lived together for years;
- but of Willoughby my judgment has long been formed."
-
- Elinor thought it wisest to touch that point no more.
- She knew her sister's temper. Opposition on so tender a
- subject would only attach her the more to her own opinion.
- But by an appeal to her affection for her mother,
- by representing the inconveniences which that indulgent
- mother must draw on herself, if (as would probably be
- the case) she consented to this increase of establishment,
- Marianne was shortly subdued; and she promised not to
- tempt her mother to such imprudent kindness by mentioning
- the offer, and to tell Willoughby when she saw him next,
- that it must be declined.
-
- She was faithful to her word; and when Willoughby
- called at the cottage, the same day, Elinor heard her
- express her disappointment to him in a low voice, on
- being obliged to forego the acceptance of his present.
- The reasons for this alteration were at the same time related,
- and they were such as to make further entreaty on his
- side impossible. His concern however was very apparent;
- and after expressing it with earnestness, he added,
- in the same low voice,--"But, Marianne, the horse is
- still yours, though you cannot use it now. I shall keep
- it only till you can claim it. When you leave Barton
- to form your own establishment in a more lasting home,
- Queen Mab shall receive you."
-
- This was all overheard by Miss Dashwood; and in the
- whole of the sentence, in his manner of pronouncing it,
- and in his addressing her sister by her christian name alone,
- she instantly saw an intimacy so decided, a meaning
- so direct, as marked a perfect agreement between them.
- >From that moment she doubted not of their being engaged
- to each other; and the belief of it created no other surprise
- than that she, or any of their friends, should be left
- by tempers so frank, to discover it by accident.
-
- Margaret related something to her the next day,
- which placed this matter in a still clearer light.
- Willoughby had spent the preceding evening with them,
- and Margaret, by being left some time in the parlour
- with only him and Marianne, had had opportunity
- for observations, which, with a most important face,
- she communicated to her eldest sister, when they were
- next by themselves.
-
- "Oh, Elinor!" she cried, "I have such a secret to
- tell you about Marianne. I am sure she will be married
- to Mr. Willoughby very soon."
-
- "You have said so," replied Elinor, "almost every
- day since they first met on High-church Down; and they
- had not known each other a week, I believe, before you
- were certain that Marianne wore his picture round her neck;
- but it turned out to be only the miniature of our great uncle."
-
- "But indeed this is quite another thing. I am sure
- they will be married very soon, for he has got a lock
- of her hair."
-
- "Take care, Margaret. It may be only the hair
- of some great uncle of HIS."
-
- "But, indeed, Elinor, it is Marianne's. I am almost
- sure it is, for I saw him cut it off. Last night
- after tea, when you and mama went out of the room,
- they were whispering and talking together as fast as
- could be, and he seemed to be begging something of her,
- and presently he took up her scissors and cut off a long
- lock of her hair, for it was all tumbled down her back;
- and he kissed it, and folded it up in a piece of white paper;
- and put it into his pocket-book."
-
- For such particulars, stated on such authority,
- Elinor could not withhold her credit; nor was she disposed
- to it, for the circumstance was in perfect unison with
- what she had heard and seen herself.
-
- Margaret's sagacity was not always displayed in a
- way so satisfactory to her sister. When Mrs. Jennings
- attacked her one evening at the park, to give the name
- of the young man who was Elinor's particular favourite,
- which had been long a matter of great curiosity to her,
- Margaret answered by looking at her sister, and saying,
- "I must not tell, may I, Elinor?"
-
- This of course made every body laugh; and Elinor
- tried to laugh too. But the effort was painful.
- She was convinced that Margaret had fixed on a person
- whose name she could not bear with composure to become
- a standing joke with Mrs. Jennings.
-
- Marianne felt for her most sincerely; but she did
- more harm than good to the cause, by turning very red
- and saying in an angry manner to Margaret,
-
- "Remember that whatever your conjectures may be,
- you have no right to repeat them."
-
- "I never had any conjectures about it," replied Margaret;
- "it was you who told me of it yourself."
-
- This increased the mirth of the company, and Margaret
- was eagerly pressed to say something more.
-
- "Oh! pray, Miss Margaret, let us know all about it,"
- said Mrs. Jennings. "What is the gentleman's name?"
-
- "I must not tell, ma'am. But I know very well what it is;
- and I know where he is too."
-
- "Yes, yes, we can guess where he is; at his own house
- at Norland to be sure. He is the curate of the parish
- I dare say."
-
- "No, THAT he is not. He is of no profession at all."
-
- "Margaret," said Marianne with great warmth,
- "you know that all this is an invention of your own,
- and that there is no such person in existence."
-
- "Well, then, he is lately dead, Marianne, for I
- am sure there was such a man once, and his name begins
- with an F."
-
- Most grateful did Elinor feel to Lady Middleton
- for observing, at this moment, "that it rained very hard,"
- though she believed the interruption to proceed less from
- any attention to her, than from her ladyship's great dislike
- of all such inelegant subjects of raillery as delighted
- her husband and mother. The idea however started by her,
- was immediately pursued by Colonel Brandon, who was
- on every occasion mindful of the feelings of others;
- and much was said on the subject of rain by both of them.
- Willoughby opened the piano-forte, and asked Marianne
- to sit down to it; and thus amidst the various endeavours
- of different people to quit the topic, it fell to the ground.
- But not so easily did Elinor recover from the alarm into
- which it had thrown her.
-
- A party was formed this evening for going on the
- following day to see a very fine place about twelve miles
- from Barton, belonging to a brother-in-law of Colonel Brandon,
- without whose interest it could not be seen, as the proprietor,
- who was then abroad, had left strict orders on that head.
- The grounds were declared to be highly beautiful,
- and Sir John, who was particularly warm in their praise,
- might be allowed to be a tolerable judge, for he had
- formed parties to visit them, at least, twice every summer
- for the last ten years. They contained a noble piece
- of water; a sail on which was to a form a great part of
- the morning's amusement; cold provisions were to be taken,
- open carriages only to be employed, and every thing
- conducted in the usual style of a complete party of pleasure.
-
- To some few of the company it appeared rather
- a bold undertaking, considering the time of year,
- and that it had rained every day for the last fortnight;--
- and Mrs. Dashwood, who had already a cold, was persuaded
- by Elinor to stay at home.
-
-
-
- CHAPTER 13
-
-
- Their intended excursion to Whitwell turned out
- very different from what Elinor had expected. She was
- prepared to be wet through, fatigued, and frightened;
- but the event was still more unfortunate, for they did
- not go at all.
-
- By ten o'clock the whole party was assembled at
- the park, where they were to breakfast. The morning
- was rather favourable, though it had rained all night,
- as the clouds were then dispersing across the sky,
- and the sun frequently appeared. They were all in high
- spirits and good humour, eager to be happy, and determined
- to submit to the greatest inconveniences and hardships
- rather than be otherwise.
-
- While they were at breakfast the letters were brought in.
- Among the rest there was one for Colonel Brandon;--he
- took it, looked at the direction, changed colour,
- and immediately left the room.
-
- "What is the matter with Brandon?" said Sir John.
-
- Nobody could tell.
-
- "I hope he has had no bad news," said Lady Middleton.
- "It must be something extraordinary that could make Colonel
- Brandon leave my breakfast table so suddenly."
-
- In about five minutes he returned.
-
- "No bad news, Colonel, I hope;" said Mrs. Jennings,
- as soon as he entered the room.
-
- "None at all, ma'am, I thank you."
-
- "Was it from Avignon? I hope it is not to say
- that your sister is worse."
-
- "No, ma'am. It came from town, and is merely
- a letter of business."
-
- "But how came the hand to discompose you so much,
- if it was only a letter of business? Come, come,
- this won't do, Colonel; so let us hear the truth of it."
-
- "My dear madam," said Lady Middleton, "recollect what
- you are saying."
-
- "Perhaps it is to tell you that your cousin Fanny
- is married?" said Mrs. Jennings, without attending
- to her daughter's reproof.
-
- "No, indeed, it is not."
-
- "Well, then, I know who it is from, Colonel. And I
- hope she is well."
-
- "Whom do you mean, ma'am?" said he, colouring a little.
-
- "Oh! you know who I mean."
-
- "I am particularly sorry, ma'am," said he,
- addressing Lady Middleton, "that I should receive this
- letter today, for it is on business which requires
- my immediate attendance in town."
-
- "In town!" cried Mrs. Jennings. "What can you
- have to do in town at this time of year?"
-
- "My own loss is great," be continued, "in being obliged
- to leave so agreeable a party; but I am the more concerned,
- as I fear my presence is necessary to gain your admittance
- at Whitwell."
-
- What a blow upon them all was this!
-
- "But if you write a note to the housekeeper, Mr. Brandon,"
- said Marianne, eagerly, "will it not be sufficient?"
-
- He shook his head.
-
- "We must go," said Sir John.--"It shall not be put
- off when we are so near it. You cannot go to town till
- tomorrow, Brandon, that is all."
-
- "I wish it could be so easily settled. But it
- is not in my power to delay my journey for one day!"
-
- "If you would but let us know what your business is,"
- said Mrs. Jennings, "we might see whether it could be put
- off or not."
-
- "You would not be six hours later," said Willoughby,
- "if you were to defer your journey till our return."
-
- "I cannot afford to lose ONE hour."--
-
- Elinor then heard Willoughby say, in a low voice to Marianne,
- "There are some people who cannot bear a party of pleasure.
- Brandon is one of them. He was afraid of catching cold
- I dare say, and invented this trick for getting out of it.
- I would lay fifty guineas the letter was of his own writing."
-
- "I have no doubt of it," replied Marianne.
-
- "There is no persuading you to change your mind,
- Brandon, I know of old," said Sir John, "when once you
- are determined on anything. But, however, I hope you
- will think better of it. Consider, here are the two Miss
- Careys come over from Newton, the three Miss Dashwoods
- walked up from the cottage, and Mr. Willoughby got up
- two hours before his usual time, on purpose to go to Whitwell."
-
- Colonel Brandon again repeated his sorrow at being
- the cause of disappointing the party; but at the same
- time declared it to be unavoidable.
-
- "Well, then, when will you come back again?"
-
- "I hope we shall see you at Barton," added her ladyship,
- "as soon as you can conveniently leave town; and we must
- put off the party to Whitwell till you return."
-
- "You are very obliging. But it is so uncertain,
- when I may have it in my power to return, that I dare
- not engage for it at all."
-
- "Oh! he must and shall come back," cried Sir John.
- "If he is not here by the end of the week, I shall go
- after him."
-
- "Ay, so do, Sir John," cried Mrs. Jennings, "and then
- perhaps you may find out what his business is."
-
- "I do not want to pry into other men's concerns.
- I suppose it is something he is ashamed of."
-
- Colonel Brandon's horses were announced.
-
- "You do not go to town on horseback, do you?"
- added Sir John.
-
- "No. Only to Honiton. I shall then go post."
-
- "Well, as you are resolved to go, I wish you
- a good journey. But you had better change your mind."
-
- "I assure you it is not in my power."
-
- He then took leave of the whole party.
-
- "Is there no chance of my seeing you and your sisters
- in town this winter, Miss Dashwood?"
-
- "I am afraid, none at all."
-
- "Then I must bid you farewell for a longer time
- than I should wish to do."
-
- To Marianne, he merely bowed and said nothing.
-
- "Come Colonel," said Mrs. Jennings, "before you go,
- do let us know what you are going about."
-
- He wished her a good morning, and, attended by Sir John,
- left the room.
-
- The complaints and lamentations which politeness
- had hitherto restrained, now burst forth universally;
- and they all agreed again and again how provoking it was
- to be so disappointed.
-
- "I can guess what his business is, however,"
- said Mrs. Jennings exultingly.
-
- "Can you, ma'am?" said almost every body.
-
- "Yes; it is about Miss Williams, I am sure."
-
- "And who is Miss Williams?" asked Marianne.
-
- "What! do not you know who Miss Williams is? I am
- sure you must have heard of her before. She is a relation
- of the Colonel's, my dear; a very near relation. We will
- not say how near, for fear of shocking the young ladies."
- Then, lowering her voice a little, she said to Elinor,
- "She is his natural daughter."
-
- "Indeed!"
-
- "Oh, yes; and as like him as she can stare.
- I dare say the Colonel will leave her all his fortune."
-
- When Sir John returned, he joined most heartily
- in the general regret on so unfortunate an event;
- concluding however by observing, that as they were
- all got together, they must do something by way of
- being happy; and after some consultation it was agreed,
- that although happiness could only be enjoyed at Whitwell,
- they might procure a tolerable composure of mind by driving
- about the country. The carriages were then ordered;
- Willoughby's was first, and Marianne never looked
- happier than when she got into it. He drove through
- the park very fast, and they were soon out of sight;
- and nothing more of them was seen till their return,
- which did not happen till after the return of all the rest.
- They both seemed delighted with their drive; but said
- only in general terms that they had kept in the lanes,
- while the others went on the downs.
-
- It was settled that there should be a dance in the evening,
- and that every body should be extremely merry all day long.
- Some more of the Careys came to dinner, and they had the
- pleasure of sitting down nearly twenty to table, which Sir
- John observed with great contentment. Willoughby took
- his usual place between the two elder Miss Dashwoods.
- Mrs. Jennings sat on Elinor's right hand; and they had not
- been long seated, before she leant behind her and Willoughby,
- and said to Marianne, loud enough for them both to hear,
- "I have found you out in spite of all your tricks.
- I know where you spent the morning."
-
- Marianne coloured, and replied very hastily,
- "Where, pray?"--
-
- "Did not you know," said Willoughby, "that we had
- been out in my curricle?"
-
- "Yes, yes, Mr. Impudence, I know that very well,
- and I was determined to find out WHERE you had been to.--
- I hope you like your house, Miss Marianne. It is a very
- large one, I know; and when I come to see you, I hope you
- will have new-furnished it, for it wanted it very much
- when I was there six years ago."
-
- Marianne turned away in great confusion.
- Mrs. Jennings laughed heartily; and Elinor found that in her
- resolution to know where they had been, she had actually
- made her own woman enquire of Mr. Willoughby's groom;
- and that she had by that method been informed that they
- had gone to Allenham, and spent a considerable time there
- in walking about the garden and going all over the house.
-
- Elinor could hardly believe this to be true,
- as it seemed very unlikely that Willoughby should propose,
- or Marianne consent, to enter the house while Mrs. Smith was
- in it, with whom Marianne had not the smallest acquaintance.
-
- As soon as they left the dining-room, Elinor enquired
- of her about it; and great was her surprise when she
- found that every circumstance related by Mrs. Jennings
- was perfectly true. Marianne was quite angry with her
- for doubting it.
-
- "Why should you imagine, Elinor, that we did not
- go there, or that we did not see the house? Is not it
- what you have often wished to do yourself?"
-
- "Yes, Marianne, but I would not go while Mrs. Smith
- was there, and with no other companion than Mr. Willoughby."
-
- "Mr. Willoughby however is the only person who can
- have a right to shew that house; and as he went in an open
- carriage, it was impossible to have any other companion.
- I never spent a pleasanter morning in my life."
-
- "I am afraid," replied Elinor, "that the pleasantness
- of an employment does not always evince its propriety."
-
- "On the contrary, nothing can be a stronger proof
- of it, Elinor; for if there had been any real impropriety
- in what I did, I should have been sensible of it at
- the time, for we always know when we are acting wrong,
- and with such a conviction I could have had no pleasure."
-
- "But, my dear Marianne, as it has already exposed you
- to some very impertinent remarks, do you not now begin
- to doubt the discretion of your own conduct?"
-
- "If the impertinent remarks of Mrs. Jennings are
- to be the proof of impropriety in conduct, we are all
- offending every moment of our lives. I value not her
- censure any more than I should do her commendation.
- I am not sensible of having done anything wrong in walking
- over Mrs. Smith's grounds, or in seeing her house.
- They will one day be Mr. Willoughby's, and--"
-
- "If they were one day to be your own, Marianne,
- you would not be justified in what you have done."
-
- She blushed at this hint; but it was even visibly
- gratifying to her; and after a ten minutes' interval of
- earnest thought, she came to her sister again, and said
- with great good humour, "Perhaps, Elinor, it WAS rather
- ill-judged in me to go to Allenham; but Mr. Willoughby wanted
- particularly to shew me the place; and it is a charming house,
- I assure you.--There is one remarkably pretty sitting room
- up stairs; of a nice comfortable size for constant use,
- and with modern furniture it would be delightful.
- It is a corner room, and has windows on two sides.
- On one side you look across the bowling-green, behind
- the house, to a beautiful hanging wood, and on the other you
- have a view of the church and village, and, beyond them,
- of those fine bold hills that we have so often admired.
- I did not see it to advantage, for nothing could be
- more forlorn than the furniture,--but if it were newly
- fitted up--a couple of hundred pounds, Willoughby says,
- would make it one of the pleasantest summer-rooms
- in England."
-
- Could Elinor have listened to her without interruption
- from the others, she would have described every room
- in the house with equal delight.
-
-
-
- CHAPTER 14
-
-
- The sudden termination of Colonel Brandon's visit
- at the park, with his steadiness in concealing its cause,
- filled the mind, and raised the wonder of Mrs. Jennings
- for two or three days; she was a great wonderer, as every
- one must be who takes a very lively interest in all the
- comings and goings of all their acquaintance. She wondered,
- with little intermission what could be the reason of it;
- was sure there must be some bad news, and thought over
- every kind of distress that could have befallen him,
- with a fixed determination that he should not escape
- them all.
-
- "Something very melancholy must be the matter,
- I am sure," said she. "I could see it in his face.
- Poor man! I am afraid his circumstances may be bad.
- The estate at Delaford was never reckoned more than two thousand
- a year, and his brother left everything sadly involved.
- I do think he must have been sent for about money matters,
- for what else can it be? I wonder whether it is so.
- I would give anything to know the truth of it. Perhaps it
- is about Miss Williams and, by the bye, I dare say it is,
- because he looked so conscious when I mentioned her.
- May be she is ill in town; nothing in the world more likely,
- for I have a notion she is always rather sickly.
- I would lay any wager it is about Miss Williams.
- It is not so very likely he should be distressed in
- his circumstances NOW, for he is a very prudent man,
- and to be sure must have cleared the estate by this time.
- I wonder what it can be! May be his sister is worse
- at Avignon, and has sent for him over. His setting off
- in such a hurry seems very like it. Well, I wish him out
- of all his trouble with all my heart, and a good wife into
- the bargain."
-
- So wondered, so talked Mrs. Jennings. Her opinion
- varying with every fresh conjecture, and all seeming
- equally probable as they arose. Elinor, though she felt
- really interested in the welfare of Colonel Brandon,
- could not bestow all the wonder on his going so suddenly
- away, which Mrs. Jennings was desirous of her feeling;
- for besides that the circumstance did not in her opinion
- justify such lasting amazement or variety of speculation,
- her wonder was otherwise disposed of. It was engossed
- by the extraordinary silence of her sister and Willoughby
- on the subject, which they must know to be peculiarly
- interesting to them all. As this silence continued,
- every day made it appear more strange and more incompatible
- with the disposition of both. Why they should not openly
- acknowledge to her mother and herself, what their constant
- behaviour to each other declared to have taken place,
- Elinor could not imagine.
-
- She could easily conceive that marriage might not
- be immediately in their power; for though Willoughby
- was independent, there was no reason to believe him rich.
- His estate had been rated by Sir John at about six or seven
- hundred a year; but he lived at an expense to which that income
- could hardly be equal, and he had himself often complained
- of his poverty. But for this strange kind of secrecy
- maintained by them relative to their engagement, which
- in fact concealed nothing at all, she could not account;
- and it was so wholly contradictory to their general
- opinions and practice, that a doubt sometimes entered
- her mind of their being really engaged, and this doubt
- was enough to prevent her making any inquiry of Marianne.
-
- Nothing could be more expressive of attachment
- to them all, than Willoughby's behaviour. To Marianne
- it had all the distinguishing tenderness which a lover's
- heart could give, and to the rest of the family it was the
- affectionate attention of a son and a brother. The cottage
- seemed to be considered and loved by him as his home;
- many more of his hours were spent there than at Allenham;
- and if no general engagement collected them at the park,
- the exercise which called him out in the morning was
- almost certain of ending there, where the rest of the day
- was spent by himself at the side of Marianne, and by his
- favourite pointer at her feet.
-
- One evening in particular, about a week after
- Colonel Brandon left the country, his heart seemed
- more than usually open to every feeling of attachment
- to the objects around him; and on Mrs. Dashwood's
- happening to mention her design of improving the cottage
- in the spring, he warmly opposed every alteration
- of a place which affection had established as perfect with him.
-
- "What!" he exclaimed--"Improve this dear cottage!
- No. THAT I will never consent to. Not a stone must
- be added to its walls, not an inch to its size,
- if my feelings are regarded."
-
- "Do not be alarmed," said Miss Dashwood,
- "nothing of the kind will be done; for my mother
- will never have money enough to attempt it."
-
- "I am heartily glad of it", he cried. "May she
- always be poor, if she can employ her riches no better."
-
- "Thank you, Willoughby. But you may be assured that I
- would not sacrifice one sentiment of local attachment
- of yours, or of any one whom I loved, for all the improvements
- in the world. Depend upon it that whatever unemployed
- sum may remain, when I make up my accounts in the spring,
- I would even rather lay it uselessly by than dispose
- of it in a manner so painful to you. But are you really
- so attached to this place as to see no defect in it?"
-
- "I am," said he. "To me it is faultless. Nay, more,
- I consider it as the only form of building in which happiness
- is attainable, and were I rich enough I would instantly pull
- Combe down, and build it up again in the exact plan of this cottage."
-
- "With dark narrow stairs and a kitchen that smokes,
- I suppose," said Elinor.
-
- "Yes," cried he in the same eager tone, "with all
- and every thing belonging to it;--in no one convenience
- or INconvenience about it, should the least variation
- be perceptible. Then, and then only, under such a roof, I
- might perhaps be as happy at Combe as I have been at Barton."
-
- "I flatter myself," replied Elinor, "that even under
- the disadvantage of better rooms and a broader staircase,
- you will hereafter find your own house as faultless as you
- now do this."
-
- "There certainly are circumstances," said Willoughby,
- "which might greatly endear it to me; but this place will
- always have one claim of my affection, which no other can
- possibly share."
-
- Mrs. Dashwood looked with pleasure at Marianne,
- whose fine eyes were fixed so expressively on Willoughby,
- as plainly denoted how well she understood him.
-
- "How often did I wish," added he, "when I was at
- Allenham this time twelvemonth, that Barton cottage were
- inhabited! I never passed within view of it without admiring
- its situation, and grieving that no one should live in it.
- How little did I then think that the very first news
- I should hear from Mrs. Smith, when I next came into
- the country, would be that Barton cottage was taken: and I
- felt an immediate satisfaction and interest in the event,
- which nothing but a kind of prescience of what happiness I
- should experience from it, can account for. Must it not have
- been so, Marianne?" speaking to her in a lowered voice.
- Then continuing his former tone, he said, "And yet this
- house you would spoil, Mrs. Dashwood? You would rob it
- of its simplicity by imaginary improvement! and this dear
- parlour in which our acquaintance first began, and in which
- so many happy hours have been since spent by us together,
- you would degrade to the condition of a common entrance,
- and every body would be eager to pass through the room
- which has hitherto contained within itself more real
- accommodation and comfort than any other apartment of
- the handsomest dimensions in the world could possibly afford."
-
- Mrs. Dashwood again assured him that no alteration
- of the kind should be attempted.
-
- "You are a good woman," he warmly replied.
- "Your promise makes me easy. Extend it a little farther,
- and it will make me happy. Tell me that not only your
- house will remain the same, but that I shall ever find
- you and yours as unchanged as your dwelling; and that you
- will always consider me with the kindness which has made
- everything belonging to you so dear to me."
-
- The promise was readily given, and Willoughby's
- behaviour during the whole of the evening declared
- at once his affection and happiness.
-
- "Shall we see you tomorrow to dinner?" said Mrs. Dashwood,
- when he was leaving them. "I do not ask you to come in
- the morning, for we must walk to the park, to call on Lady Middleton."
-
- He engaged to be with them by four o'clock.
-
-
-
- CHAPTER 15
-
-
- Mrs. Dashwood's visit to Lady Middleton took place
- the next day, and two of her daughters went with her;
- but Marianne excused herself from being of the party,
- under some trifling pretext of employment; and her mother,
- who concluded that a promise had been made by Willoughby
- the night before of calling on her while they were absent,
- was perfectly satisfied with her remaining at home.
-
- On their return from the park they found Willoughby's
- curricle and servant in waiting at the cottage,
- and Mrs. Dashwood was convinced that her conjecture
- had been just. So far it was all as she had foreseen;
- but on entering the house she beheld what no foresight
- had taught her to expect. They were no sooner in the
- passage than Marianne came hastily out of the parlour
- apparently in violent affliction, with her handkerchief
- at her eyes; and without noticing them ran up stairs.
- Surprised and alarmed they proceeded directly into the room
- she had just quitted, where they found only Willoughby,
- who was leaning against the mantel-piece with his back
- towards them. He turned round on their coming in,
- and his countenance shewed that he strongly partook
- of the emotion which over-powered Marianne.
-
- "Is anything the matter with her?" cried Mrs. Dashwood
- as she entered--"is she ill?"
-
- "I hope not," he replied, trying to look cheerful;
- and with a forced smile presently added, "It is I who may
- rather expect to be ill--for I am now suffering under a
- very heavy disappointment!"
-
- "Disappointment?"
-
- "Yes, for I am unable to keep my engagement with you.
- Mrs. Smith has this morning exercised the privilege
- of riches upon a poor dependent cousin, by sending me on
- business to London. I have just received my dispatches,
- and taken my farewell of Allenham; and by way of exhilaration
- I am now come to take my farewell of you."
-
- "To London!--and are you going this morning?"
-
- "Almost this moment."
-
- "This is very unfortunate. But Mrs. Smith must
- be obliged;--and her business will not detain you from
- us long I hope."
-
- He coloured as he replied, "You are very kind, but I
- have no idea of returning into Devonshire immediately.
- My visits to Mrs. Smith are never repeated within
- the twelvemonth."
-
- "And is Mrs. Smith your only friend? Is Allenham the only
- house in the neighbourhood to which you will be welcome?
- For shame, Willoughby, can you wait for an invitation here?"
-
- His colour increased; and with his eyes fixed
- on the ground he only replied, "You are too good."
-
- Mrs. Dashwood looked at Elinor with surprise.
- Elinor felt equal amazement. For a few moments every one
- was silent. Mrs. Dashwood first spoke.
-
- "I have only to add, my dear Willoughby, that at
- Barton cottage you will always be welcome; for I will not
- press you to return here immediately, because you only
- can judge how far THAT might be pleasing to Mrs. Smith;
- and on this head I shall be no more disposed to question
- your judgment than to doubt your inclination."
-
- "My engagements at present," replied Willoughby,
- confusedly, "are of such a nature--that--I dare not flatter myself"--
-
- He stopt. Mrs. Dashwood was too much astonished
- to speak, and another pause succeeded. This was broken
- by Willoughby, who said with a faint smile, "It is folly
- to linger in this manner. I will not torment myself
- any longer by remaining among friends whose society
- it is impossible for me now to enjoy."
-
- He then hastily took leave of them all and left
- the room. They saw him step into his carriage,
- and in a minute it was out of sight.
-
- Mrs. Dashwood felt too much for speech, and instantly
- quitted the parlour to give way in solitude to the concern
- and alarm which this sudden departure occasioned.
-
- Elinor's uneasiness was at least equal to her mother's.
- She thought of what had just passed with anxiety and distrust.
- Willoughby's behaviour in taking leave of them, his embarrassment,
- and affectation of cheerfulness, and, above all, his unwillingness
- to accept her mother's invitation, a backwardness so unlike a lover,
- so unlike himself, greatly disturbed her. One moment she feared
- that no serious design had ever been formed on his side; and the
- next that some unfortunate quarrel had taken place between him and
- her sister;--the distress in which Marianne had quitted the room
- was such as a serious quarrel could most reasonably account for,
- though when she considered what Marianne's love for him was,
- a quarrel seemed almost impossible.
-
- But whatever might be the particulars of their separation,
- her sister's affliction was indubitable; and she thought
- with the tenderest compassion of that violent sorrow
- which Marianne was in all probability not merely giving
- way to as a relief, but feeding and encouraging as a duty.
-
- In about half an hour her mother returned, and though
- her eyes were red, her countenance was not uncheerful.
-
- "Our dear Willoughby is now some miles from Barton, Elinor,"
- said she, as she sat down to work, "and with how heavy a heart
- does he travel?"
-
- "It is all very strange. So suddenly to be gone! It
- seems but the work of a moment. And last night he was
- with us so happy, so cheerful, so affectionate? And now,
- after only ten minutes notice--Gone too without intending
- to return!--Something more than what be owned to us must
- have happened. He did not speak, he did not behave
- like himself. YOU must have seen the difference as well as I.
- What can it be? Can they have quarrelled? Why else should he
- have shewn such unwillingness to accept your invitation here?"--
-
- "It was not inclination that he wanted, Elinor; I could
- plainly see THAT. He had not the power of accepting it.
- I have thought it all over I assure you, and I can
- perfectly account for every thing that at first seemed
- strange to me as well as to you."
-
- "Can you, indeed!"
-
- "Yes. I have explained it to myself in the most
- satisfactory way;--but you, Elinor, who love to doubt
- where you can--it will not satisfy YOU, I know; but you
- shall not talk ME out of my trust in it. I am persuaded
- that Mrs. Smith suspects his regard for Marianne,
- disapproves of it, (perhaps because she has other views
- for him,) and on that account is eager to get him away;--
- and that the business which she sends him off to transact
- is invented as an excuse to dismiss him. This is what I
- believe to have happened. He is, moreover, aware that she
- DOES disapprove the connection, he dares not therefore
- at present confess to her his engagement with Marianne,
- and he feels himself obliged, from his dependent situation,
- to give into her schemes, and absent himself from
- Devonshire for a while. You will tell me, I know,
- that this may or may NOT have happened; but I will listen
- to no cavil, unless you can point out any other method
- of understanding the affair as satisfactory at this.
- And now, Elinor, what have you to say?"
-
- "Nothing, for you have anticipated my answer."
-
- "Then you would have told me, that it might or might not
- have happened. Oh, Elinor, how incomprehensible are your
- feelings! You had rather take evil upon credit than good.
- You had rather look out for misery for Marianne, and guilt
- for poor Willoughby, than an apology for the latter.
- You are resolved to think him blameable, because he took
- leave of us with less affection than his usual behaviour
- has shewn. And is no allowance to be made for inadvertence,
- or for spirits depressed by recent disappointment? Are
- no probabilities to be accepted, merely because they
- are not certainties? Is nothing due to the man whom we
- have all such reason to love, and no reason in the world
- to think ill of? To the possibility of motives unanswerable
- in themselves, though unavoidably secret for a while? And,
- after all, what is it you suspect him of?"
-
- "I can hardly tell myself. But suspicion of
- something unpleasant is the inevitable consequence
- of such an alteration as we just witnessed in him.
- There is great truth, however, in what you have now urged
- of the allowances which ought to be made for him, and it
- is my wish to be candid in my judgment of every body.
- Willoughby may undoubtedly have very sufficient
- reasons for his conduct, and I will hope that he has.
- But it would have been more like Willoughby to acknowledge
- them at once. Secrecy may be advisable; but still I
- cannot help wondering at its being practiced by him."
-
- "Do not blame him, however, for departing from
- his character, where the deviation is necessary.
- But you really do admit the justice of what I have said
- in his defence?--I am happy--and he is acquitted."
-
- "Not entirely. It may be proper to conceal their
- engagement (if they ARE engaged) from Mrs. Smith--
- and if that is the case, it must be highly expedient
- for Willoughby to be but little in Devonshire at present.
- But this is no excuse for their concealing it from us."
-
- "Concealing it from us! my dear child, do you accuse
- Willoughby and Marianne of concealment? This is strange
- indeed, when your eyes have been reproaching them every day
- for incautiousness."
-
- "I want no proof of their affection," said Elinor;
- "but of their engagement I do."
-
- "I am perfectly satisfied of both."
-
- "Yet not a syllable has been said to you on the
- subject, by either of them."
-
- "I have not wanted syllables where actions have
- spoken so plainly. Has not his behaviour to Marianne
- and to all of us, for at least the last fortnight,
- declared that he loved and considered her as his future wife,
- and that he felt for us the attachment of the nearest
- relation? Have we not perfectly understood each other?
- Has not my consent been daily asked by his looks, his manner,
- his attentive and affectionate respect? My Elinor,
- is it possible to doubt their engagement? How could
- such a thought occur to you? How is it to be supposed
- that Willoughby, persuaded as he must be of your
- sister's love, should leave her, and leave her perhaps
- for months, without telling her of his affection;--that
- they should part without a mutual exchange of confidence?"
-
- "I confess," replied Elinor, "that every circumstance
- except ONE is in favour of their engagement;
- but that ONE is the total silence of both on the subject,
- and with me it almost outweighs every other."
-
- "How strange this is! You must think wretchedly indeed
- of Willoughby, if, after all that has openly passed between them,
- you can doubt the nature of the terms on which they are together.
- Has he been acting a part in his behaviour to your sister
- all this time? Do you suppose him really indifferent to her?"
-
- "No, I cannot think that. He must and does love her
- I am sure."
-
- "But with a strange kind of tenderness, if he can
- leave her with such indifference, such carelessness
- of the future, as you attribute to him."
-
- "You must remember, my dear mother, that I have never
- considered this matter as certain. I have had my doubts,
- I confess; but they are fainter than they were, and they
- may soon be entirely done away. If we find they correspond,
- every fear of mine will be removed."
-
- "A mighty concession indeed! If you were to see
- them at the altar, you would suppose they were going to
- be married. Ungracious girl! But I require no such proof.
- Nothing in my opinion has ever passed to justify doubt;
- no secrecy has been attempted; all has been uniformly open
- and unreserved. You cannot doubt your sister's wishes.
- It must be Willoughby therefore whom you suspect. But why?
- Is he not a man of honour and feeling? Has there been any
- inconsistency on his side to create alarm? can he be deceitful?"
-
- "I hope not, I believe not," cried Elinor.
- "I love Willoughby, sincerely love him; and suspicion of his
- integrity cannot be more painful to yourself than to me.
- It has been involuntary, and I will not encourage it.
- I was startled, I confess, by the alteration in his
- manners this morning;--he did not speak like himself,
- and did not return your kindness with any cordiality.
- But all this may be explained by such a situation of his
- affairs as you have supposed. He had just parted from
- my sister, had seen her leave him in the greatest affliction;
- and if he felt obliged, from a fear of offending Mrs. Smith,
- to resist the temptation of returning here soon, and yet
- aware that by declining your invitation, by saying
- that he was going away for some time, he should seem
- to act an ungenerous, a suspicious part by our family,
- be might well be embarrassed and disturbed. In such a case,
- a plain and open avowal of his difficulties would have been
- more to his honour I think, as well as more consistent
- with his general character;--but I will not raise objections
- against any one's conduct on so illiberal a foundation,
- as a difference in judgment from myself, or a deviation from
- what I may think right and consistent."
-
- "You speak very properly. Willoughby certainly does
- not deserve to be suspected. Though WE have not known
- him long, he is no stranger in this part of the world;
- and who has ever spoken to his disadvantage? Had he been
- in a situation to act independently and marry immediately,
- it might have been odd that he should leave us without
- acknowledging everything to me at once: but this is not the case.
- It is an engagement in some respects not prosperously begun,
- for their marriage must be at a very uncertain distance;
- and even secrecy, as far as it can be observed, may now
- be very advisable."
-
- They were interrupted by the entrance of Margaret;
- and Elinor was then at liberty to think over the representations
- of her mother, to acknowledge the probability of many,
- and hope for the justice of all.
-
- They saw nothing of Marianne till dinner time,
- when she entered the room and took her place at the table
- without saying a word. Her eyes were red and swollen;
- and it seemed as if her tears were even then restrained
- with difficulty. She avoided the looks of them all,
- could neither eat nor speak, and after some time, on her
- mother's silently pressing her hand with tender compassion,
- her small degree of fortitude was quite overcome, she burst
- into tears and left the room.
-
- This violent oppression of spirits continued the
- whole evening. She was without any power, because she
- was without any desire of command over herself.
- The slightest mention of anything relative to Willoughby
- overpowered her in an instant; and though her family
- were most anxiously attentive to her comfort, it was
- impossible for them, if they spoke at all, to keep clear
- of every subject which her feelings connected with him.
-
-
-
- CHAPTER 16
-
-
- Marianne would have thought herself very inexcusable
- had she been able to sleep at all the first night
- after parting from Willoughby. She would have been
- ashamed to look her family in the face the next morning,
- had she not risen from her bed in more need of repose
- than when she lay down in it. But the feelings which
- made such composure a disgrace, left her in no danger
- of incurring it. She was awake the whole night, and she
- wept the greatest part of it. She got up with a headache,
- was unable to talk, and unwilling to take any nourishment;
- giving pain every moment to her mother and sisters,
- and forbidding all attempt at consolation from either.
- Her sensibility was potent enough!
-
- When breakfast was over she walked out by herself,
- and wandered about the village of Allenham, indulging the
- recollection of past enjoyment and crying over the present
- reverse for the chief of the morning.
-
- The evening passed off in the equal indulgence of feeling.
- She played over every favourite song that she had been used
- to play to Willoughby, every air in which their voices
- had been oftenest joined, and sat at the instrument gazing
- on every line of music that he had written out for her,
- till her heart was so heavy that no farther sadness
- could be gained; and this nourishment of grief was every
- day applied. She spent whole hours at the pianoforte
- alternately singing and crying; her voice often totally
- suspended by her tears. In books too, as well as in music,
- she courted the misery which a contrast between the past
- and present was certain of giving. She read nothing
- but what they had been used to read together.
-
- Such violence of affliction indeed could not be supported
- for ever; it sunk within a few days into a calmer melancholy;
- but these employments, to which she daily recurred,
- her solitary walks and silent meditations, still produced
- occasional effusions of sorrow as lively as ever.
-
- No letter from Willoughby came; and none seemed expected
- by Marianne. Her mother was surprised, and Elinor again
- became uneasy. But Mrs. Dashwood could find explanations
- whenever she wanted them, which at least satisfied herself.
-
- "Remember, Elinor," said she, "how very often Sir John
- fetches our letters himself from the post, and carries them
- to it. We have already agreed that secrecy may be necessary,
- and we must acknowledge that it could not be maintained if
- their correspondence were to pass through Sir John's hands."
-
- Elinor could not deny the truth of this, and she tried
- to find in it a motive sufficient for their silence.
- But there was one method so direct, so simple, and in
- her opinion so eligible of knowing the real state
- of the affair, and of instantly removing all mystery,
- that she could not help suggesting it to her mother.
-
- "Why do you not ask Marianne at once," said she,
- "whether she is or she is not engaged to Willoughby? From you,
- her mother, and so kind, so indulgent a mother, the question
- could not give offence. It would be the natural result
- of your affection for her. She used to be all unreserve,
- and to you more especially."
-
- "I would not ask such a question for the world.
- Supposing it possible that they are not engaged,
- what distress would not such an enquiry inflict! At any
- rate it would be most ungenerous. I should never deserve
- her confidence again, after forcing from her a confession
- of what is meant at present to be unacknowledged to any one.
- I know Marianne's heart: I know that she dearly loves me,
- and that I shall not be the last to whom the affair is made known,
- when circumstances make the revealment of it eligible.
- I would not attempt to force the confidence of any one;
- of a child much less; because a sense of duty would prevent
- the denial which her wishes might direct."
-
- Elinor thought this generosity overstrained,
- considering her sister's youth, and urged the matter farther,
- but in vain; common sense, common care, common prudence,
- were all sunk in Mrs. Dashwood's romantic delicacy.
-
- It was several days before Willoughby's name
- was mentioned before Marianne by any of her family;
- Sir John and Mrs. Jennings, indeed, were not so nice;
- their witticisms added pain to many a painful hour;--
- but one evening, Mrs. Dashwood, accidentally taking up a
- volume of Shakespeare, exclaimed,
-
- "We have never finished Hamlet, Marianne; our dear
- Willoughby went away before we could get through it.
- We will put it by, that when he comes again...But it may
- be months, perhaps, before THAT happens."
-
- "Months!" cried Marianne, with strong surprise.
- "No--nor many weeks."
-
- Mrs. Dashwood was sorry for what she had said;
- but it gave Elinor pleasure, as it produced a reply
- from Marianne so expressive of confidence in Willoughby
- and knowledge of his intentions.
-
- One morning, about a week after his leaving the country,
- Marianne was prevailed on to join her sisters in their
- usual walk, instead of wandering away by herself.
- Hitherto she had carefully avoided every companion in
- her rambles. If her sisters intended to walk on the downs,
- she directly stole away towards the lanes; if they talked
- of the valley, she was as speedy in climbing the hills,
- and could never be found when the others set off.
- But at length she was secured by the exertions of Elinor,
- who greatly disapproved such continual seclusion. They walked
- along the road through the valley, and chiefly in silence,
- for Marianne's MIND could not be controlled, and Elinor,
- satisfied with gaining one point, would not then attempt more.
- Beyond the entrance of the valley, where the country,
- though still rich, was less wild and more open, a long
- stretch of the road which they had travelled on first coming
- to Barton, lay before them; and on reaching that point,
- they stopped to look around them, and examine a prospect
- which formed the distance of their view from the cottage,
- from a spot which they had never happened to reach in any
- of their walks before.
-
- Amongst the objects in the scene, they soon discovered
- an animated one; it was a man on horseback riding towards them.
- In a few minutes they could distinguish him to be a gentleman;
- and in a moment afterwards Marianne rapturously exclaimed,
-
- "It is he; it is indeed;--I know it is!"--and was
- hastening to meet him, when Elinor cried out,
-
- "Indeed, Marianne, I think you are mistaken. It is
- not Willoughby. The person is not tall enough for him,
- and has not his air."
-
- "He has, he has," cried Marianne, "I am sure he has.
- His air, his coat, his horse. I knew how soon he would come."
-
- She walked eagerly on as she spoke; and Elinor,
- to screen Marianne from particularity, as she felt almost
- certain of its not being Willoughby, quickened her
- pace and kept up with her. They were soon within
- thirty yards of the gentleman. Marianne looked again;
- her heart sunk within her; and abruptly turning round,
- she was hurrying back, when the voices of both her sisters
- were raised to detain her; a third, almost as well known
- as Willoughby's, joined them in begging her to stop,
- and she turned round with surprise to see and welcome
- Edward Ferrars.
-
- He was the only person in the world who could
- at that moment be forgiven for not being Willoughby;
- the only one who could have gained a smile from her;
- but she dispersed her tears to smile on HIM, and in her
- sister's happiness forgot for a time her own disappointment.
-
- He dismounted, and giving his horse to his servant,
- walked back with them to Barton, whither he was purposely
- coming to visit them.
-
- He was welcomed by them all with great cordiality,
- but especially by Marianne, who showed more warmth of
- regard in her reception of him than even Elinor herself.
- To Marianne, indeed, the meeting between Edward and her sister
- was but a continuation of that unaccountable coldness which she
- had often observed at Norland in their mutual behaviour.
- On Edward's side, more particularly, there was a deficiency
- of all that a lover ought to look and say on such an occasion.
- He was confused, seemed scarcely sensible of pleasure
- in seeing them, looked neither rapturous nor gay,
- said little but what was forced from him by questions,
- and distinguished Elinor by no mark of affection.
- Marianne saw and listened with increasing surprise.
- She began almost to feel a dislike of Edward; and it ended,
- as every feeling must end with her, by carrying back her
- thoughts to Willoughby, whose manners formed a contrast
- sufficiently striking to those of his brother elect.
-
- After a short silence which succeeded the first
- surprise and enquiries of meeting, Marianne asked
- Edward if he came directly from London. No, he had
- been in Devonshire a fortnight.
-
- "A fortnight!" she repeated, surprised at his being
- so long in the same county with Elinor without seeing
- her before.
-
- He looked rather distressed as he added, that he
- had been staying with some friends near Plymouth.
-
- "Have you been lately in Sussex?" said Elinor.
-
- "I was at Norland about a month ago."
-
- "And how does dear, dear Norland look?" cried Marianne.
-
- "Dear, dear Norland," said Elinor, "probably looks
- much as it always does at this time of the year.
- The woods and walks thickly covered with dead leaves."
-
- "Oh," cried Marianne, "with what transporting sensation
- have I formerly seen them fall! How have I delighted,
- as I walked, to see them driven in showers about me
- by the wind! What feelings have they, the season, the air
- altogether inspired! Now there is no one to regard them.
- They are seen only as a nuisance, swept hastily off,
- and driven as much as possible from the sight."
-
- "It is not every one," said Elinor, "who has your
- passion for dead leaves."
-
- "No; my feelings are not often shared, not often
- understood. But SOMETIMES they are."--As she said this,
- she sunk into a reverie for a few moments;--but rousing
- herself again, "Now, Edward," said she, calling his attention
- to the prospect, "here is Barton valley. Look up to it,
- and be tranquil if you can. Look at those hills!
- Did you ever see their equals? To the left is Barton park,
- amongst those woods and plantations. You may see the end
- of the house. And there, beneath that farthest hill,
- which rises with such grandeur, is our cottage."
-
- "It is a beautiful country," he replied; "but these
- bottoms must be dirty in winter."
-
- "How can you think of dirt, with such objects before you?"
-
- "Because," replied he, smiling, "among the rest of the
- objects before me, I see a very dirty lane."
-
- "How strange!" said Marianne to herself as she walked on.
-
- "Have you an agreeable neighbourhood here? Are the
- Middletons pleasant people?"
-
- "No, not all," answered Marianne; "we could not
- be more unfortunately situated."
-
- "Marianne," cried her sister, "how can you say so? How can
- you be so unjust? They are a very respectable family, Mr. Ferrars;
- and towards us have behaved in the friendliest manner. Have you
- forgot, Marianne, how many pleasant days we have owed to them?"
-
- "No," said Marianne, in a low voice, "nor how many
- painful moments."
-
- Elinor took no notice of this; and directing
- her attention to their visitor, endeavoured to support
- something like discourse with him, by talking of their
- present residence, its conveniences, &c. extorting from him
- occasional questions and remarks. His coldness and reserve
- mortified her severely; she was vexed and half angry;
- but resolving to regulate her behaviour to him by the past
- rather than the present, she avoided every appearance
- of resentment or displeasure, and treated him as she
- thought he ought to be treated from the family connection.
-
-
-
- CHAPTER 17
-
-
- Mrs. Dashwood was surprised only for a moment at
- seeing him; for his coming to Barton was, in her opinion,
- of all things the most natural. Her joy and expression
- of regard long outlived her wonder. He received the kindest
- welcome from her; and shyness, coldness, reserve could not
- stand against such a reception. They had begun to fail him
- before he entered the house, and they were quite overcome
- by the captivating manners of Mrs. Dashwood. Indeed a man
- could not very well be in love with either of her daughters,
- without extending the passion to her; and Elinor had the
- satisfaction of seeing him soon become more like himself.
- His affections seemed to reanimate towards them all,
- and his interest in their welfare again became perceptible.
- He was not in spirits, however; he praised their house,
- admired its prospect, was attentive, and kind; but still
- he was not in spirits. The whole family perceived it,
- and Mrs. Dashwood, attributing it to some want of liberality
- in his mother, sat down to table indignant against all
- selfish parents.
-
- "What are Mrs. Ferrars's views for you at present, Edward?"
- said she, when dinner was over and they had drawn round
- the fire; "are you still to be a great orator in spite of yourself?"
-
- "No. I hope my mother is now convinced that I have
- no more talents than inclination for a public life!"
-
- "But how is your fame to be established? for famous you
- must be to satisfy all your family; and with no inclination
- for expense, no affection for strangers, no profession,
- and no assurance, you may find it a difficult matter."
-
- "I shall not attempt it. I have no wish to be
- distinguished; and have every reason to hope I never shall.
- Thank Heaven! I cannot be forced into genius and eloquence."
-
- "You have no ambition, I well know. Your wishes
- are all moderate."
-
- "As moderate as those of the rest of the world,
- I believe. I wish as well as every body else to be
- perfectly happy; but, like every body else it must be
- in my own way. Greatness will not make me so."
-
- "Strange that it would!" cried Marianne. "What have
- wealth or grandeur to do with happiness?"
-
- "Grandeur has but little," said Elinor, "but wealth
- has much to do with it."
-
- "Elinor, for shame!" said Marianne, "money can only
- give happiness where there is nothing else to give it.
- Beyond a competence, it can afford no real satisfaction,
- as far as mere self is concerned."
-
- "Perhaps," said Elinor, smiling, "we may come
- to the same point. YOUR competence and MY wealth
- are very much alike, I dare say; and without them,
- as the world goes now, we shall both agree that every
- kind of external comfort must be wanting. Your ideas
- are only more noble than mine. Come, what is your competence?"
-
- "About eighteen hundred or two thousand a year;
- not more than THAT."
-
- Elinor laughed. "TWO thousand a year! ONE is my
- wealth! I guessed how it would end."
-
- "And yet two thousand a-year is a very moderate income,"
- said Marianne. "A family cannot well be maintained on
- a smaller. I am sure I am not extravagant in my demands.
- A proper establishment of servants, a carriage, perhaps two,
- and hunters, cannot be supported on less."
-
- Elinor smiled again, to hear her sister describing
- so accurately their future expenses at Combe Magna.
-
- "Hunters!" repeated Edward--"but why must you have
- hunters? Every body does not hunt."
-
- Marianne coloured as she replied, "But most people do."
-
- "I wish," said Margaret, striking out a novel thought,
- "that somebody would give us all a large fortune apiece!"
-
- "Oh that they would!" cried Marianne, her eyes
- sparkling with animation, and her cheeks glowing
- with the delight of such imaginary happiness.
-
- "We are all unanimous in that wish, I suppose,"
- said Elinor, "in spite of the insufficiency of wealth."
-
- "Oh dear!" cried Margaret, "how happy I should be!
- I wonder what I should do with it!"
-
- Marianne looked as if she had no doubt on that point.
-
- "I should be puzzled to spend so large a fortune myself,"
- said Mrs. Dashwood, "if my children were all to be rich
- my help."
-
- "You must begin your improvements on this house,"
- observed Elinor, "and your difficulties will soon vanish."
-
- "What magnificent orders would travel from this family
- to London," said Edward, "in such an event! What a happy
- day for booksellers, music-sellers, and print-shops! You,
- Miss Dashwood, would give a general commission for every
- new print of merit to be sent you--and as for Marianne,
- I know her greatness of soul, there would not be music enough
- in London to content her. And books!--Thomson, Cowper,
- Scott--she would buy them all over and over again: she
- would buy up every copy, I believe, to prevent their
- falling into unworthy hands; and she would have every
- book that tells her how to admire an old twisted tree.
- Should not you, Marianne? Forgive me, if I am very saucy.
- But I was willing to shew you that I had not forgot our
- old disputes."
-
- "I love to be reminded of the past, Edward--whether it
- be melancholy or gay, I love to recall it--and you
- will never offend me by talking of former times.
- You are very right in supposing how my money would be
- spent--some of it, at least--my loose cash would certainly
- be employed in improving my collection of music and books."
-
- "And the bulk of your fortune would be laid out
- in annuities on the authors or their heirs."
-
- "No, Edward, I should have something else to do
- with it."
-
- "Perhaps, then, you would bestow it as a reward on that
- person who wrote the ablest defence of your favourite maxim,
- that no one can ever be in love more than once in their
- life--your opinion on that point is unchanged, I presume?"
-
- "Undoubtedly. At my time of life opinions are tolerably fixed.
- It is not likely that I should now see or hear any thing to change them."
-
- "Marianne is as steadfast as ever, you see," said Elinor,
- "she is not at all altered."
-
- "She is only grown a little more grave than she was."
-
- "Nay, Edward," said Marianne, "you need not reproach me.
- You are not very gay yourself."
-
- "Why should you think so!" replied he, with a sigh.
- "But gaiety never was a part of MY character."
-
- "Nor do I think it a part of Marianne's," said Elinor;
- "I should hardly call her a lively girl--she is very earnest,
- very eager in all she does--sometimes talks a great deal
- and always with animation--but she is not often really merry."
-
- "I believe you are right," he replied, "and yet I
- have always set her down as a lively girl."
-
- "I have frequently detected myself in such kind of mistakes,"
- said Elinor, "in a total misapprehension of character in some
- point or other: fancying people so much more gay or grave,
- or ingenious or stupid than they really are, and I can
- hardly tell why or in what the deception originated.
- Sometimes one is guided by what they say of themselves,
- and very frequently by what other people say of them,
- without giving oneself time to deliberate and judge."
-
- "But I thought it was right, Elinor," said Marianne,
- "to be guided wholly by the opinion of other people.
- I thought our judgments were given us merely to be subservient
- to those of neighbours. This has always been your doctrine,
- I am sure."
-
- "No, Marianne, never. My doctrine has never aimed
- at the subjection of the understanding. All I have
- ever attempted to influence has been the behaviour.
- You must not confound my meaning. I am guilty, I confess,
- of having often wished you to treat our acquaintance
- in general with greater attention; but when have I advised
- you to adopt their sentiments or to conform to their
- judgment in serious matters?"
-
- "You have not been able to bring your sister over to your
- plan of general civility," said Edward to Elinor, "Do you gain
- no ground?"
-
- "Quite the contrary," replied Elinor,
- looking expressively at Marianne.
-
- "My judgment," he returned, "is all on your side
- of the question; but I am afraid my practice is much
- more on your sister's. I never wish to offend, but I
- am so foolishly shy, that I often seem negligent,
- when I am only kept back by my natural awkwardness.
- I have frequently thought that I must have been intended
- by nature to be fond of low company, I am so little at
- my ease among strangers of gentility!"
-
- "Marianne has not shyness to excuse any inattention
- of hers," said Elinor.
-
- "She knows her own worth too well for false shame,"
- replied Edward. "Shyness is only the effect of a sense
- of inferiority in some way or other. If I could persuade
- myself that my manners were perfectly easy and graceful,
- I should not be shy."
-
- "But you would still be reserved," said Marianne,
- "and that is worse."
-
- Edward started--"Reserved! Am I reserved, Marianne?"
-
- "Yes, very."
-
- "I do not understand you," replied he, colouring.
- "Reserved!--how, in what manner? What am I to tell you?
- What can you suppose?"
-
- Elinor looked surprised at his emotion; but trying
- to laugh off the subject, she said to him, "Do not you
- know my sister well enough to understand what she means?
- Do not you know she calls every one reserved who does not
- talk as fast, and admire what she admires as rapturously
- as herself?"
-
- Edward made no answer. His gravity and thoughtfulness
- returned on him in their fullest extent--and he sat
- for some time silent and dull.
-
-
-
- CHAPTER 18
-
-
- Elinor saw, with great uneasiness the low spirits
- of her friend. His visit afforded her but a very
- partial satisfaction, while his own enjoyment in it
- appeared so imperfect. It was evident that he was unhappy;
- she wished it were equally evident that he still
- distinguished her by the same affection which once
- she had felt no doubt of inspiring; but hitherto the
- continuance of his preference seemed very uncertain;
- and the reservedness of his manner towards her contradicted
- one moment what a more animated look had intimated the preceding one.
-
- He joined her and Marianne in the breakfast-room
- the next morning before the others were down; and Marianne,
- who was always eager to promote their happiness as far
- as she could, soon left them to themselves. But before she
- was half way upstairs she heard the parlour door open, and,
- turning round, was astonished to see Edward himself come out.
-
- "I am going into the village to see my horses,"
- said be, "as you are not yet ready for breakfast; I shall
- be back again presently."
-
- ***
-
- Edward returned to them with fresh admiration
- of the surrounding country; in his walk to the village,
- he had seen many parts of the valley to advantage;
- and the village itself, in a much higher situation than
- the cottage, afforded a general view of the whole, which had
- exceedingly pleased him. This was a subject which ensured
- Marianne's attention, and she was beginning to describe
- her own admiration of these scenes, and to question him more
- minutely on the objects that had particularly struck him,
- when Edward interrupted her by saying, "You must not
- enquire too far, Marianne--remember I have no knowledge
- in the picturesque, and I shall offend you by my ignorance
- and want of taste if we come to particulars. I shall call
- hills steep, which ought to be bold; surfaces strange
- and uncouth, which ought to be irregular and rugged;
- and distant objects out of sight, which ought only to be
- indistinct through the soft medium of a hazy atmosphere.
- You must be satisfied with such admiration as I can
- honestly give. I call it a very fine country--the
- hills are steep, the woods seem full of fine timber,
- and the valley looks comfortable and snug--with rich
- meadows and several neat farm houses scattered here
- and there. It exactly answers my idea of a fine country,
- because it unites beauty with utility--and I dare say it
- is a picturesque one too, because you admire it; I can
- easily believe it to be full of rocks and promontories,
- grey moss and brush wood, but these are all lost on me.
- I know nothing of the picturesque."
-
- "I am afraid it is but too true," said Marianne;
- "but why should you boast of it?"
-
- "I suspect," said Elinor, "that to avoid one kind
- of affectation, Edward here falls into another. Because he
- believes many people pretend to more admiration of the beauties
- of nature than they really feel, and is disgusted with
- such pretensions, he affects greater indifference and less
- discrimination in viewing them himself than he possesses.
- He is fastidious and will have an affectation of his own."
-
- "It is very true," said Marianne, "that admiration
- of landscape scenery is become a mere jargon.
- Every body pretends to feel and tries to describe with
- the taste and elegance of him who first defined what
- picturesque beauty was. I detest jargon of every kind,
- and sometimes I have kept my feelings to myself,
- because I could find no language to describe them
- in but what was worn and hackneyed out of all sense and meaning."
-
- "I am convinced," said Edward, "that you really feel
- all the delight in a fine prospect which you profess
- to feel. But, in return, your sister must allow me
- to feel no more than I profess. I like a fine prospect,
- but not on picturesque principles. I do not like crooked,
- twisted, blasted trees. I admire them much more if they
- are tall, straight, and flourishing. I do not like ruined,
- tattered cottages. I am not fond of nettles or thistles,
- or heath blossoms. I have more pleasure in a snug
- farm-house than a watch-tower--and a troop of tidy,
- happy villages please me better than the finest banditti
- in the world."
-
- Marianne looked with amazement at Edward,
- with compassion at her sister. Elinor only laughed.
-
- The subject was continued no farther; and Marianne
- remained thoughtfully silent, till a new object suddenly
- engaged her attention. She was sitting by Edward, and
- in taking his tea from Mrs. Dashwood, his hand passed
- so directly before her, as to make a ring, with a plait
- of hair in the centre, very conspicuous on one of his fingers.
-
- "I never saw you wear a ring before, Edward," she cried.
- "Is that Fanny's hair? I remember her promising to give
- you some. But I should have thought her hair had been darker."
-
- Marianne spoke inconsiderately what she really felt--
- but when she saw how much she had pained Edward, her own
- vexation at her want of thought could not be surpassed
- by his. He coloured very deeply, and giving a momentary
- glance at Elinor, replied, "Yes; it is my sister's hair.
- The setting always casts a different shade on it,
- you know."
-
- Elinor had met his eye, and looked conscious likewise.
- That the hair was her own, she instantaneously felt as
- well satisfied as Marianne; the only difference in their
- conclusions was, that what Marianne considered as a free
- gift from her sister, Elinor was conscious must have been
- procured by some theft or contrivance unknown to herself.
- She was not in a humour, however, to regard it as an affront,
- and affecting to take no notice of what passed,
- by instantly talking of something else, she internally
- resolved henceforward to catch every opportunity of eyeing
- the hair and of satisfying herself, beyond all doubt,
- that it was exactly the shade of her own.
-
- Edward's embarrassment lasted some time, and it
- ended in an absence of mind still more settled.
- He was particularly grave the whole morning.
- Marianne severely censured herself for what she had said;
- but her own forgiveness might have been more speedy,
- had she known how little offence it had given her sister.
-
- Before the middle of the day, they were visited by Sir
- John and Mrs. Jennings, who, having heard of the arrival
- of a gentleman at the cottage, came to take a survey
- of the guest. With the assistance of his mother-in-law,
- Sir John was not long in discovering that the name of
- Ferrars began with an F. and this prepared a future mine
- of raillery against the devoted Elinor, which nothing but
- the newness of their acquaintance with Edward could have
- prevented from being immediately sprung. But, as it was,
- she only learned, from some very significant looks, how far
- their penetration, founded on Margaret's instructions, extended.
-
- Sir John never came to the Dashwoods without either
- inviting them to dine at the park the next day, or to drink
- tea with them that evening. On the present occasion,
- for the better entertainment of their visitor, towards
- whose amusement he felt himself bound to contribute,
- he wished to engage them for both.
-
- "You MUST drink tea with us to night," said he,
- "for we shall be quite alone--and tomorrow you must
- absolutely dine with us, for we shall be a large party."
-
- Mrs. Jennings enforced the necessity. "And who knows
- but you may raise a dance," said she. "And that will
- tempt YOU, Miss Marianne."
-
- "A dance!" cried Marianne. "Impossible! Who is to dance?"
-
- "Who! why yourselves, and the Careys, and Whitakers
- to be sure.--What! you thought nobody could dance
- because a certain person that shall be nameless is gone!"
-
- "I wish with all my soul," cried Sir John,
- "that Willoughby were among us again."
-
- This, and Marianne's blushing, gave new suspicions
- to Edward. "And who is Willoughby?" said he, in a low voice,
- to Miss Dashwood, by whom he was sitting.
-
- She gave him a brief reply. Marianne's countenance
- was more communicative. Edward saw enough to comprehend,
- not only the meaning of others, but such of Marianne's
- expressions as had puzzled him before; and when their
- visitors left them, he went immediately round her, and said,
- in a whisper, "I have been guessing. Shall I tell you
- my guess?"
-
- "What do you mean?"
-
- "Shall I tell you."
-
- "Certainly."
-
- "Well then; I guess that Mr. Willoughby hunts."
-
- Marianne was surprised and confused, yet she could
- not help smiling at the quiet archness of his manner,
- and after a moment's silence, said,
-
- "Oh, Edward! How can you?--But the time will come
- I hope...I am sure you will like him."
-
- "I do not doubt it," replied he, rather astonished
- at her earnestness and warmth; for had he not imagined it
- to be a joke for the good of her acquaintance in general,
- founded only on a something or a nothing between Mr. Willoughby
- and herself, he would not have ventured to mention it.
-
-
-
- CHAPTER 19
-
-
- Edward remained a week at the cottage; he was earnestly
- pressed by Mrs. Dashwood to stay longer; but, as if he
- were bent only on self-mortification, he seemed resolved
- to be gone when his enjoyment among his friends was at
- the height. His spirits, during the last two or three days,
- though still very unequal, were greatly improved--he grew
- more and more partial to the house and environs--never
- spoke of going away without a sigh--declared his time
- to be wholly disengaged--even doubted to what place he
- should go when he left them--but still, go he must.
- Never had any week passed so quickly--he could hardly
- believe it to be gone. He said so repeatedly; other things
- he said too, which marked the turn of his feelings and gave
- the lie to his actions. He had no pleasure at Norland;
- he detested being in town; but either to Norland or London,
- he must go. He valued their kindness beyond any thing,
- and his greatest happiness was in being with them.
- Yet, he must leave them at the end of a week, in spite
- of their wishes and his own, and without any restraint
- on his time.
-
- Elinor placed all that was astonishing in this
- way of acting to his mother's account; and it was
- happy for her that he had a mother whose character
- was so imperfectly known to her, as to be the general
- excuse for every thing strange on the part of her son.
- Disappointed, however, and vexed as she was, and sometimes
- displeased with his uncertain behaviour to herself,
- she was very well disposed on the whole to regard his actions
- with all the candid allowances and generous qualifications,
- which had been rather more painfully extorted from her,
- for Willoughby's service, by her mother. His want of spirits,
- of openness, and of consistency, were most usually
- attributed to his want of independence, and his better
- knowledge of Mrs. Ferrars's disposition and designs.
- The shortness of his visit, the steadiness of his purpose
- in leaving them, originated in the same fettered inclination,
- the same inevitable necessity of temporizing with his mother.
- The old well-established grievance of duty against will,
- parent against child, was the cause of all. She would have
- been glad to know when these difficulties were to cease,
- this opposition was to yield,--when Mrs. Ferrars would
- be reformed, and her son be at liberty to be happy.
- But from such vain wishes she was forced to turn for comfort
- to the renewal of her confidence in Edward's affection,
- to the remembrance of every mark of regard in look or word
- which fell from him while at Barton, and above all
- to that flattering proof of it which he constantly wore
- round his finger.
-
- "I think, Edward," said Mrs. Dashwood, as they were
- at breakfast the last morning, "you would be a happier man
- if you had any profession to engage your time and give
- an interest to your plans and actions. Some inconvenience
- to your friends, indeed, might result from it--you
- would not be able to give them so much of your time.
- But (with a smile) you would be materially benefited
- in one particular at least--you would know where to go
- when you left them."
-
- "I do assure you," he replied, "that I have long
- thought on this point, as you think now. It has been,
- and is, and probably will always be a heavy misfortune
- to me, that I have had no necessary business to engage me,
- no profession to give me employment, or afford me any
- thing like independence. But unfortunately my own nicety,
- and the nicety of my friends, have made me what I am,
- an idle, helpless being. We never could agree in our
- choice of a profession. I always preferred the church,
- as I still do. But that was not smart enough for my family.
- They recommended the army. That was a great deal
- too smart for me. The law was allowed to be genteel
- enough; many young men, who had chambers in the Temple,
- made a very good appearance in the first circles,
- and drove about town in very knowing gigs. But I had
- no inclination for the law, even in this less abstruse
- study of it, which my family approved. As for the navy,
- it had fashion on its side, but I was too old when the
- subject was first started to enter it--and, at length,
- as there was no necessity for my having any profession
- at all, as I might be as dashing and expensive without
- a red coat on my back as with one, idleness was pronounced
- on the whole to be most advantageous and honourable,
- and a young man of eighteen is not in general so earnestly
- bent on being busy as to resist the solicitations of his
- friends to do nothing. I was therefore entered at Oxford
- and have been properly idle ever since."
-
- "The consequence of which, I suppose, will be,"
- said Mrs. Dashwood, "since leisure has not promoted
- your own happiness, that your sons will be brought up
- to as many pursuits, employments, professions, and trades
- as Columella's."
-
- "They will be brought up," said he, in a serious accent,
- "to be as unlike myself as is possible. In feeling,
- in action, in condition, in every thing."
-
- "Come, come; this is all an effusion of immediate
- want of spirits, Edward. You are in a melancholy humour,
- and fancy that any one unlike yourself must be happy.
- But remember that the pain of parting from friends
- will be felt by every body at times, whatever be their
- education or state. Know your own happiness. You want
- nothing but patience--or give it a more fascinating name,
- call it hope. Your mother will secure to you, in time,
- that independence you are so anxious for; it is her duty,
- and it will, it must ere long become her happiness to
- prevent your whole youth from being wasted in discontent.
- How much may not a few months do?"
-
- "I think," replied Edward, "that I may defy many
- months to produce any good to me."
-
- This desponding turn of mind, though it could not
- be communicated to Mrs. Dashwood, gave additional pain
- to them all in the parting, which shortly took place,
- and left an uncomfortable impression on Elinor's
- feelings especially, which required some trouble and time
- to subdue. But as it was her determination to subdue it,
- and to prevent herself from appearing to suffer more than
- what all her family suffered on his going away, she did
- not adopt the method so judiciously employed by Marianne,
- on a similar occasion, to augment and fix her sorrow,
- by seeking silence, solitude and idleness. Their means
- were as different as their objects, and equally suited
- to the advancement of each.
-
- Elinor sat down to her drawing-table as soon as he
- was out of the house, busily employed herself the whole day,
- neither sought nor avoided the mention of his name,
- appeared to interest herself almost as much as ever in the
- general concerns of the family, and if, by this conduct,
- she did not lessen her own grief, it was at least prevented
- from unnecessary increase, and her mother and sisters
- were spared much solicitude on her account.
-
- Such behaviour as this, so exactly the reverse
- of her own, appeared no more meritorious to Marianne,
- than her own had seemed faulty to her. The business
- of self-command she settled very easily;--with strong
- affections it was impossible, with calm ones it could
- have no merit. That her sister's affections WERE calm,
- she dared not deny, though she blushed to acknowledge it;
- and of the strength of her own, she gave a very striking proof,
- by still loving and respecting that sister, in spite
- of this mortifying conviction.
-
- Without shutting herself up from her family,
- or leaving the house in determined solitude to avoid them,
- or lying awake the whole night to indulge meditation,
- Elinor found every day afforded her leisure enough
- to think of Edward, and of Edward's behaviour, in every
- possible variety which the different state of her spirits
- at different times could produce,--with tenderness,
- pity, approbation, censure, and doubt. There were moments
- in abundance, when, if not by the absence of her mother
- and sisters, at least by the nature of their employments,
- conversation was forbidden among them, and every effect
- of solitude was produced. Her mind was inevitably
- at liberty; her thoughts could not be chained elsewhere;
- and the past and the future, on a subject so interesting,
- must be before her, must force her attention, and engross
- her memory, her reflection, and her fancy.
-
- From a reverie of this kind, as she sat at her
- drawing-table, she was roused one morning, soon after
- Edward's leaving them, by the arrival of company.
- She happened to be quite alone. The closing of the
- little gate, at the entrance of the green court in front
- of the house, drew her eyes to the window, and she saw
- a large party walking up to the door. Amongst them
- were Sir John and Lady Middleton and Mrs. Jennings,
- but there were two others, a gentleman and lady, who were
- quite unknown to her. She was sitting near the window,
- and as soon as Sir John perceived her, he left the rest
- of the party to the ceremony of knocking at the door,
- and stepping across the turf, obliged her to open the
- casement to speak to him, though the space was so short
- between the door and the window, as to make it hardly
- possible to speak at one without being heard at the other.
-
- "Well," said he, "we have brought you some strangers.
- How do you like them?"
-
- "Hush! they will hear you."
-
- "Never mind if they do. It is only the Palmers.
- Charlotte is very pretty, I can tell you. You may see her
- if you look this way."
-
- As Elinor was certain of seeing her in a couple
- of minutes, without taking that liberty, she begged
- to be excused.
-
- "Where is Marianne? Has she run away because we
- are come? I see her instrument is open."
-
- "She is walking, I believe."
-
- They were now joined by Mrs. Jennings, who had not
- patience enough to wait till the door was opened before
- she told HER story. She came hallooing to the window,
- "How do you do, my dear? How does Mrs. Dashwood do?
- And where are your sisters? What! all alone! you
- will be glad of a little company to sit with you.
- I have brought my other son and daughter to see you.
- Only think of their coming so suddenly! I thought I heard
- a carriage last night, while we were drinking our tea,
- but it never entered my head that it could be them.
- I thought of nothing but whether it might not be Colonel
- Brandon come back again; so I said to Sir John, I do think
- I hear a carriage; perhaps it is Colonel Brandon come
- back again"--
-
- Elinor was obliged to turn from her, in the middle
- of her story, to receive the rest of the party; Lady
- Middleton introduced the two strangers; Mrs. Dashwood
- and Margaret came down stairs at the same time, and they
- all sat down to look at one another, while Mrs. Jennings
- continued her story as she walked through the passage
- into the parlour, attended by Sir John.
-
- Mrs. Palmer was several years younger than Lady
- Middleton, and totally unlike her in every respect.
- She was short and plump, had a very pretty face,
- and the finest expression of good humour in it that could
- possibly be. Her manners were by no means so elegant
- as her sister's, but they were much more prepossessing.
- She came in with a smile, smiled all the time of her visit,
- except when she laughed, and smiled when she went away.
- Her husband was a grave looking young man of five or six
- and twenty, with an air of more fashion and sense than
- his wife, but of less willingness to please or be pleased.
- He entered the room with a look of self-consequence,
- slightly bowed to the ladies, without speaking a word,
- and, after briefly surveying them and their apartments,
- took up a newspaper from the table, and continued to read it
- as long as he staid.
-
- Mrs. Palmer, on the contrary, who was strongly endowed
- by nature with a turn for being uniformly civil and happy,
- was hardly seated before her admiration of the parlour
- and every thing in it burst forth.
-
- "Well! what a delightful room this is! I never
- saw anything so charming! Only think, Mamma, how it
- is improved since I was here last! I always thought it
- such a sweet place, ma'am! (turning to Mrs. Dashwood)
- but you have made it so charming! Only look, sister,
- how delightful every thing is! How I should like such
- a house for myself! Should not you, Mr. Palmer?"
-
- Mr. Palmer made her no answer, and did not even raise
- his eyes from the newspaper.
-
- "Mr. Palmer does not hear me," said she, laughing;
- "he never does sometimes. It is so ridiculous!"
-
- This was quite a new idea to Mrs. Dashwood; she had
- never been used to find wit in the inattention of any one,
- and could not help looking with surprise at them both.
-
- Mrs. Jennings, in the meantime, talked on as loud
- as she could, and continued her account of their surprise,
- the evening before, on seeing their friends, without
- ceasing till every thing was told. Mrs. Palmer laughed
- heartily at the recollection of their astonishment,
- and every body agreed, two or three times over, that it
- had been quite an agreeable surprise.
-
- "You may believe how glad we all were to see them,"
- added Mrs. Jennings, leaning forward towards Elinor,
- and speaking in a low voice as if she meant to be heard
- by no one else, though they were seated on different sides
- of the room; "but, however, I can't help wishing they had
- not travelled quite so fast, nor made such a long journey
- of it, for they came all round by London upon account
- of some business, for you know (nodding significantly and
- pointing to her daughter) it was wrong in her situation.
- I wanted her to stay at home and rest this morning,
- but she would come with us; she longed so much to see
- you all!"
-
- Mrs. Palmer laughed, and said it would not do her
- any harm.
-
- "She expects to be confined in February,"
- continued Mrs. Jennings.
-
- Lady Middleton could no longer endure such a conversation,
- and therefore exerted herself to ask Mr. Palmer if there
- was any news in the paper.
-
- "No, none at all," he replied, and read on.
-
- "Here comes Marianne," cried Sir John. "Now, Palmer,
- you shall see a monstrous pretty girl."
-
- He immediately went into the passage, opened the front door,
- and ushered her in himself. Mrs. Jennings asked her,
- as soon as she appeared, if she had not been to Allenham;
- and Mrs. Palmer laughed so heartily at the question,
- as to show she understood it. Mr. Palmer looked up
- on her entering the room, stared at her some minutes,
- and then returned to his newspaper. Mrs. Palmer's eye
- was now caught by the drawings which hung round the room.
- She got up to examine them.
-
- "Oh! dear, how beautiful these are! Well! how delightful!
- Do but look, mama, how sweet! I declare they are quite charming;
- I could look at them for ever." And then sitting down again,
- she very soon forgot that there were any such things in the room.
-
- When Lady Middleton rose to go away, Mr. Palmer
- rose also, laid down the newspaper, stretched himself
- and looked at them all around.
-
- "My love, have you been asleep?" said his wife, laughing.
-
- He made her no answer; and only observed, after again
- examining the room, that it was very low pitched,
- and that the ceiling was crooked. He then made his bow,
- and departed with the rest.
-
- Sir John had been very urgent with them all to
- spend the next day at the park. Mrs. Dashwood, who did
- not chuse to dine with them oftener than they dined
- at the cottage, absolutely refused on her own account;
- her daughters might do as they pleased. But they had no
- curiosity to see how Mr. and Mrs. Palmer ate their dinner,
- and no expectation of pleasure from them in any other way.
- They attempted, therefore, likewise, to excuse themselves;
- the weather was uncertain, and not likely to be good.
- But Sir John would not be satisfied--the carriage should
- be sent for them and they must come. Lady Middleton too,
- though she did not press their mother, pressed them.
- Mrs. Jennings and Mrs. Palmer joined their entreaties, all
- seemed equally anxious to avoid a family party; and the young
- ladies were obliged to yield.
-
- "Why should they ask us?" said Marianne, as soon as they
- were gone. "The rent of this cottage is said to be low;
- but we have it on very hard terms, if we are to dine
- at the park whenever any one is staying either with them,
- or with us."
-
- "They mean no less to be civil and kind to us now,"
- said Elinor, "by these frequent invitations, than by
- those which we received from them a few weeks ago.
- The alteration is not in them, if their parties are grown
- tedious and dull. We must look for the change elsewhere."
-
-
-
- CHAPTER 20
-
-
- As the Miss Dashwoods entered the drawing-room of the park
- the next day, at one door, Mrs. Palmer came running in at
- the other, looking as good humoured and merry as before.
- She took them all most affectionately by the hand,
- and expressed great delight in seeing them again.
-
- "I am so glad to see you!" said she, seating herself
- between Elinor and Marianne, "for it is so bad a day I was
- afraid you might not come, which would be a shocking thing,
- as we go away again tomorrow. We must go, for the Westons
- come to us next week you know. It was quite a sudden thing
- our coming at all, and I knew nothing of it till the carriage
- was coming to the door, and then Mr. Palmer asked me if I
- would go with him to Barton. He is so droll! He never
- tells me any thing! I am so sorry we cannot stay longer;
- however we shall meet again in town very soon, I hope."
-
- They were obliged to put an end to such an expectation.
-
- "Not go to town!" cried Mrs. Palmer, with a laugh,
- "I shall be quite disappointed if you do not. I could
- get the nicest house in world for you, next door to ours,
- in Hanover-square. You must come, indeed. I am sure
- I shall be very happy to chaperon you at any time till
- I am confined, if Mrs. Dashwood should not like to go
- into public."
-
- They thanked her; but were obliged to resist all
- her entreaties.
-
- "Oh, my love," cried Mrs. Palmer to her husband,
- who just then entered the room--"you must help me to
- persuade the Miss Dashwoods to go to town this winter."
-
- Her love made no answer; and after slightly bowing
- to the ladies, began complaining of the weather.
-
- "How horrid all this is!" said he. "Such weather
- makes every thing and every body disgusting. Dullness
- is as much produced within doors as without, by rain.
- It makes one detest all one's acquaintance. What the
- devil does Sir John mean by not having a billiard room
- in his house? How few people know what comfort is! Sir
- John is as stupid as the weather."
-
- The rest of the company soon dropt in.
-
- "I am afraid, Miss Marianne," said Sir John, "you have
- not been able to take your usual walk to Allenham today."
-
- Marianne looked very grave and said nothing.
-
- "Oh, don't be so sly before us," said Mrs. Palmer;
- "for we know all about it, I assure you; and I admire your
- taste very much, for I think he is extremely handsome.
- We do not live a great way from him in the country, you know.
- Not above ten miles, I dare say."
-
- "Much nearer thirty," said her husband.
-
- "Ah, well! there is not much difference.
- I never was at his house; but they say it is a sweet
- pretty place."
-
- "As vile a spot as I ever saw in my life,"
- said Mr. Palmer.
-
- Marianne remained perfectly silent, though her
- countenance betrayed her interest in what was said.
-
- "Is it very ugly?" continued Mrs. Palmer--"then it
- must be some other place that is so pretty I suppose."
-
- When they were seated in the dining room, Sir John
- observed with regret that they were only eight all together.
-
- "My dear," said he to his lady, "it is very provoking
- that we should be so few. Why did not you ask the Gilberts
- to come to us today?"
-
- "Did not I tell you, Sir John, when you spoke to me
- about it before, that it could not be done? They dined
- with us last."
-
- "You and I, Sir John," said Mrs. Jennings,
- "should not stand upon such ceremony."
-
- "Then you would be very ill-bred," cried Mr. Palmer.
-
- "My love you contradict every body," said his wife
- with her usual laugh. "Do you know that you are quite rude?"
-
- "I did not know I contradicted any body in calling
- your mother ill-bred."
-
- "Ay, you may abuse me as you please," said the good-natured
- old lady, "you have taken Charlotte off my hands, and cannot
- give her back again. So there I have the whip hand of you."
-
- Charlotte laughed heartily to think that her
- husband could not get rid of her; and exultingly said,
- she did not care how cross he was to her, as they must
- live together. It was impossible for any one to be more
- thoroughly good-natured, or more determined to be happy
- than Mrs. Palmer. The studied indifference, insolence,
- and discontent of her husband gave her no pain;
- and when he scolded or abused her, she was highly diverted.
-
- "Mr. Palmer is so droll!" said she, in a whisper,
- to Elinor. "He is always out of humour."
-
- Elinor was not inclined, after a little observation,
- to give him credit for being so genuinely and unaffectedly
- ill-natured or ill-bred as he wished to appear.
- His temper might perhaps be a little soured by finding,
- like many others of his sex, that through some unaccountable
- bias in favour of beauty, he was the husband of a very silly
- woman,--but she knew that this kind of blunder was too
- common for any sensible man to be lastingly hurt by it.--
- It was rather a wish of distinction, she believed,
- which produced his contemptuous treatment of every body,
- and his general abuse of every thing before him.
- It was the desire of appearing superior to other people.
- The motive was too common to be wondered at; but the means,
- however they might succeed by establishing his superiority
- in ill-breeding, were not likely to attach any one to him
- except his wife.
-
- "Oh, my dear Miss Dashwood," said Mrs. Palmer soon afterwards,
- "I have got such a favour to ask of you and your sister.
- Will you come and spend some time at Cleveland this
- Christmas? Now, pray do,--and come while the Westons are
- with us. You cannot think how happy I shall be! It will
- be quite delightful!--My love," applying to her husband,
- "don't you long to have the Miss Dashwoods come to Cleveland?"
-
- "Certainly," he replied, with a sneer--"I came
- into Devonshire with no other view."
-
- "There now,"--said his lady, "you see Mr. Palmer
- expects you; so you cannot refuse to come."
-
- They both eagerly and resolutely declined her invitation.
-
- "But indeed you must and shall come. I am sure you
- will like it of all things. The Westons will be with us,
- and it will be quite delightful. You cannot think
- what a sweet place Cleveland is; and we are so gay now,
- for Mr. Palmer is always going about the country canvassing
- against the election; and so many people came to dine
- with us that I never saw before, it is quite charming! But,
- poor fellow! it is very fatiguing to him! for he is forced
- to make every body like him."
-
- Elinor could hardly keep her countenance as she
- assented to the hardship of such an obligation.
-
- "How charming it will be," said Charlotte, "when he
- is in Parliament!--won't it? How I shall laugh! It will
- be so ridiculous to see all his letters directed to him
- with an M.P.--But do you know, he says, he will never frank
- for me? He declares he won't. Don't you, Mr. Palmer?"
-
- Mr. Palmer took no notice of her.
-
- "He cannot bear writing, you know," she continued--
- "he says it is quite shocking."
-
- "No," said he, "I never said any thing so irrational.
- Don't palm all your abuses of languages upon me."
-
- "There now; you see how droll he is. This is always
- the way with him! Sometimes he won't speak to me for half
- a day together, and then he comes out with something
- so droll--all about any thing in the world."
-
- She surprised Elinor very much as they returned
- into the drawing-room, by asking her whether she did
- not like Mr. Palmer excessively.
-
- "Certainly," said Elinor; "he seems very agreeable."
-
- "Well--I am so glad you do. I thought you would,
- he is so pleasant; and Mr. Palmer is excessively pleased
- with you and your sisters I can tell you, and you can't
- think how disappointed he will be if you don't come
- to Cleveland.--I can't imagine why you should object
- to it."
-
- Elinor was again obliged to decline her invitation;
- and by changing the subject, put a stop to her entreaties.
- She thought it probable that as they lived in the
- same county, Mrs. Palmer might be able to give some
- more particular account of Willoughby's general
- character, than could be gathered from the Middletons'
- partial acquaintance with him; and she was eager to gain
- from any one, such a confirmation of his merits as might
- remove the possibility of fear from Marianne. She began
- by inquiring if they saw much of Mr. Willoughby at Cleveland,
- and whether they were intimately acquainted with him.
-
- "Oh dear, yes; I know him extremely well,"
- replied Mrs. Palmer;--"Not that I ever spoke
- to him, indeed; but I have seen him for ever in town.
- Somehow or other I never happened to be staying at Barton
- while he was at Allenham. Mama saw him here once before;--
- but I was with my uncle at Weymouth. However, I dare say
- we should have seen a great deal of him in Somersetshire,
- if it had not happened very unluckily that we should never
- have been in the country together. He is very little
- at Combe, I believe; but if he were ever so much there,
- I do not think Mr. Palmer would visit him, for he is
- in the opposition, you know, and besides it is such a
- way off. I know why you inquire about him, very well;
- your sister is to marry him. I am monstrous glad of it,
- for then I shall have her for a neighbour you know."
-
- "Upon my word," replied Elinor, "you know much
- more of the matter than I do, if you have any reason
- to expect such a match."
-
- "Don't pretend to deny it, because you know it is
- what every body talks of. I assure you I heard of it
- in my way through town."
-
- "My dear Mrs. Palmer!"
-
- "Upon my honour I did.--I met Colonel Brandon
- Monday morning in Bond-street, just before we left town,
- and he told me of it directly."
-
- "You surprise me very much. Colonel Brandon tell
- you of it! Surely you must be mistaken. To give such
- intelligence to a person who could not be interested in it,
- even if it were true, is not what I should expect Colonel
- Brandon to do."
-
- "But I do assure you it was so, for all that,
- and I will tell you how it happened. When we met him,
- he turned back and walked with us; and so we began talking
- of my brother and sister, and one thing and another,
- and I said to him, 'So, Colonel, there is a new family
- come to Barton cottage, I hear, and mama sends me word
- they are very pretty, and that one of them is going to be
- married to Mr. Willoughby of Combe Magna. Is it true,
- pray? for of course you must know, as you have been in
- Devonshire so lately.'"
-
- "And what did the Colonel say?"
-
- "Oh--he did not say much; but he looked as if he
- knew it to be true, so from that moment I set it down
- as certain. It will be quite delightful, I declare!
- When is it to take place?"
-
- "Mr. Brandon was very well I hope?"
-
- "Oh! yes, quite well; and so full of your praises,
- he did nothing but say fine things of you."
-
- "I am flattered by his commendation. He seems
- an excellent man; and I think him uncommonly pleasing."
-
- "So do I.--He is such a charming man, that it
- is quite a pity he should be so grave and so dull.
- Mamma says HE was in love with your sister too.--
- I assure you it was a great compliment if he was, for he
- hardly ever falls in love with any body."
-
- "Is Mr. Willoughby much known in your part
- of Somersetshire?" said Elinor.
-
- "Oh! yes, extremely well; that is, I do not believe
- many people are acquainted with him, because Combe Magna
- is so far off; but they all think him extremely agreeable
- I assure you. Nobody is more liked than Mr. Willoughby
- wherever he goes, and so you may tell your sister.
- She is a monstrous lucky girl to get him, upon my honour;
- not but that he is much more lucky in getting her,
- because she is so very handsome and agreeable, that nothing
- can be good enough for her. However, I don't think
- her hardly at all handsomer than you, I assure you;
- for I think you both excessively pretty, and so does
- Mr. Palmer too I am sure, though we could not get him
- to own it last night."
-
- Mrs. Palmer's information respecting Willoughby
- was not very material; but any testimony in his favour,
- however small, was pleasing to her.
-
- "I am so glad we are got acquainted at last,"
- continued Charlotte.--"And now I hope we shall always be
- great friends. You can't think how much I longed to see you!
- It is so delightful that you should live at the cottage!
- Nothing can be like it, to be sure! And I am so glad
- your sister is going to be well married! I hope you will
- be a great deal at Combe Magna. It is a sweet place,
- by all accounts."
-
- "You have been long acquainted with Colonel Brandon,
- have not you?"
-
- "Yes, a great while; ever since my sister married.--
- He was a particular friend of Sir John's. I believe,"
- she added in a low voice, "he would have been very
- glad to have had me, if he could. Sir John and Lady
- Middleton wished it very much. But mama did not think
- the match good enough for me, otherwise Sir John would
- have mentioned it to the Colonel, and we should have been
- married immediately."
-
- "Did not Colonel Brandon know of Sir John's proposal
- to your mother before it was made? Had he never owned
- his affection to yourself?"
-
- "Oh, no; but if mama had not objected to it,
- I dare say he would have liked it of all things.
- He had not seen me then above twice, for it was before
- I left school. However, I am much happier as I am.
- Mr. Palmer is the kind of man I like."
-
-
-
- CHAPTER 21
-
-
- The Palmers returned to Cleveland the next day,
- and the two families at Barton were again left to entertain
- each other. But this did not last long; Elinor had hardly
- got their last visitors out of her head, had hardly done
- wondering at Charlotte's being so happy without a cause,
- at Mr. Palmer's acting so simply, with good abilities,
- and at the strange unsuitableness which often existed between
- husband and wife, before Sir John's and Mrs. Jennings's
- active zeal in the cause of society, procured her some
- other new acquaintance to see and observe.
-
- In a morning's excursion to Exeter, they had met with
- two young ladies, whom Mrs. Jennings had the satisfaction
- of discovering to be her relations, and this was enough
- for Sir John to invite them directly to the park,
- as soon as their present engagements at Exeter were over.
- Their engagements at Exeter instantly gave way before
- such an invitation, and Lady Middleton was thrown into
- no little alarm on the return of Sir John, by hearing
- that she was very soon to receive a visit from two girls
- whom she had never seen in her life, and of whose elegance,--
- whose tolerable gentility even, she could have no proof;
- for the assurances of her husband and mother on that subject
- went for nothing at all. Their being her relations too
- made it so much the worse; and Mrs. Jennings's attempts
- at consolation were therefore unfortunately founded,
- when she advised her daughter not to care about their being
- so fashionable; because they were all cousins and must put
- up with one another. As it was impossible, however, now to
- prevent their coming, Lady Middleton resigned herself to the
- idea of it, with all the philosophy of a well-bred woman,
- contenting herself with merely giving her husband a gentle
- reprimand on the subject five or six times every day.
-
- The young ladies arrived: their appearance was by
- no means ungenteel or unfashionable. Their dress was
- very smart, their manners very civil, they were delighted
- with the house, and in raptures with the furniture,
- and they happened to be so doatingly fond of children
- that Lady Middleton's good opinion was engaged in their
- favour before they had been an hour at the Park.
- She declared them to be very agreeable girls indeed,
- which for her ladyship was enthusiastic admiration.
- Sir John's confidence in his own judgment rose with this
- animated praise, and he set off directly for the cottage
- to tell the Miss Dashwoods of the Miss Steeles' arrival,
- and to assure them of their being the sweetest girls
- in the world. From such commendation as this, however,
- there was not much to be learned; Elinor well knew
- that the sweetest girls in the world were to be met
- with in every part of England, under every possible
- variation of form, face, temper and understanding.
- Sir John wanted the whole family to walk to the Park directly
- and look at his guests. Benevolent, philanthropic man! It
- was painful to him even to keep a third cousin to himself.
-
- "Do come now," said he--"pray come--you must come--I
- declare you shall come--You can't think how you will
- like them. Lucy is monstrous pretty, and so good humoured
- and agreeable! The children are all hanging about her already,
- as if she was an old acquaintance. And they both long
- to see you of all things, for they have heard at Exeter
- that you are the most beautiful creatures in the world;
- and I have told them it is all very true, and a great
- deal more. You will be delighted with them I am sure.
- They have brought the whole coach full of playthings
- for the children. How can you be so cross as not to come?
- Why they are your cousins, you know, after a fashion.
- YOU are my cousins, and they are my wife's, so you must
- be related."
-
- But Sir John could not prevail. He could only obtain
- a promise of their calling at the Park within a day or two,
- and then left them in amazement at their indifference,
- to walk home and boast anew of their attractions to the
- Miss Steeles, as he had been already boasting of the Miss
- Steeles to them.
-
- When their promised visit to the Park and consequent
- introduction to these young ladies took place, they found
- in the appearance of the eldest, who was nearly thirty,
- with a very plain and not a sensible face, nothing to admire;
- but in the other, who was not more than two or three
- and twenty, they acknowledged considerable beauty; her
- features were pretty, and she had a sharp quick eye,
- and a smartness of air, which though it did not give
- actual elegance or grace, gave distinction to her person.--
- Their manners were particularly civil, and Elinor soon
- allowed them credit for some kind of sense, when she
- saw with what constant and judicious attention they
- were making themselves agreeable to Lady Middleton.
- With her children they were in continual raptures,
- extolling their beauty, courting their notice, and humouring
- their whims; and such of their time as could be spared from
- the importunate demands which this politeness made on it,
- was spent in admiration of whatever her ladyship was doing,
- if she happened to be doing any thing, or in taking patterns
- of some elegant new dress, in which her appearance
- the day before had thrown them into unceasing delight.
- Fortunately for those who pay their court through
- such foibles, a fond mother, though, in pursuit of praise
- for her children, the most rapacious of human beings,
- is likewise the most credulous; her demands are exorbitant;
- but she will swallow any thing; and the excessive
- affection and endurance of the Miss Steeles towards
- her offspring were viewed therefore by Lady Middleton
- without the smallest surprise or distrust. She saw with
- maternal complacency all the impertinent encroachments
- and mischievous tricks to which her cousins submitted.
- She saw their sashes untied, their hair pulled about
- their ears, their work-bags searched, and their knives
- and scissors stolen away, and felt no doubt of its being
- a reciprocal enjoyment. It suggested no other surprise
- than that Elinor and Marianne should sit so composedly by,
- without claiming a share in what was passing.
-
- "John is in such spirits today!" said she, on his
- taking Miss Steeles's pocket handkerchief, and throwing
- it out of window--"He is full of monkey tricks."
-
- And soon afterwards, on the second boy's violently
- pinching one of the same lady's fingers, she fondly observed,
- "How playful William is!"
-
- "And here is my sweet little Annamaria," she added,
- tenderly caressing a little girl of three years old,
- who had not made a noise for the last two minutes;
- "And she is always so gentle and quiet--Never was there
- such a quiet little thing!"
-
- But unfortunately in bestowing these embraces,
- a pin in her ladyship's head dress slightly scratching
- the child's neck, produced from this pattern of gentleness
- such violent screams, as could hardly be outdone by any
- creature professedly noisy. The mother's consternation
- was excessive; but it could not surpass the alarm of the
- Miss Steeles, and every thing was done by all three,
- in so critical an emergency, which affection could suggest
- as likely to assuage the agonies of the little sufferer.
- She was seated in her mother's lap, covered with kisses,
- her wound bathed with lavender-water, by one of the
- Miss Steeles, who was on her knees to attend her,
- and her mouth stuffed with sugar plums by the other.
- With such a reward for her tears, the child was too wise
- to cease crying. She still screamed and sobbed lustily,
- kicked her two brothers for offering to touch her, and all
- their united soothings were ineffectual till Lady Middleton
- luckily remembering that in a scene of similar distress
- last week, some apricot marmalade had been successfully
- applied for a bruised temple, the same remedy was eagerly
- proposed for this unfortunate scratch, and a slight
- intermission of screams in the young lady on hearing it,
- gave them reason to hope that it would not be rejected.--
- She was carried out of the room therefore in her
- mother's arms, in quest of this medicine, and as the
- two boys chose to follow, though earnestly entreated
- by their mother to stay behind, the four young ladies
- were left in a quietness which the room had not known for
- many hours.
-
- "Poor little creatures!" said Miss Steele, as soon
- as they were gone. "It might have been a very sad accident."
-
- "Yet I hardly know how," cried Marianne, "unless it
- had been under totally different circumstances.
- But this is the usual way of heightening alarm, where there
- is nothing to be alarmed at in reality."
-
- "What a sweet woman Lady Middleton is!" said Lucy Steele.
-
- Marianne was silent; it was impossible for her to say
- what she did not feel, however trivial the occasion;
- and upon Elinor therefore the whole task of telling lies
- when politeness required it, always fell. She did her
- best when thus called on, by speaking of Lady Middleton
- with more warmth than she felt, though with far less than
- Miss Lucy.
-
- "And Sir John too," cried the elder sister,
- "what a charming man he is!"
-
- Here too, Miss Dashwood's commendation, being only
- simple and just, came in without any eclat. She merely
- observed that he was perfectly good humoured and friendly.
-
- "And what a charming little family they have! I
- never saw such fine children in my life.--I declare I
- quite doat upon them already, and indeed I am always
- distractedly fond of children."
-
- "I should guess so," said Elinor, with a smile,
- "from what I have witnessed this morning."
-
- "I have a notion," said Lucy, "you think the little
- Middletons rather too much indulged; perhaps they may be the
- outside of enough; but it is so natural in Lady Middleton;
- and for my part, I love to see children full of life
- and spirits; I cannot bear them if they are tame and quiet."
-
- "I confess," replied Elinor, "that while I am at
- Barton Park, I never think of tame and quiet children
- with any abhorrence."
-
- A short pause succeeded this speech, which was first
- broken by Miss Steele, who seemed very much disposed
- for conversation, and who now said rather abruptly,
- "And how do you like Devonshire, Miss Dashwood? I suppose
- you were very sorry to leave Sussex."
-
- In some surprise at the familiarity of this question,
- or at least of the manner in which it was spoken,
- Elinor replied that she was.
-
- "Norland is a prodigious beautiful place, is not it?"
- added Miss Steele.
-
- "We have heard Sir John admire it excessively,"
- said Lucy, who seemed to think some apology necessary
- for the freedom of her sister.
-
- "I think every one MUST admire it," replied Elinor,
- "who ever saw the place; though it is not to be supposed
- that any one can estimate its beauties as we do."
-
- "And had you a great many smart beaux there? I
- suppose you have not so many in this part of the world;
- for my part, I think they are a vast addition always."
-
- "But why should you think," said Lucy, looking ashamed
- of her sister, "that there are not as many genteel young
- men in Devonshire as Sussex?"
-
- "Nay, my dear, I'm sure I don't pretend to say that there
- an't. I'm sure there's a vast many smart beaux in Exeter;
- but you know, how could I tell what smart beaux there
- might be about Norland; and I was only afraid the Miss
- Dashwoods might find it dull at Barton, if they had not
- so many as they used to have. But perhaps you young ladies
- may not care about the beaux, and had as lief be without
- them as with them. For my part, I think they are vastly
- agreeable, provided they dress smart and behave civil.
- But I can't bear to see them dirty and nasty. Now there's
- Mr. Rose at Exeter, a prodigious smart young man,
- quite a beau, clerk to Mr. Simpson, you know, and yet if you
- do but meet him of a morning, he is not fit to be seen.--
- I suppose your brother was quite a beau, Miss Dashwood,
- before he married, as he was so rich?"
-
- "Upon my word," replied Elinor, "I cannot tell you,
- for I do not perfectly comprehend the meaning of the word.
- But this I can say, that if he ever was a beau before
- he married, he is one still for there is not the smallest
- alteration in him."
-
- "Oh! dear! one never thinks of married men's being
- beaux--they have something else to do."
-
- "Lord! Anne," cried her sister, "you can talk of
- nothing but beaux;--you will make Miss Dashwood believe you
- think of nothing else." And then to turn the discourse,
- she began admiring the house and the furniture.
-
- This specimen of the Miss Steeles was enough.
- The vulgar freedom and folly of the eldest left
- her no recommendation, and as Elinor was not blinded
- by the beauty, or the shrewd look of the youngest,
- to her want of real elegance and artlessness, she left
- the house without any wish of knowing them better.
-
- Not so the Miss Steeles.--They came from Exeter, well
- provided with admiration for the use of Sir John Middleton,
- his family, and all his relations, and no niggardly
- proportion was now dealt out to his fair cousins, whom they
- declared to be the most beautiful, elegant, accomplished,
- and agreeable girls they had ever beheld, and with whom
- they were particularly anxious to be better acquainted.--
- And to be better acquainted therefore, Elinor soon found
- was their inevitable lot, for as Sir John was entirely
- on the side of the Miss Steeles, their party would be
- too strong for opposition, and that kind of intimacy
- must be submitted to, which consists of sitting an hour
- or two together in the same room almost every day.
- Sir John could do no more; but he did not know that any
- more was required: to be together was, in his opinion,
- to be intimate, and while his continual schemes for their
- meeting were effectual, he had not a doubt of their being
- established friends.
-
- To do him justice, he did every thing in his power
- to promote their unreserve, by making the Miss Steeles
- acquainted with whatever he knew or supposed of his cousins'
- situations in the most delicate particulars,--and Elinor
- had not seen them more than twice, before the eldest of
- them wished her joy on her sister's having been so lucky
- as to make a conquest of a very smart beau since she
- came to Barton.
-
- "'Twill be a fine thing to have her married so young
- to be sure," said she, "and I hear he is quite a beau,
- and prodigious handsome. And I hope you may have as good
- luck yourself soon,--but perhaps you may have a friend
- in the corner already."
-
- Elinor could not suppose that Sir John would be more
- nice in proclaiming his suspicions of her regard for Edward,
- than he had been with respect to Marianne; indeed it was
- rather his favourite joke of the two, as being somewhat
- newer and more conjectural; and since Edward's visit,
- they had never dined together without his drinking to her
- best affections with so much significancy and so many nods
- and winks, as to excite general attention. The letter F--
- had been likewise invariably brought forward, and found
- productive of such countless jokes, that its character
- as the wittiest letter in the alphabet had been long
- established with Elinor.
-
- The Miss Steeles, as she expected, had now all the
- benefit of these jokes, and in the eldest of them they
- raised a curiosity to know the name of the gentleman
- alluded to, which, though often impertinently expressed,
- was perfectly of a piece with her general inquisitiveness
- into the concerns of their family. But Sir John did not
- sport long with the curiosity which he delighted to raise,
- for he had at least as much pleasure in telling the name,
- as Miss Steele had in hearing it.
-
- "His name is Ferrars," said he, in a very audible whisper;
- "but pray do not tell it, for it's a great secret."
-
- "Ferrars!" repeated Miss Steele; "Mr. Ferrars is
- the happy man, is he? What! your sister-in-law's brother,
- Miss Dashwood? a very agreeable young man to be sure;
- I know him very well."
-
- "How can you say so, Anne?" cried Lucy, who generally
- made an amendment to all her sister's assertions.
- "Though we have seen him once or twice at my uncle's, it
- is rather too much to pretend to know him very well."
-
- Elinor heard all this with attention and surprise.
- "And who was this uncle? Where did he live? How came
- they acquainted?" She wished very much to have the subject
- continued, though she did not chuse to join in it herself;
- but nothing more of it was said, and for the first time
- in her life, she thought Mrs. Jennings deficient either
- in curiosity after petty information, or in a disposition
- to communicate it. The manner in which Miss Steele had
- spoken of Edward, increased her curiosity; for it struck
- her as being rather ill-natured, and suggested the suspicion
- of that lady's knowing, or fancying herself to know something
- to his disadvantage.--But her curiosity was unavailing,
- for no farther notice was taken of Mr. Ferrars's name by
- Miss Steele when alluded to, or even openly mentioned by Sir John.
-
-
-
- CHAPTER 22
-
-
- Marianne, who had never much toleration for any
- thing like impertinence, vulgarity, inferiority of parts,
- or even difference of taste from herself, was at
- this time particularly ill-disposed, from the state
- of her spirits, to be pleased with the Miss Steeles,
- or to encourage their advances; and to the invariable
- coldness of her behaviour towards them, which checked every
- endeavour at intimacy on their side, Elinor principally
- attributed that preference of herself which soon became
- evident in the manners of both, but especially of Lucy,
- who missed no opportunity of engaging her in conversation,
- or of striving to improve their acquaintance by an easy
- and frank communication of her sentiments.
-
- Lucy was naturally clever; her remarks were often
- just and amusing; and as a companion for half an hour
- Elinor frequently found her agreeable; but her powers
- had received no aid from education: she was ignorant
- and illiterate; and her deficiency of all mental improvement,
- her want of information in the most common particulars,
- could not be concealed from Miss Dashwood, in spite of her
- constant endeavour to appear to advantage. Elinor saw,
- and pitied her for, the neglect of abilities which education
- might have rendered so respectable; but she saw, with less
- tenderness of feeling, the thorough want of delicacy,
- of rectitude, and integrity of mind, which her attentions,
- her assiduities, her flatteries at the Park betrayed;
- and she could have no lasting satisfaction in the company
- of a person who joined insincerity with ignorance;
- whose want of instruction prevented their meeting
- in conversation on terms of equality, and whose conduct
- toward others made every shew of attention and deference
- towards herself perfectly valueless.
-
- "You will think my question an odd one, I dare say,"
- said Lucy to her one day, as they were walking together
- from the park to the cottage--"but pray, are you
- personally acquainted with your sister-in-law's mother,
- Mrs. Ferrars?"
-
- Elinor DID think the question a very odd one,
- and her countenance expressed it, as she answered that she
- had never seen Mrs. Ferrars.
-
- "Indeed!" replied Lucy; "I wonder at that, for I
- thought you must have seen her at Norland sometimes.
- Then, perhaps, you cannot tell me what sort of a woman
- she is?"
-
- "No," returned Elinor, cautious of giving her real
- opinion of Edward's mother, and not very desirous
- of satisfying what seemed impertinent curiosity--
- "I know nothing of her."
-
- "I am sure you think me very strange, for enquiring
- about her in such a way," said Lucy, eyeing Elinor attentively
- as she spoke; "but perhaps there may be reasons--I wish
- I might venture; but however I hope you will do me the justice
- of believing that I do not mean to be impertinent."
-
- Elinor made her a civil reply, and they walked on
- for a few minutes in silence. It was broken by Lucy,
- who renewed the subject again by saying, with some
- hesitation,
-
- "I cannot bear to have you think me impertinently curious.
- I am sure I would rather do any thing in the world than be
- thought so by a person whose good opinion is so well worth
- having as yours. And I am sure I should not have the smallest
- fear of trusting YOU; indeed, I should be very glad of your
- advice how to manage in such and uncomfortable situation
- as I am; but, however, there is no occasion to trouble YOU.
- I am sorry you do not happen to know Mrs. Ferrars."
-
- "I am sorry I do NOT," said Elinor, in great astonishment,
- "if it could be of any use to YOU to know my opinion of her.
- But really I never understood that you were at all connected
- with that family, and therefore I am a little surprised,
- I confess, at so serious an inquiry into her character."
-
- "I dare say you are, and I am sure I do not at all
- wonder at it. But if I dared tell you all, you would not be
- so much surprised. Mrs. Ferrars is certainly nothing to me
- at present--but the time MAY come--how soon it will come
- must depend upon herself--when we may be very intimately connected."
-
- She looked down as she said this, amiably bashful,
- with only one side glance at her companion to observe its
- effect on her.
-
- "Good heavens!" cried Elinor, "what do you mean?
- Are you acquainted with Mr. Robert Ferrars? Can you be?"
- And she did not feel much delighted with the idea of such
- a sister-in-law.
-
- "No," replied Lucy, "not to Mr. ROBERT Ferrars--I
- never saw him in my life; but," fixing her eyes upon Elinor,
- "to his eldest brother."
-
- What felt Elinor at that moment? Astonishment,
- that would have been as painful as it was strong, had not
- an immediate disbelief of the assertion attended it.
- She turned towards Lucy in silent amazement, unable to divine
- the reason or object of such a declaration; and though
- her complexion varied, she stood firm in incredulity,
- and felt in no danger of an hysterical fit, or a swoon.
-
- "You may well be surprised," continued Lucy;
- "for to be sure you could have had no idea of it before;
- for I dare say he never dropped the smallest hint of it
- to you or any of your family; because it was always meant
- to be a great secret, and I am sure has been faithfully
- kept so by me to this hour. Not a soul of all my relations
- know of it but Anne, and I never should have mentioned
- it to you, if I had not felt the greatest dependence
- in the world upon your secrecy; and I really thought my
- behaviour in asking so many questions about Mrs. Ferrars
- must seem so odd, that it ought to be explained.
- And I do not think Mr. Ferrars can be displeased,
- when he knows I have trusted you, because I know he has
- the highest opinion in the world of all your family,
- and looks upon yourself and the other Miss Dashwoods quite
- as his own sisters."--She paused.
-
- Elinor for a few moments remained silent.
- Her astonishment at what she heard was at first too
- great for words; but at length forcing herself to speak,
- and to speak cautiously, she said, with calmness of manner,
- which tolerably well concealed her surprise and solicitude--
- "May I ask if your engagement is of long standing?"
-
- "We have been engaged these four years."
-
- "Four years!"
-
- "Yes."
-
- Elinor, though greatly shocked, still felt unable
- to believe it.
-
- "I did not know," said she, "that you were even
- acquainted till the other day."
-
- "Our acquaintance, however, is of many years date.
- He was under my uncle's care, you know, a considerable while."
-
- "Your uncle!"
-
- "Yes; Mr. Pratt. Did you never hear him talk
- of Mr. Pratt?"
-
- "I think I have," replied Elinor, with an exertion
- of spirits, which increased with her increase of emotion.
-
- "He was four years with my uncle, who lives at Longstaple,
- near Plymouth. It was there our acquaintance begun,
- for my sister and me was often staying with my uncle,
- and it was there our engagement was formed, though not till
- a year after he had quitted as a pupil; but he was almost
- always with us afterwards. I was very unwilling to enter
- into it, as you may imagine, without the knowledge and
- approbation of his mother; but I was too young, and loved
- him too well, to be so prudent as I ought to have been.--
- Though you do not know him so well as me, Miss Dashwood,
- you must have seen enough of him to be sensible he is
- very capable of making a woman sincerely attached to him."
-
- "Certainly," answered Elinor, without knowing what
- she said; but after a moment's reflection, she added,
- with revived security of Edward's honour and love,
- and her companion's falsehood--"Engaged to Mr. Edward
- Ferrars!--I confess myself so totally surprised at
- what you tell me, that really--I beg your pardon;
- but surely there must be some mistake of person or name.
- We cannot mean the same Mr. Ferrars."
-
- "We can mean no other," cried Lucy, smiling. "Mr. Edward
- Ferrars, the eldest son of Mrs. Ferrars, of Park Street,
- and brother of your sister-in-law, Mrs. John Dashwood,
- is the person I mean; you must allow that I am not likely
- to be deceived as to the name of the man on who all my happiness depends."
-
- "It is strange," replied Elinor, in a most painful perplexity,
- "that I should never have heard him even mention your name."
-
- "No; considering our situation, it was not strange.
- Our first care has been to keep the matter secret.--
- You knew nothing of me, or my family, and, therefore,
- there could be no OCCASION for ever mentioning my name
- to you; and, as he was always particularly afraid of his
- sister's suspecting any thing, THAT was reason enough
- for his not mentioning it."
-
- She was silent.--Elinor's security sunk; but her
- self-command did not sink with it.
-
- "Four years you have been engaged," said she
- with a firm voice.
-
- "Yes; and heaven knows how much longer we may have
- to wait. Poor Edward! It puts him quite out of heart."
- Then taking a small miniature from her pocket, she added,
- "To prevent the possibility of mistake, be so good as to look
- at this face. It does not do him justice, to be sure,
- but yet I think you cannot be deceived as to the person
- it was drew for.--I have had it above these three years."
-
- She put it into her hands as she spoke; and when Elinor
- saw the painting, whatever other doubts her fear of a
- too hasty decision, or her wish of detecting falsehood
- might suffer to linger in her mind, she could have none of
- its being Edward's face. She returned it almost instantly,
- acknowledging the likeness.
-
- "I have never been able," continued Lucy, "to give
- him my picture in return, which I am very much vexed at,
- for he has been always so anxious to get it! But I am
- determined to set for it the very first opportunity."
-
- "You are quite in the right," replied Elinor calmly.
- They then proceeded a few paces in silence. Lucy spoke first.
-
- "I am sure," said she, "I have no doubt in the world
- of your faithfully keeping this secret, because you must
- know of what importance it is to us, not to have it reach
- his mother; for she would never approve of it, I dare say.
- I shall have no fortune, and I fancy she is an exceeding
- proud woman."
-
- "I certainly did not seek your confidence," said Elinor;
- "but you do me no more than justice in imagining that I
- may be depended on. Your secret is safe with me;
- but pardon me if I express some surprise at so unnecessary
- a communication. You must at least have felt that my
- being acquainted with it could not add to its safety."
-
- As she said this, she looked earnestly at Lucy,
- hoping to discover something in her countenance; perhaps the
- falsehood of the greatest part of what she had been saying;
- but Lucy's countenance suffered no change.
-
- "I was afraid you would think I was taking a great
- liberty with you," said she, "in telling you all this.
- I have not known you long to be sure, personally at least,
- but I have known you and all your family by description
- a great while; and as soon as I saw you, I felt almost as if
- you was an old acquaintance. Besides in the present case,
- I really thought some explanation was due to you after my
- making such particular inquiries about Edward's mother;
- and I am so unfortunate, that I have not a creature whose
- advice I can ask. Anne is the only person that knows of it,
- and she has no judgment at all; indeed, she does me a great
- deal more harm than good, for I am in constant fear of her
- betraying me. She does not know how to hold her tongue,
- as you must perceive, and I am sure I was in the greatest
- fright in the world t'other day, when Edward's name was
- mentioned by Sir John, lest she should out with it all.
- You can't think how much I go through in my mind from
- it altogether. I only wonder that I am alive after what
- I have suffered for Edward's sake these last four years.
- Every thing in such suspense and uncertainty; and seeing
- him so seldom--we can hardly meet above twice a-year.
- I am sure I wonder my heart is not quite broke."
-
- Here she took out her handkerchief; but Elinor did
- not feel very compassionate.
-
- "Sometimes." continued Lucy, after wiping her eyes,
- "I think whether it would not be better for us both
- to break off the matter entirely." As she said this,
- she looked directly at her companion. "But then
- at other times I have not resolution enough for it.--
- I cannot bear the thoughts of making him so miserable,
- as I know the very mention of such a thing would do.
- And on my own account too--so dear as he is to me--I don't
- think I could be equal to it. What would you advise
- me to do in such a case, Miss Dashwood? What would you
- do yourself?"
-
- "Pardon me," replied Elinor, startled by the question;
- "but I can give you no advice under such circumstances.
- Your own judgment must direct you."
-
- "To be sure," continued Lucy, after a few minutes
- silence on both sides, "his mother must provide for him
- sometime or other; but poor Edward is so cast down by it!
- Did you not think him dreadful low-spirited when he was at
- Barton? He was so miserable when he left us at Longstaple,
- to go to you, that I was afraid you would think him quite ill."
-
- "Did he come from your uncle's, then, when he visited us?"
-
- "Oh, yes; he had been staying a fortnight with us.
- Did you think he came directly from town?"
-
- "No," replied Elinor, most feelingly sensible of
- every fresh circumstance in favour of Lucy's veracity;
- "I remember he told us, that he had been staying
- a fortnight with some friends near Plymouth."
- She remembered too, her own surprise at the time,
- at his mentioning nothing farther of those friends,
- at his total silence with respect even to their names.
-
- "Did not you think him sadly out of spirits?"
- repeated Lucy.
-
- "We did, indeed, particularly so when he first arrived."
-
- "I begged him to exert himself for fear you
- should suspect what was the matter; but it made him
- so melancholy, not being able to stay more than a
- fortnight with us, and seeing me so much affected.--
- Poor fellow!--I am afraid it is just the same with him now;
- for he writes in wretched spirits. I heard from him just
- before I left Exeter;" taking a letter from her pocket
- and carelessly showing the direction to Elinor.
- "You know his hand, I dare say, a charming one it is;
- but that is not written so well as usual.--He was tired,
- I dare say, for he had just filled the sheet to me as full
- as possible."
-
- Elinor saw that it WAS his hand, and she could doubt
- no longer. This picture, she had allowed herself to believe,
- might have been accidentally obtained; it might not have
- been Edward's gift; but a correspondence between them
- by letter, could subsist only under a positive engagement,
- could be authorised by nothing else; for a few moments, she
- was almost overcome--her heart sunk within her, and she could
- hardly stand; but exertion was indispensably necessary;
- and she struggled so resolutely against the oppression
- of her feelings, that her success was speedy, and for
- the time complete.
-
- "Writing to each other," said Lucy, returning the
- letter into her pocket, "is the only comfort we have
- in such long separations. Yes, I have one other comfort
- in his picture, but poor Edward has not even THAT.
- If he had but my picture, he says he should be easy.
- I gave him a lock of my hair set in a ring when he was at
- Longstaple last, and that was some comfort to him, he said,
- but not equal to a picture. Perhaps you might notice
- the ring when you saw him?"
-
- "I did," said Elinor, with a composure of voice,
- under which was concealed an emotion and distress beyond
- any thing she had ever felt before. She was mortified,
- shocked, confounded.
-
- Fortunately for her, they had now reached the cottage,
- and the conversation could be continued no farther.
- After sitting with them a few minutes, the Miss Steeles
- returned to the Park, and Elinor was then at liberty
- to think and be wretched.
-
-
-
-
-
- [At this point in the first and second editions, Volume 1 ends.]
-
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER 23
-
-
- However small Elinor's general dependence on
- Lucy's veracity might be, it was impossible for her
- on serious reflection to suspect it in the present case,
- where no temptation could be answerable to the folly
- of inventing a falsehood of such a description. What Lucy
- had asserted to be true, therefore, Elinor could not,
- dared not longer doubt; supported as it was too on every
- side by such probabilities and proofs, and contradicted
- by nothing but her own wishes. Their opportunity of
- acquaintance in the house of Mr. Pratt was a foundation
- for the rest, at once indisputable and alarming; and Edward's
- visit near Plymouth, his melancholy state of mind,
- his dissatisfaction at his own prospects, his uncertain
- behaviour towards herself, the intimate knowledge of the
- Miss Steeles as to Norland and their family connections,
- which had often surprised her, the picture, the letter,
- the ring, formed altogether such a body of evidence,
- as overcame every fear of condemning him unfairly,
- and established as a fact, which no partiality could
- set aside, his ill-treatment of herself.--Her resentment
- of such behaviour, her indignation at having been its dupe,
- for a short time made her feel only for herself;
- but other ideas, other considerations, soon arose.
- Had Edward been intentionally deceiving her? Had he feigned
- a regard for her which he did not feel? Was his engagement
- to Lucy an engagement of the heart? No; whatever it might
- once have been, she could not believe it such at present.
- His affection was all her own. She could not be deceived
- in that. Her mother, sisters, Fanny, all had been
- conscious of his regard for her at Norland; it was not
- an illusion of her own vanity. He certainly loved her.
- What a softener of the heart was this persuasion! How much
- could it not tempt her to forgive! He had been blamable,
- highly blamable, in remaining at Norland after he first
- felt her influence over him to be more than it ought
- to be. In that, he could not be defended; but if he
- had injured her, how much more had he injured himself;
- if her case were pitiable, his was hopeless.
- His imprudence had made her miserable for a while; but it
- seemed to have deprived himself of all chance of ever
- being otherwise. She might in time regain tranquillity;
- but HE, what had he to look forward to? Could he
- ever be tolerably happy with Lucy Steele; could he,
- were his affection for herself out of the question,
- with his integrity, his delicacy, and well-informed mind,
- be satisfied with a wife like her--illiterate, artful,
- and selfish?
-
- The youthful infatuation of nineteen would naturally
- blind him to every thing but her beauty and good nature;
- but the four succeeding years--years, which if rationally
- spent, give such improvement to the understanding, must
- have opened his eyes to her defects of education,
- while the same period of time, spent on her side
- in inferior society and more frivolous pursuits,
- had perhaps robbed her of that simplicity which might
- once have given an interesting character to her beauty.
-
- If in the supposition of his seeking to marry herself,
- his difficulties from his mother had seemed great,
- how much greater were they now likely to be, when
- the object of his engagement was undoubtedly inferior
- in connections, and probably inferior in fortune to herself.
- These difficulties, indeed, with a heart so alienated
- from Lucy, might not press very hard upon his patience;
- but melancholy was the state of the person by whom the
- expectation of family opposition and unkindness, could
- be felt as a relief!
-
- As these considerations occurred to her in painful
- succession, she wept for him, more than for herself.
- Supported by the conviction of having done nothing to
- merit her present unhappiness, and consoled by the belief
- that Edward had done nothing to forfeit her esteem,
- she thought she could even now, under the first smart
- of the heavy blow, command herself enough to guard every
- suspicion of the truth from her mother and sisters.
- And so well was she able to answer her own expectations,
- that when she joined them at dinner only two hours
- after she had first suffered the extinction of all her
- dearest hopes, no one would have supposed from the
- appearance of the sisters, that Elinor was mourning
- in secret over obstacles which must divide her for ever
- from the object of her love, and that Marianne was
- internally dwelling on the perfections of a man, of whose
- whole heart she felt thoroughly possessed, and whom she
- expected to see in every carriage which drove near their house.
-
- The necessity of concealing from her mother and
- Marianne, what had been entrusted in confidence to herself,
- though it obliged her to unceasing exertion, was no
- aggravation of Elinor's distress. On the contrary
- it was a relief to her, to be spared the communication
- of what would give such affliction to them, and to be
- saved likewise from hearing that condemnation of Edward,
- which would probably flow from the excess of their partial
- affection for herself, and which was more than she felt
- equal to support.
-
- From their counsel, or their conversation, she knew
- she could receive no assistance, their tenderness and
- sorrow must add to her distress, while her self-command
- would neither receive encouragement from their example
- nor from their praise. She was stronger alone,
- and her own good sense so well supported her, that her
- firmness was as unshaken, her appearance of cheerfulness
- as invariable, as with regrets so poignant and so fresh,
- it was possible for them to be.
-
- Much as she had suffered from her first conversation
- with Lucy on the subject, she soon felt an earnest wish
- of renewing it; and this for more reasons than one.
- She wanted to hear many particulars of their engagement
- repeated again, she wanted more clearly to understand
- what Lucy really felt for Edward, whether there were any
- sincerity in her declaration of tender regard for him,
- and she particularly wanted to convince Lucy, by her
- readiness to enter on the matter again, and her calmness
- in conversing on it, that she was no otherwise interested
- in it than as a friend, which she very much feared
- her involuntary agitation, in their morning discourse,
- must have left at least doubtful. That Lucy was disposed
- to be jealous of her appeared very probable: it was plain
- that Edward had always spoken highly in her praise,
- not merely from Lucy's assertion, but from her venturing
- to trust her on so short a personal acquaintance,
- with a secret so confessedly and evidently important.
- And even Sir John's joking intelligence must have had
- some weight. But indeed, while Elinor remained so well
- assured within herself of being really beloved by Edward,
- it required no other consideration of probabilities
- to make it natural that Lucy should be jealous;
- and that she was so, her very confidence was a proof.
- What other reason for the disclosure of the affair could
- there be, but that Elinor might be informed by it of Lucy's
- superior claims on Edward, and be taught to avoid him
- in future? She had little difficulty in understanding thus
- much of her rival's intentions, and while she was firmly
- resolved to act by her as every principle of honour and
- honesty directed, to combat her own affection for Edward
- and to see him as little as possible; she could not deny
- herself the comfort of endeavouring to convince Lucy
- that her heart was unwounded. And as she could now have
- nothing more painful to hear on the subject than had already
- been told, she did not mistrust her own ability of going
- through a repetition of particulars with composure.
-
- But it was not immediately that an opportunity
- of doing so could be commanded, though Lucy was as well
- disposed as herself to take advantage of any that occurred;
- for the weather was not often fine enough to allow
- of their joining in a walk, where they might most easily
- separate themselves from the others; and though they
- met at least every other evening either at the park
- or cottage, and chiefly at the former, they could
- not be supposed to meet for the sake of conversation.
- Such a thought would never enter either Sir John or Lady
- Middleton's head; and therefore very little leisure
- was ever given for a general chat, and none at all for
- particular discourse. They met for the sake of eating,
- drinking, and laughing together, playing at cards,
- or consequences, or any other game that was sufficiently noisy.
-
- One or two meetings of this kind had taken place,
- without affording Elinor any chance of engaging Lucy
- in private, when Sir John called at the cottage one morning,
- to beg, in the name of charity, that they would all
- dine with Lady Middleton that day, as he was obliged
- to attend the club at Exeter, and she would otherwise be
- quite alone, except her mother and the two Miss Steeles.
- Elinor, who foresaw a fairer opening for the point she
- had in view, in such a party as this was likely to be,
- more at liberty among themselves under the tranquil
- and well-bred direction of Lady Middleton than when
- her husband united them together in one noisy purpose,
- immediately accepted the invitation; Margaret, with her
- mother's permission, was equally compliant, and Marianne,
- though always unwilling to join any of their parties,
- was persuaded by her mother, who could not bear to have her
- seclude herself from any chance of amusement, to go likewise.
-
- The young ladies went, and Lady Middleton was happily
- preserved from the frightful solitude which had threatened her.
- The insipidity of the meeting was exactly such as Elinor
- had expected; it produced not one novelty of thought
- or expression, and nothing could be less interesting
- than the whole of their discourse both in the dining
- parlour and drawing room: to the latter, the children
- accompanied them, and while they remained there, she was
- too well convinced of the impossibility of engaging Lucy's
- attention to attempt it. They quitted it only with the
- removal of the tea-things. The card-table was then placed,
- and Elinor began to wonder at herself for having ever
- entertained a hope of finding time for conversation
- at the park. They all rose up in preparation for a round game.
-
- "I am glad," said Lady Middleton to Lucy,
- "you are not going to finish poor little Annamaria's
- basket this evening; for I am sure it must hurt your
- eyes to work filigree by candlelight. And we will make
- the dear little love some amends for her disappointment
- to-morrow, and then I hope she will not much mind it."
-
- This hint was enough, Lucy recollected herself instantly
- and replied, "Indeed you are very much mistaken,
- Lady Middleton; I am only waiting to know whether you can
- make your party without me, or I should have been at my
- filigree already. I would not disappoint the little angel
- for all the world: and if you want me at the card-table now,
- I am resolved to finish the basket after supper."
-
- "You are very good, I hope it won't hurt your eyes--
- will you ring the bell for some working candles?
- My poor little girl would be sadly disappointed, I know,
- if the basket was not finished tomorrow, for though I
- told her it certainly would not, I am sure she depends
- upon having it done."
-
- Lucy directly drew her work table near her
- and reseated herself with an alacrity and cheerfulness
- which seemed to infer that she could taste no greater
- delight than in making a filigree basket for a spoilt child.
-
- Lady Middleton proposed a rubber of Casino to the others.
- No one made any objection but Marianne, who with her usual
- inattention to the forms of general civility, exclaimed,
- "Your Ladyship will have the goodness to excuse ME--you
- know I detest cards. I shall go to the piano-forte;
- I have not touched it since it was tuned." And without
- farther ceremony, she turned away and walked to the instrument.
-
- Lady Middleton looked as if she thanked heaven
- that SHE had never made so rude a speech.
-
- "Marianne can never keep long from that instrument
- you know, ma'am," said Elinor, endeavouring to smooth
- away the offence; "and I do not much wonder at it; for it
- is the very best toned piano-forte I ever heard."
-
- The remaining five were now to draw their cards.
-
- "Perhaps," continued Elinor, "if I should happen
- to cut out, I may be of some use to Miss Lucy Steele,
- in rolling her papers for her; and there is so much still
- to be done to the basket, that it must be impossible
- I think for her labour singly, to finish it this evening.
- I should like the work exceedingly, if she would allow
- me a share in it."
-
- "Indeed I shall be very much obliged to you
- for your help," cried Lucy, "for I find there is more
- to be done to it than I thought there was; and it would
- be a shocking thing to disappoint dear Annamaria after all."
-
- "Oh! that would be terrible, indeed," said Miss Steele--
- "Dear little soul, how I do love her!"
-
- "You are very kind," said Lady Middleton to Elinor;
- "and as you really like the work, perhaps you will be
- as well pleased not to cut in till another rubber,
- or will you take your chance now?"
-
- Elinor joyfully profited by the first of these proposals,
- and thus by a little of that address which Marianne
- could never condescend to practise, gained her own end,
- and pleased Lady Middleton at the same time. Lucy made room
- for her with ready attention, and the two fair rivals were
- thus seated side by side at the same table, and, with the
- utmost harmony, engaged in forwarding the same work.
- The pianoforte at which Marianne, wrapped up in her own
- music and her own thoughts, had by this time forgotten
- that any body was in the room besides herself, was luckily
- so near them that Miss Dashwood now judged she might safely,
- under the shelter of its noise, introduce the interesting
- subject, without any risk of being heard at the card-table.
-
-
-
- CHAPTER 24
-
-
- In a firm, though cautious tone, Elinor thus began.
-
- "I should be undeserving of the confidence you have
- honoured me with, if I felt no desire for its continuance,
- or no farther curiosity on its subject. I will
- not apologize therefore for bringing it forward again."
-
- "Thank you," cried Lucy warmly, "for breaking
- the ice; you have set my heart at ease by it; for I was
- somehow or other afraid I had offended you by what I
- told you that Monday."
-
- "Offended me! How could you suppose so? Believe me,"
- and Elinor spoke it with the truest sincerity,
- "nothing could be farther from my intention than to give
- you such an idea. Could you have a motive for the trust,
- that was not honourable and flattering to me?"
-
- "And yet I do assure you," replied Lucy, her little
- sharp eyes full of meaning, "there seemed to me to be
- a coldness and displeasure in your manner that made me
- quite uncomfortable. I felt sure that you was angry with me;
- and have been quarrelling with myself ever since, for having
- took such a liberty as to trouble you with my affairs.
- But I am very glad to find it was only my own fancy,
- and that you really do not blame me. If you knew what a
- consolation it was to me to relieve my heart speaking to you
- of what I am always thinking of every moment of my life,
- your compassion would make you overlook every thing else
- I am sure."
-
- "Indeed, I can easily believe that it was a very great
- relief to you, to acknowledge your situation to me, and be
- assured that you shall never have reason to repent it.
- Your case is a very unfortunate one; you seem to me to
- be surrounded with difficulties, and you will have need
- of all your mutual affection to support you under them.
- Mr. Ferrars, I believe, is entirely dependent on his mother."
-
- "He has only two thousand pounds of his own; it would
- be madness to marry upon that, though for my own part,
- I could give up every prospect of more without a sigh.
- I have been always used to a very small income, and could
- struggle with any poverty for him; but I love him too well
- to be the selfish means of robbing him, perhaps, of all that
- his mother might give him if he married to please her.
- We must wait, it may be for many years. With almost every
- other man in the world, it would be an alarming prospect;
- but Edward's affection and constancy nothing can deprive me of
- I know."
-
- "That conviction must be every thing to you;
- and he is undoubtedly supported by the same trust in your's.
- If the strength of your reciprocal attachment had failed,
- as between many people, and under many circumstances
- it naturally would during a four years' engagement,
- your situation would have been pitiable, indeed."
-
- Lucy here looked up; but Elinor was careful
- in guarding her countenance from every expression
- that could give her words a suspicious tendency.
-
- "Edward's love for me," said Lucy, "has been pretty
- well put to the test, by our long, very long absence
- since we were first engaged, and it has stood the trial
- so well, that I should be unpardonable to doubt it now.
- I can safely say that he has never gave me one moment's
- alarm on that account from the first."
-
- Elinor hardly knew whether to smile or sigh
- at this assertion.
-
- Lucy went on. "I am rather of a jealous temper too
- by nature, and from our different situations in life,
- from his being so much more in the world than me, and our
- continual separation, I was enough inclined for suspicion,
- to have found out the truth in an instant, if there had been
- the slightest alteration in his behaviour to me when we met,
- or any lowness of spirits that I could not account for,
- or if he had talked more of one lady than another,
- or seemed in any respect less happy at Longstaple than he
- used to be. I do not mean to say that I am particularly
- observant or quick-sighted in general, but in such a case
- I am sure I could not be deceived."
-
- "All this," thought Elinor, "is very pretty;
- but it can impose upon neither of us."
-
- "But what," said she after a short silence,
- "are your views? or have you none but that of waiting for
- Mrs. Ferrars's death, which is a melancholy and shocking
- extremity?--Is her son determined to submit to this,
- and to all the tediousness of the many years of suspense
- in which it may involve you, rather than run the risk
- of her displeasure for a while by owning the truth?"
-
- "If we could be certain that it would be only
- for a while! But Mrs. Ferrars is a very headstrong
- proud woman, and in her first fit of anger upon hearing
- it, would very likely secure every thing to Robert,
- and the idea of that, for Edward's sake, frightens away
- all my inclination for hasty measures."
-
- "And for your own sake too, or you are carrying
- your disinterestedness beyond reason."
-
- Lucy looked at Elinor again, and was silent.
-
- "Do you know Mr. Robert Ferrars?" asked Elinor.
-
- "Not at all--I never saw him; but I fancy he
- is very unlike his brother--silly and a great coxcomb."
-
- "A great coxcomb!" repeated Miss Steele, whose ear had
- caught those words by a sudden pause in Marianne's music.--
- "Oh, they are talking of their favourite beaux, I dare say."
-
- "No sister," cried Lucy, "you are mistaken there, our
- favourite beaux are NOT great coxcombs."
-
- "I can answer for it that Miss Dashwood's is not,"
- said Mrs. Jennings, laughing heartily; "for he is one
- of the modestest, prettiest behaved young men I ever saw;
- but as for Lucy, she is such a sly little creature,
- there is no finding out who SHE likes."
-
- "Oh," cried Miss Steele, looking significantly round
- at them, "I dare say Lucy's beau is quite as modest
- and pretty behaved as Miss Dashwood's."
-
- Elinor blushed in spite of herself. Lucy bit her lip,
- and looked angrily at her sister. A mutual silence took
- place for some time. Lucy first put an end to it by saying
- in a lower tone, though Marianne was then giving them
- the powerful protection of a very magnificent concerto--
-
- "I will honestly tell you of one scheme which has
- lately come into my head, for bringing matters to bear;
- indeed I am bound to let you into the secret, for you
- are a party concerned. I dare say you have seen enough
- of Edward to know that he would prefer the church to every
- other profession; now my plan is that he should take
- orders as soon as he can, and then through your interest,
- which I am sure you would be kind enough to use out of
- friendship for him, and I hope out of some regard to me,
- your brother might be persuaded to give him Norland living;
- which I understand is a very good one, and the present
- incumbent not likely to live a great while. That would
- be enough for us to marry upon, and we might trust to time
- and chance for the rest."
-
- "I should always be happy," replied Elinor, "to show
- any mark of my esteem and friendship for Mr. Ferrars;
- but do you not perceive that my interest on such an
- occasion would be perfectly unnecessary? He is brother
- to Mrs. John Dashwood--THAT must be recommendation enough
- to her husband."
-
- "But Mrs. John Dashwood would not much approve
- of Edward's going into orders."
-
- "Then I rather suspect that my interest would
- do very little."
-
- They were again silent for many minutes. At length
- Lucy exclaimed with a deep sigh,
-
- "I believe it would be the wisest way to put an end
- to the business at once by dissolving the engagement.
- We seem so beset with difficulties on every side,
- that though it would make us miserable for a time,
- we should be happier perhaps in the end. But you will
- not give me your advice, Miss Dashwood?"
-
- "No," answered Elinor, with a smile, which concealed
- very agitated feelings, "on such a subject I certainly
- will not. You know very well that my opinion would have
- no weight with you, unless it were on the side of your wishes."
-
- "Indeed you wrong me," replied Lucy, with great
- solemnity; "I know nobody of whose judgment I think
- so highly as I do of yours; and I do really believe,
- that if you was to say to me, 'I advise you by all means
- to put an end to your engagement with Edward Ferrars,
- it will be more for the happiness of both of you,'
- I should resolve upon doing it immediately."
-
- Elinor blushed for the insincerity of Edward's
- future wife, and replied, "This compliment would effectually
- frighten me from giving any opinion on the subject
- had I formed one. It raises my influence much too high;
- the power of dividing two people so tenderly attached
- is too much for an indifferent person."
-
- "'Tis because you are an indifferent person," said Lucy,
- with some pique, and laying a particular stress on those words,
- "that your judgment might justly have such weight with me.
- If you could be supposed to be biased in any respect
- by your own feelings, your opinion would not be worth having."
-
- Elinor thought it wisest to make no answer to this,
- lest they might provoke each other to an unsuitable increase
- of ease and unreserve; and was even partly determined
- never to mention the subject again. Another pause
- therefore of many minutes' duration, succeeded this speech,
- and Lucy was still the first to end it.
-
- "Shall you be in town this winter, Miss Dashwood?"
- said she with all her accustomary complacency.
-
- "Certainly not."
-
- "I am sorry for that," returned the other,
- while her eyes brightened at the information,
- "it would have gave me such pleasure to meet you there!
- But I dare say you will go for all that. To be sure,
- your brother and sister will ask you to come to them."
-
- "It will not be in my power to accept their invitation
- if they do."
-
- "How unlucky that is! I had quite depended upon
- meeting you there. Anne and me are to go the latter end
- of January to some relations who have been wanting us to
- visit them these several years! But I only go for the sake
- of seeing Edward. He will be there in February, otherwise
- London would have no charms for me; I have not spirits for it."
-
- Elinor was soon called to the card-table by the
- conclusion of the first rubber, and the confidential
- discourse of the two ladies was therefore at an end,
- to which both of them submitted without any reluctance,
- for nothing had been said on either side to make them
- dislike each other less than they had done before;
- and Elinor sat down to the card table with the melancholy
- persuasion that Edward was not only without affection
- for the person who was to be his wife; but that he had
- not even the chance of being tolerably happy in marriage,
- which sincere affection on HER side would have given,
- for self-interest alone could induce a woman to keep a man
- to an engagement, of which she seemed so thoroughly aware
- that he was weary.
-
- From this time the subject was never revived by Elinor,
- and when entered on by Lucy, who seldom missed an opportunity
- of introducing it, and was particularly careful to inform
- her confidante, of her happiness whenever she received a letter
- from Edward, it was treated by the former with calmness
- and caution, and dismissed as soon as civility would allow;
- for she felt such conversations to be an indulgence which
- Lucy did not deserve, and which were dangerous to herself.
-
- The visit of the Miss Steeles at Barton Park was
- lengthened far beyond what the first invitation implied.
- Their favour increased; they could not be spared;
- Sir John would not hear of their going; and in spite
- of their numerous and long arranged engagements in Exeter,
- in spite of the absolute necessity of returning to fulfill
- them immediately, which was in full force at the end
- of every week, they were prevailed on to stay nearly two
- months at the park, and to assist in the due celebration
- of that festival which requires a more than ordinary
- share of private balls and large dinners to proclaim
- its importance.
-
-
-
- CHAPTER 25
-
-
- Though Mrs. Jennings was in the habit of spending a large
- portion of the year at the houses of her children and friends,
- she was not without a settled habitation of her own.
- Since the death of her husband, who had traded with success
- in a less elegant part of the town, she had resided every
- winter in a house in one of the streets near Portman Square.
- Towards this home, she began on the approach of January
- to turn her thoughts, and thither she one day abruptly,
- and very unexpectedly by them, asked the elder Misses
- Dashwood to accompany her. Elinor, without observing
- the varying complexion of her sister, and the animated look
- which spoke no indifference to the plan, immediately gave
- a grateful but absolute denial for both, in which she
- believed herself to be speaking their united inclinations.
- The reason alleged was their determined resolution
- of not leaving their mother at that time of the year.
- Mrs. Jennings received the refusal with some surprise,
- and repeated her invitation immediately.
-
- "Oh, Lord! I am sure your mother can spare you
- very well, and I DO beg you will favour me with
- your company, for I've quite set my heart upon it.
- Don't fancy that you will be any inconvenience to me,
- for I shan't put myself at all out of my way for you.
- It will only be sending Betty by the coach, and I
- hope I can afford THAT. We three shall be able to go
- very well in my chaise; and when we are in town,
- if you do not like to go wherever I do, well and good,
- you may always go with one of my daughters. I am sure
- your mother will not object to it; for I have had such
- good luck in getting my own children off my hands that she
- will think me a very fit person to have the charge of you;
- and if I don't get one of you at least well married
- before I have done with you, it shall not be my fault.
- I shall speak a good word for you to all the young men,
- you may depend upon it."
-
- "I have a notion," said Sir John, "that Miss Marianne
- would not object to such a scheme, if her elder sister
- would come into it. It is very hard indeed that she
- should not have a little pleasure, because Miss Dashwood
- does not wish it. So I would advise you two, to set off
- for town, when you are tired of Barton, without saying
- a word to Miss Dashwood about it."
-
- "Nay," cried Mrs. Jennings, "I am sure I shall be
- monstrous glad of Miss Marianne's company, whether Miss
- Dashwood will go or not, only the more the merrier say I,
- and I thought it would be more comfortable for them to
- be together; because, if they got tired of me, they might talk
- to one another, and laugh at my old ways behind my back.
- But one or the other, if not both of them, I must have.
- Lord bless me! how do you think I can live poking by myself,
- I who have been always used till this winter to have
- Charlotte with me. Come, Miss Marianne, let us strike
- hands upon the bargain, and if Miss Dashwood will change
- her mind by and bye, why so much the better."
-
- "I thank you, ma'am, sincerely thank you," said Marianne,
- with warmth: "your invitation has insured my gratitude for ever,
- and it would give me such happiness, yes, almost the greatest
- happiness I am capable of, to be able to accept it.
- But my mother, my dearest, kindest mother,--I feel the
- justice of what Elinor has urged, and if she were to be
- made less happy, less comfortable by our absence--Oh! no,
- nothing should tempt me to leave her. It should not,
- must not be a struggle."
-
- Mrs. Jennings repeated her assurance that Mrs. Dashwood
- could spare them perfectly well; and Elinor, who now
- understood her sister, and saw to what indifference to
- almost every thing else she was carried by her eagerness
- to be with Willoughby again, made no farther direct
- opposition to the plan, and merely referred it to her
- mother's decision, from whom however she scarcely expected
- to receive any support in her endeavour to prevent a visit,
- which she could not approve of for Marianne, and which
- on her own account she had particular reasons to avoid.
- Whatever Marianne was desirous of, her mother would be eager
- to promote--she could not expect to influence the latter
- to cautiousness of conduct in an affair respecting which she
- had never been able to inspire her with distrust; and she
- dared not explain the motive of her own disinclination
- for going to London. That Marianne, fastidious as she was,
- thoroughly acquainted with Mrs. Jennings' manners,
- and invariably disgusted by them, should overlook every
- inconvenience of that kind, should disregard whatever
- must be most wounding to her irritable feelings, in her
- pursuit of one object, was such a proof, so strong,
- so full, of the importance of that object to her, as Elinor,
- in spite of all that had passed, was not prepared to witness.
-
- On being informed of the invitation, Mrs. Dashwood,
- persuaded that such an excursion would be productive
- of much amusement to both her daughters, and perceiving
- through all her affectionate attention to herself,
- how much the heart of Marianne was in it, would not hear
- of their declining the offer upon HER account; insisted on
- their both accepting it directly; and then began to foresee,
- with her usual cheerfulness, a variety of advantages that
- would accrue to them all, from this separation.
-
- "I am delighted with the plan," she cried,
- "it is exactly what I could wish. Margaret and I shall
- be as much benefited by it as yourselves. When you
- and the Middletons are gone, we shall go on so quietly
- and happily together with our books and our music! You
- will find Margaret so improved when you come back again!
- I have a little plan of alteration for your bedrooms too,
- which may now be performed without any inconvenience
- to any one. It is very right that you SHOULD go to town;
- I would have every young woman of your condition in life
- acquainted with the manners and amusements of London.
- You will be under the care of a motherly good sort
- of woman, of whose kindness to you I can have no doubt.
- And in all probability you will see your brother,
- and whatever may be his faults, or the faults of his wife,
- when I consider whose son he is, I cannot bear to have you so
- wholly estranged from each other."
-
- "Though with your usual anxiety for our happiness,"
- said Elinor, "you have been obviating every impediment
- to the present scheme which occurred to you, there is
- still one objection which, in my opinion, cannot be so
- easily removed."
-
- Marianne's countenance sunk.
-
- "And what," said Mrs. Dashwood, "is my dear prudent
- Elinor going to suggest? What formidable obstacle is she
- now to bring forward? Do let me hear a word about the
- expense of it."
-
- "My objection is this; though I think very well of
- Mrs. Jennings's heart, she is not a woman whose society
- can afford us pleasure, or whose protection will give
- us consequence."
-
- "That is very true," replied her mother, "but of
- her society, separately from that of other people,
- you will scarcely have any thing at all, and you will
- almost always appear in public with Lady Middleton."
-
- "If Elinor is frightened away by her dislike of
- Mrs. Jennings," said Marianne, "at least it need not prevent
- MY accepting her invitation. I have no such scruples,
- and I am sure I could put up with every unpleasantness
- of that kind with very little effort."
-
- Elinor could not help smiling at this display of
- indifference towards the manners of a person, to whom she
- had often had difficulty in persuading Marianne to behave
- with tolerable politeness; and resolved within herself,
- that if her sister persisted in going, she would
- go likewise, as she did not think it proper that Marianne
- should be left to the sole guidance of her own judgment,
- or that Mrs. Jennings should be abandoned to the mercy
- of Marianne for all the comfort of her domestic hours.
- To this determination she was the more easily reconciled,
- by recollecting that Edward Ferrars, by Lucy's account,
- was not to be in town before February; and that
- their visit, without any unreasonable abridgement,
- might be previously finished.
-
- "I will have you BOTH go," said Mrs. Dashwood;
- "these objections are nonsensical. You will have much
- pleasure in being in London, and especially in being together;
- and if Elinor would ever condescend to anticipate enjoyment,
- she would foresee it there from a variety of sources;
- she would, perhaps, expect some from improving her
- acquaintance with her sister-in-law's family."
-
- Elinor had often wished for an opportunity of
- attempting to weaken her mother's dependence on the
- attachment of Edward and herself, that the shock might
- be less when the whole truth were revealed, and now
- on this attack, though almost hopeless of success,
- she forced herself to begin her design by saying,
- as calmly as she could, "I like Edward Ferrars very much,
- and shall always be glad to see him; but as to the rest
- of the family, it is a matter of perfect indifference
- to me, whether I am ever known to them or not."
-
- Mrs. Dashwood smiled, and said nothing.
- Marianne lifted up her eyes in astonishment, and Elinor
- conjectured that she might as well have held her tongue.
-
- After very little farther discourse, it was finally
- settled that the invitation should be fully accepted.
- Mrs. Jennings received the information with a great
- deal of joy, and many assurances of kindness and care;
- nor was it a matter of pleasure merely to her. Sir John
- was delighted; for to a man, whose prevailing anxiety
- was the dread of being alone, the acquisition of two,
- to the number of inhabitants in London, was something.
- Even Lady Middleton took the trouble of being delighted,
- which was putting herself rather out of her way;
- and as for the Miss Steeles, especially Lucy, they had
- never been so happy in their lives as this intelligence
- made them.
-
- Elinor submitted to the arrangement which counteracted
- her wishes with less reluctance than she had expected
- to feel. With regard to herself, it was now a matter
- of unconcern whether she went to town or not, and when
- she saw her mother so thoroughly pleased with the plan,
- and her sister exhilarated by it in look, voice, and manner,
- restored to all her usual animation, and elevated to more
- than her usual gaiety, she could not be dissatisfied
- with the cause, and would hardly allow herself to distrust
- the consequence.
-
- Marianne's joy was almost a degree beyond happiness,
- so great was the perturbation of her spirits and her
- impatience to be gone. Her unwillingness to quit her
- mother was her only restorative to calmness; and at the
- moment of parting her grief on that score was excessive.
- Her mother's affliction was hardly less, and Elinor
- was the only one of the three, who seemed to consider
- the separation as any thing short of eternal.
-
- Their departure took place in the first week in January.
- The Middletons were to follow in about a week. The Miss
- Steeles kept their station at the park, and were to quit
- it only with the rest of the family.
-
-
-
- CHAPTER 26
-
-
- Elinor could not find herself in the carriage with Mrs. Jennings,
- and beginning a journey to London under her protection,
- and as her guest, without wondering at her own situation,
- so short had their acquaintance with that lady been,
- so wholly unsuited were they in age and disposition,
- and so many had been her objections against such a measure
- only a few days before! But these objections had all,
- with that happy ardour of youth which Marianne and her mother
- equally shared, been overcome or overlooked; and Elinor,
- in spite of every occasional doubt of Willoughby's constancy,
- could not witness the rapture of delightful expectation
- which filled the whole soul and beamed in the eyes
- of Marianne, without feeling how blank was her own prospect,
- how cheerless her own state of mind in the comparison,
- and how gladly she would engage in the solicitude of
- Marianne's situation to have the same animating object
- in view, the same possibility of hope. A short, a very
- short time however must now decide what Willoughby's
- intentions were; in all probability he was already in town.
- Marianne's eagerness to be gone declared her dependence
- on finding him there; and Elinor was resolved not only upon
- gaining every new light as to his character which her
- own observation or the intelligence of others could give her,
- but likewise upon watching his behaviour to her sister
- with such zealous attention, as to ascertain what he was
- and what he meant, before many meetings had taken place.
- Should the result of her observations be unfavourable,
- she was determined at all events to open the eyes
- of her sister; should it be otherwise, her exertions
- would be of a different nature--she must then learn
- to avoid every selfish comparison, and banish every regret
- which might lessen her satisfaction in the happiness of Marianne.
-
- They were three days on their journey, and Marianne's
- behaviour as they travelled was a happy specimen of what
- future complaisance and companionableness to Mrs. Jennings
- might be expected to be. She sat in silence almost all
- the way, wrapt in her own meditations, and scarcely ever
- voluntarily speaking, except when any object of picturesque
- beauty within their view drew from her an exclamation
- of delight exclusively addressed to her sister. To atone
- for this conduct therefore, Elinor took immediate possession
- of the post of civility which she had assigned herself,
- behaved with the greatest attention to Mrs. Jennings,
- talked with her, laughed with her, and listened to her
- whenever she could; and Mrs. Jennings on her side
- treated them both with all possible kindness, was solicitous
- on every occasion for their ease and enjoyment, and only
- disturbed that she could not make them choose their own
- dinners at the inn, nor extort a confession of their
- preferring salmon to cod, or boiled fowls to veal cutlets.
- They reached town by three o'clock the third day, glad to
- be released, after such a journey, from the confinement
- of a carriage, and ready to enjoy all the luxury of a good fire.
-
- The house was handsome, and handsomely fitted up,
- and the young ladies were immediately put in possession
- of a very comfortable apartment. It had formerly
- been Charlotte's, and over the mantelpiece still hung
- a landscape in coloured silks of her performance,
- in proof of her having spent seven years at a great school
- in town to some effect.
-
- As dinner was not to be ready in less than two
- hours from their arrival, Elinor determined to employ
- the interval in writing to her mother, and sat down for
- that purpose. In a few moments Marianne did the same.
- "I am writing home, Marianne," said Elinor; "had not you
- better defer your letter for a day or two?"
-
- "I am NOT going to write to my mother,"
- replied Marianne, hastily, and as if wishing to avoid
- any farther inquiry. Elinor said no more; it immediately
- struck her that she must then be writing to Willoughby;
- and the conclusion which as instantly followed was,
- that, however mysteriously they might wish to conduct
- the affair, they must be engaged. This conviction,
- though not entirely satisfactory, gave her pleasure,
- and she continued her letter with greater alacrity.
- Marianne's was finished in a very few minutes;
- in length it could be no more than a note; it was then
- folded up, sealed, and directed with eager rapidity.
- Elinor thought she could distinguish a large W in
- the direction; and no sooner was it complete than Marianne,
- ringing the bell, requested the footman who answered it
- to get that letter conveyed for her to the two-penny post.
- This decided the matter at once.
-
- Her spirits still continued very high; but there
- was a flutter in them which prevented their giving much
- pleasure to her sister, and this agitation increased as
- the evening drew on. She could scarcely eat any dinner,
- and when they afterwards returned to the drawing room,
- seemed anxiously listening to the sound of every carriage.
-
- It was a great satisfaction to Elinor that Mrs. Jennings,
- by being much engaged in her own room, could see little
- of what was passing. The tea things were brought in,
- and already had Marianne been disappointed more than once
- by a rap at a neighbouring door, when a loud one was suddenly
- heard which could not be mistaken for one at any other house,
- Elinor felt secure of its announcing Willoughby's approach,
- and Marianne, starting up, moved towards the door.
- Every thing was silent; this could not be borne many seconds;
- she opened the door, advanced a few steps towards the stairs,
- and after listening half a minute, returned into the room
- in all the agitation which a conviction of having heard
- him would naturally produce; in the ecstasy of her
- feelings at that instant she could not help exclaiming,
- "Oh, Elinor, it is Willoughby, indeed it is!" and seemed
- almost ready to throw herself into his arms, when Colonel
- Brandon appeared.
-
- It was too great a shock to be borne with calmness,
- and she immediately left the room. Elinor was disappointed too;
- but at the same time her regard for Colonel Brandon ensured
- his welcome with her; and she felt particularly hurt that
- a man so partial to her sister should perceive that she
- experienced nothing but grief and disappointment in seeing him.
- She instantly saw that it was not unnoticed by him,
- that he even observed Marianne as she quitted the room,
- with such astonishment and concern, as hardly left him
- the recollection of what civility demanded towards herself.
-
- "Is your sister ill?" said he.
-
- Elinor answered in some distress that she was,
- and then talked of head-aches, low spirits, and over fatigues;
- and of every thing to which she could decently attribute
- her sister's behaviour.
-
- He heard her with the most earnest attention,
- but seeming to recollect himself, said no more on the subject,
- and began directly to speak of his pleasure at seeing them
- in London, making the usual inquiries about their journey,
- and the friends they had left behind.
-
- In this calm kind of way, with very little interest
- on either side, they continued to talk, both of them out
- of spirits, and the thoughts of both engaged elsewhere.
- Elinor wished very much to ask whether Willoughby were
- then in town, but she was afraid of giving him pain
- by any enquiry after his rival; and at length, by way
- of saying something, she asked if he had been in London
- ever since she had seen him last. "Yes," he replied,
- with some embarrassment, "almost ever since; I have been
- once or twice at Delaford for a few days, but it has never
- been in my power to return to Barton."
-
- This, and the manner in which it was said,
- immediately brought back to her remembrance all the
- circumstances of his quitting that place, with the
- uneasiness and suspicions they had caused to Mrs. Jennings,
- and she was fearful that her question had implied
- much more curiosity on the subject than she had ever felt.
-
- Mrs. Jennings soon came in. "Oh! Colonel," said she,
- with her usual noisy cheerfulness, "I am monstrous glad
- to see you--sorry I could not come before--beg your
- pardon, but I have been forced to look about me a little,
- and settle my matters; for it is a long while since I
- have been at home, and you know one has always a world
- of little odd things to do after one has been away for
- any time; and then I have had Cartwright to settle with--
- Lord, I have been as busy as a bee ever since dinner!
- But pray, Colonel, how came you to conjure out that I should
- be in town today?"
-
- "I had the pleasure of hearing it at Mr. Palmer's,
- where I have been dining."
-
- "Oh, you did; well, and how do they all do at their
- house? How does Charlotte do? I warrant you she is a fine
- size by this time."
-
- "Mrs. Palmer appeared quite well, and I am commissioned
- to tell you, that you will certainly see her to-morrow."
-
- "Ay, to be sure, I thought as much. Well, Colonel,
- I have brought two young ladies with me, you see--that is,
- you see but one of them now, but there is another somewhere.
- Your friend, Miss Marianne, too--which you will not be
- sorry to hear. I do not know what you and Mr. Willoughby
- will do between you about her. Ay, it is a fine thing
- to be young and handsome. Well! I was young once, but I
- never was very handsome--worse luck for me. However, I got
- a very good husband, and I don't know what the greatest
- beauty can do more. Ah! poor man! he has been dead
- these eight years and better. But Colonel, where have
- you been to since we parted? And how does your business
- go on? Come, come, let's have no secrets among friends."
-
- He replied with his accustomary mildness to all
- her inquiries, but without satisfying her in any.
- Elinor now began to make the tea, and Marianne was
- obliged to appear again.
-
- After her entrance, Colonel Brandon became
- more thoughtful and silent than he had been before,
- and Mrs. Jennings could not prevail on him to stay long.
- No other visitor appeared that evening, and the ladies
- were unanimous in agreeing to go early to bed.
-
- Marianne rose the next morning with recovered spirits
- and happy looks. The disappointment of the evening before
- seemed forgotten in the expectation of what was to happen
- that day. They had not long finished their breakfast before
- Mrs. Palmer's barouche stopped at the door, and in a few
- minutes she came laughing into the room: so delighted
- to see them all, that it was hard to say whether she
- received most pleasure from meeting her mother or the Miss
- Dashwoods again. So surprised at their coming to town,
- though it was what she had rather expected all along;
- so angry at their accepting her mother's invitation
- after having declined her own, though at the same time
- she would never have forgiven them if they had not come!
-
- "Mr. Palmer will be so happy to see you,"
- said she; "What do you think he said when he heard
- of your coming with Mamma? I forget what it was now,
- but it was something so droll!"
-
- After an hour or two spent in what her mother called
- comfortable chat, or in other words, in every variety of inquiry
- concerning all their acquaintance on Mrs. Jennings's side,
- and in laughter without cause on Mrs. Palmer's, it was
- proposed by the latter that they should all accompany
- her to some shops where she had business that morning,
- to which Mrs. Jennings and Elinor readily consented,
- as having likewise some purchases to make themselves;
- and Marianne, though declining it at first was induced
- to go likewise.
-
- Wherever they went, she was evidently always on
- the watch. In Bond Street especially, where much of
- their business lay, her eyes were in constant inquiry;
- and in whatever shop the party were engaged, her mind was
- equally abstracted from every thing actually before them,
- from all that interested and occupied the others.
- Restless and dissatisfied every where, her sister could
- never obtain her opinion of any article of purchase,
- however it might equally concern them both: she received
- no pleasure from anything; was only impatient to be at
- home again, and could with difficulty govern her vexation
- at the tediousness of Mrs. Palmer, whose eye was caught
- by every thing pretty, expensive, or new; who was wild
- to buy all, could determine on none, and dawdled away her
- time in rapture and indecision.
-
- It was late in the morning before they returned home;
- and no sooner had they entered the house than Marianne flew
- eagerly up stairs, and when Elinor followed, she found
- her turning from the table with a sorrowful countenance,
- which declared that no Willoughby had been there.
-
- "Has no letter been left here for me since we went out?"
- said she to the footman who then entered with the parcels.
- She was answered in the negative. "Are you quite sure
- of it?" she replied. "Are you certain that no servant,
- no porter has left any letter or note?"
-
- The man replied that none had.
-
- "How very odd!" said she, in a low and disappointed
- voice, as she turned away to the window.
-
- "How odd, indeed!" repeated Elinor within herself,
- regarding her sister with uneasiness. "If she had not
- known him to be in town she would not have written to him,
- as she did; she would have written to Combe Magna;
- and if he is in town, how odd that he should neither
- come nor write! Oh! my dear mother, you must be wrong
- in permitting an engagement between a daughter so young,
- a man so little known, to be carried on in so doubtful,
- so mysterious a manner! I long to inquire; and how will MY
- interference be borne."
-
- She determined, after some consideration, that if
- appearances continued many days longer as unpleasant as they
- now were, she would represent in the strongest manner
- to her mother the necessity of some serious enquiry into the affair.
-
- Mrs. Palmer and two elderly ladies of Mrs. Jennings's
- intimate acquaintance, whom she had met and invited
- in the morning, dined with them. The former left them
- soon after tea to fulfill her evening engagements;
- and Elinor was obliged to assist in making a whist table
- for the others. Marianne was of no use on these occasions,
- as she would never learn the game; but though her time
- was therefore at her own disposal, the evening was by no
- means more productive of pleasure to her than to Elinor,
- for it was spent in all the anxiety of expectation and the
- pain of disappointment. She sometimes endeavoured for a
- few minutes to read; but the book was soon thrown aside,
- and she returned to the more interesting employment
- of walking backwards and forwards across the room,
- pausing for a moment whenever she came to the window,
- in hopes of distinguishing the long-expected rap.
-
-
-
- CHAPTER 27
-
-
- "If this open weather holds much longer," said Mrs. Jennings,
- when they met at breakfast the following morning,
- "Sir John will not like leaving Barton next week;
- 'tis a sad thing for sportsmen to lose a day's pleasure.
- Poor souls! I always pity them when they do; they seem
- to take it so much to heart."
-
- "That is true," cried Marianne, in a cheerful voice,
- and walking to the window as she spoke, to examine the day.
- "I had not thought of that. This weather will keep many
- sportsmen in the country."
-
- It was a lucky recollection, all her good spirits were
- restored by it. "It is charming weather for THEM indeed,"
- she continued, as she sat down to the breakfast table
- with a happy countenance. "How much they must enjoy
- it! But" (with a little return of anxiety) "it cannot
- be expected to last long. At this time of the year,
- and after such a series of rain, we shall certainly
- have very little more of it. Frosts will soon set in,
- and in all probability with severity. In another day
- or two perhaps; this extreme mildness can hardly last
- longer--nay, perhaps it may freeze tonight!"
-
- "At any rate," said Elinor, wishing to prevent
- Mrs. Jennings from seeing her sister's thoughts as clearly
- as she did, "I dare say we shall have Sir John and Lady
- Middleton in town by the end of next week."
-
- "Ay, my dear, I'll warrant you we do. Mary always
- has her own way."
-
- "And now," silently conjectured Elinor, "she will
- write to Combe by this day's post."
-
- But if she DID, the letter was written and sent away
- with a privacy which eluded all her watchfulness to ascertain
- the fact. Whatever the truth of it might be, and far
- as Elinor was from feeling thorough contentment about it,
- yet while she saw Marianne in spirits, she could not be
- very uncomfortable herself. And Marianne was in spirits;
- happy in the mildness of the weather, and still happier
- in her expectation of a frost.
-
- The morning was chiefly spent in leaving cards at
- the houses of Mrs. Jennings's acquaintance to inform
- them of her being in town; and Marianne was all the time
- busy in observing the direction of the wind, watching the
- variations of the sky and imagining an alteration in the air.
-
- "Don't you find it colder than it was in the morning,
- Elinor? There seems to me a very decided difference.
- I can hardly keep my hands warm even in my muff. It was
- not so yesterday, I think. The clouds seem parting too,
- the sun will be out in a moment, and we shall have a
- clear afternoon."
-
- Elinor was alternately diverted and pained;
- but Marianne persevered, and saw every night in the
- brightness of the fire, and every morning in the appearance
- of the atmosphere, the certain symptoms of approaching frost.
-
- The Miss Dashwoods had no greater reason to be
- dissatisfied with Mrs. Jennings's style of living, and set
- of acquaintance, than with her behaviour to themselves,
- which was invariably kind. Every thing in her household
- arrangements was conducted on the most liberal plan,
- and excepting a few old city friends, whom, to Lady
- Middleton's regret, she had never dropped, she visited
- no one to whom an introduction could at all discompose
- the feelings of her young companions. Pleased to find
- herself more comfortably situated in that particular than
- she had expected, Elinor was very willing to compound
- for the want of much real enjoyment from any of their
- evening parties, which, whether at home or abroad,
- formed only for cards, could have little to amuse her.
-
- Colonel Brandon, who had a general invitation
- to the house, was with them almost every day; he came
- to look at Marianne and talk to Elinor, who often derived
- more satisfaction from conversing with him than from any
- other daily occurrence, but who saw at the same time
- with much concern his continued regard for her sister.
- She feared it was a strengthening regard. It grieved her
- to see the earnestness with which he often watched Marianne,
- and his spirits were certainly worse than when at Barton.
-
- About a week after their arrival, it became
- certain that Willoughby was also arrived. His card
- was on the table when they came in from the morning's drive.
-
- "Good God!" cried Marianne, "he has been here while
- we were out." Elinor, rejoiced to be assured of his
- being in London, now ventured to say, "Depend upon it,
- he will call again tomorrow." But Marianne seemed
- hardly to hear her, and on Mrs. Jenning's entrance,
- escaped with the precious card.
-
- This event, while it raised the spirits of Elinor,
- restored to those of her sister all, and more than all,
- their former agitation. From this moment her mind was
- never quiet; the expectation of seeing him every hour
- of the day, made her unfit for any thing. She insisted
- on being left behind, the next morning, when the others
- went out.
-
- Elinor's thoughts were full of what might be passing
- in Berkeley Street during their absence; but a moment's
- glance at her sister when they returned was enough to
- inform her, that Willoughby had paid no second visit there.
- A note was just then brought in, and laid on the table,
-
- "For me!" cried Marianne, stepping hastily forward.
-
- "No, ma'am, for my mistress."
-
- But Marianne, not convinced, took it instantly up.
-
- "It is indeed for Mrs. Jennings; how provoking!"
-
- "You are expecting a letter, then?" said Elinor,
- unable to be longer silent.
-
- "Yes, a little--not much."
-
- After a short pause. "You have no confidence
- in me, Marianne."
-
- "Nay, Elinor, this reproach from YOU--you who have
- confidence in no one!"
-
- "Me!" returned Elinor in some confusion; "indeed,
- Marianne, I have nothing to tell."
-
- "Nor I," answered Marianne with energy, "our situations
- then are alike. We have neither of us any thing to tell;
- you, because you do not communicate, and I, because
- I conceal nothing."
-
- Elinor, distressed by this charge of reserve in herself,
- which she was not at liberty to do away, knew not how,
- under such circumstances, to press for greater openness
- in Marianne.
-
- Mrs. Jennings soon appeared, and the note being
- given her, she read it aloud. It was from Lady Middleton,
- announcing their arrival in Conduit Street the night before,
- and requesting the company of her mother and cousins
- the following evening. Business on Sir John's part,
- and a violent cold on her own, prevented their calling
- in Berkeley Street. The invitation was accepted;
- but when the hour of appointment drew near, necessary as
- it was in common civility to Mrs. Jennings, that they
- should both attend her on such a visit, Elinor had some
- difficulty in persuading her sister to go, for still
- she had seen nothing of Willoughby; and therefore was
- not more indisposed for amusement abroad, than unwilling
- to run the risk of his calling again in her absence.
-
- Elinor found, when the evening was over,
- that disposition is not materially altered by a change
- of abode, for although scarcely settled in town,
- Sir John had contrived to collect around him, nearly twenty
- young people, and to amuse them with a ball. This was
- an affair, however, of which Lady Middleton did not approve.
- In the country, an unpremeditated dance was very allowable;
- but in London, where the reputation of elegance was more
- important and less easily attained, it was risking too much
- for the gratification of a few girls, to have it known that
- Lady Middleton had given a small dance of eight or nine couple,
- with two violins, and a mere side-board collation.
-
- Mr. and Mrs. Palmer were of the party; from the former,
- whom they had not seen before since their arrival in town,
- as he was careful to avoid the appearance of any attention
- to his mother-in-law, and therefore never came near her,
- they received no mark of recognition on their entrance.
- He looked at them slightly, without seeming to know
- who they were, and merely nodded to Mrs. Jennings from
- the other side of the room. Marianne gave one glance
- round the apartment as she entered: it was enough--HE
- was not there--and she sat down, equally ill-disposed
- to receive or communicate pleasure. After they had been
- assembled about an hour, Mr. Palmer sauntered towards
- the Miss Dashwoods to express his surprise on seeing them
- in town, though Colonel Brandon had been first informed
- of their arrival at his house, and he had himself said
- something very droll on hearing that they were to come.
-
- "I thought you were both in Devonshire," said he.
-
- "Did you?" replied Elinor.
-
- "When do you go back again?"
-
- "I do not know." And thus ended their discourse.
-
- Never had Marianne been so unwilling to dance
- in her life, as she was that evening, and never so much
- fatigued by the exercise. She complained of it
- as they returned to Berkeley Street.
-
- "Aye, aye," said Mrs. Jennings, "we know the reason
- of all that very well; if a certain person who shall
- be nameless, had been there, you would not have been a
- bit tired: and to say the truth it was not very pretty
- of him not to give you the meeting when he was invited."
-
- "Invited!" cried Marianne.
-
- "So my daughter Middleton told me, for it seems Sir
- John met him somewhere in the street this morning."
- Marianne said no more, but looked exceedingly hurt.
- Impatient in this situation to be doing something
- that might lead to her sister's relief, Elinor resolved
- to write the next morning to her mother, and hoped
- by awakening her fears for the health of Marianne,
- to procure those inquiries which had been so long delayed;
- and she was still more eagerly bent on this measure
- by perceiving after breakfast on the morrow, that Marianne
- was again writing to Willoughby, for she could not suppose
- it to be to any other person.
-
- About the middle of the day, Mrs. Jennings went out by
- herself on business, and Elinor began her letter directly,
- while Marianne, too restless for employment, too anxious
- for conversation, walked from one window to the other,
- or sat down by the fire in melancholy meditation.
- Elinor was very earnest in her application to her mother,
- relating all that had passed, her suspicions of
- Willoughby's inconstancy, urging her by every plea
- of duty and affection to demand from Marianne an account
- of her real situation with respect to him.
-
- Her letter was scarcely finished, when a rap
- foretold a visitor, and Colonel Brandon was announced.
- Marianne, who had seen him from the window, and who hated
- company of any kind, left the room before he entered it.
- He looked more than usually grave, and though expressing
- satisfaction at finding Miss Dashwood alone, as if he
- had somewhat in particular to tell her, sat for some
- time without saying a word. Elinor, persuaded that he
- had some communication to make in which her sister
- was concerned, impatiently expected its opening.
- It was not the first time of her feeling the same kind
- of conviction; for, more than once before, beginning with
- the observation of "your sister looks unwell to-day,"
- or "your sister seems out of spirits," he had appeared
- on the point, either of disclosing, or of inquiring,
- something particular about her. After a pause of several
- minutes, their silence was broken, by his asking her
- in a voice of some agitation, when he was to congratulate
- her on the acquisition of a brother? Elinor was not
- prepared for such a question, and having no answer ready,
- was obliged to adopt the simple and common expedient,
- of asking what he meant? He tried to smile as he replied,
- "your sister's engagement to Mr. Willoughby is very generally known."
-
- "It cannot be generally known," returned Elinor,
- "for her own family do not know it."
-
- He looked surprised and said, "I beg your pardon,
- I am afraid my inquiry has been impertinent; but I had not
- supposed any secrecy intended, as they openly correspond,
- and their marriage is universally talked of."
-
- "How can that be? By whom can you have heard
- it mentioned?"
-
- "By many--by some of whom you know nothing, by others
- with whom you are most intimate, Mrs. Jennings, Mrs. Palmer,
- and the Middletons. But still I might not have believed it,
- for where the mind is perhaps rather unwilling to
- be convinced, it will always find something to support
- its doubts, if I had not, when the servant let me in today,
- accidentally seen a letter in his hand, directed to
- Mr. Willoughby in your sister's writing. I came to inquire,
- but I was convinced before I could ask the question.
- Is every thing finally settled? Is it impossible to-?
- But I have no right, and I could have no chance of succeeding.
- Excuse me, Miss Dashwood. I believe I have been wrong
- in saying so much, but I hardly know what to do, and on
- your prudence I have the strongest dependence. Tell me
- that it is all absolutely resolved on, that any attempt,
- that in short concealment, if concealment be possible,
- is all that remains."
-
- These words, which conveyed to Elinor a direct avowal
- of his love for her sister, affected her very much.
- She was not immediately able to say anything, and even
- when her spirits were recovered, she debated for a short
- time, on the answer it would be most proper to give.
- The real state of things between Willoughby and her sister
- was so little known to herself, that in endeavouring
- to explain it, she might be as liable to say too much
- as too little. Yet as she was convinced that Marianne's
- affection for Willoughby, could leave no hope of Colonel
- Brandon's success, whatever the event of that affection
- might be, and at the same time wished to shield her conduct
- from censure, she thought it most prudent and kind,
- after some consideration, to say more than she really knew
- or believed. She acknowledged, therefore, that though
- she had never been informed by themselves of the terms
- on which they stood with each other, of their mutual
- affection she had no doubt, and of their correspondence
- she was not astonished to hear.
-
- He listened to her with silent attention, and on
- her ceasing to speak, rose directly from his seat,
- and after saying in a voice of emotion, "to your sister
- I wish all imaginable happiness; to Willoughby that he
- may endeavour to deserve her,"--took leave, and went away.
-
- Elinor derived no comfortable feelings from this
- conversation, to lessen the uneasiness of her mind on
- other points; she was left, on the contrary, with a
- melancholy impression of Colonel Brandon's unhappiness,
- and was prevented even from wishing it removed,
- by her anxiety for the very event that must confirm it.
-
-
-
- CHAPTER 28
-
-
- Nothing occurred during the next three or four days,
- to make Elinor regret what she had done, in applying
- to her mother; for Willoughby neither came nor wrote.
- They were engaged about the end of that time to attend
- Lady Middleton to a party, from which Mrs. Jennings was
- kept away by the indisposition of her youngest daughter;
- and for this party, Marianne, wholly dispirited,
- careless of her appearance, and seeming equally indifferent
- whether she went or staid, prepared, without one look
- of hope or one expression of pleasure. She sat by the
- drawing-room fire after tea, till the moment of Lady
- Middleton's arrival, without once stirring from her seat,
- or altering her attitude, lost in her own thoughts,
- and insensible of her sister's presence; and when at
- last they were told that Lady Middleton waited for them
- at the door, she started as if she had forgotten that
- any one was expected.
-
- They arrived in due time at the place of destination,
- and as soon as the string of carriages before them
- would allow, alighted, ascended the stairs, heard their
- names announced from one landing-place to another in an
- audible voice, and entered a room splendidly lit up,
- quite full of company, and insufferably hot. When they had
- paid their tribute of politeness by curtsying to the lady
- of the house, they were permitted to mingle in the crowd,
- and take their share of the heat and inconvenience, to
- which their arrival must necessarily add. After some time
- spent in saying little or doing less, Lady Middleton sat
- down to Cassino, and as Marianne was not in spirits for
- moving about, she and Elinor luckily succeeding to chairs,
- placed themselves at no great distance from the table.
-
- They had not remained in this manner long, before Elinor
- perceived Willoughby, standing within a few yards
- of them, in earnest conversation with a very fashionable
- looking young woman. She soon caught his eye, and he
- immediately bowed, but without attempting to speak to her,
- or to approach Marianne, though he could not but see her;
- and then continued his discourse with the same lady.
- Elinor turned involuntarily to Marianne, to see whether
- it could be unobserved by her. At that moment she first
- perceived him, and her whole countenance glowing with
- sudden delight, she would have moved towards him instantly,
- had not her sister caught hold of her.
-
- "Good heavens!" she exclaimed, "he is there--he
- is there--Oh! why does he not look at me? why cannot
- I speak to him?"
-
- "Pray, pray be composed," cried Elinor, "and do
- not betray what you feel to every body present.
- Perhaps he has not observed you yet."
-
- This however was more than she could believe herself;
- and to be composed at such a moment was not only beyond
- the reach of Marianne, it was beyond her wish. She sat
- in an agony of impatience which affected every feature.
-
- At last he turned round again, and regarded them both;
- she started up, and pronouncing his name in a tone
- of affection, held out her hand to him. He approached,
- and addressing himself rather to Elinor than Marianne,
- as if wishing to avoid her eye, and determined not to
- observe her attitude, inquired in a hurried manner after
- Mrs. Dashwood, and asked how long they had been in town.
- Elinor was robbed of all presence of mind by such an address,
- and was unable to say a word. But the feelings of her sister
- were instantly expressed. Her face was crimsoned over,
- and she exclaimed, in a voice of the greatest emotion,
- "Good God! Willoughby, what is the meaning of this?
- Have you not received my letters? Will you not shake
- hands with me?"
-
- He could not then avoid it, but her touch seemed
- painful to him, and he held her hand only for a moment.
- During all this time he was evidently struggling for composure.
- Elinor watched his countenance and saw its expression
- becoming more tranquil. After a moment's pause, he spoke
- with calmness.
-
- "I did myself the honour of calling in Berkeley
- Street last Tuesday, and very much regretted that I was
- not fortunate enough to find yourselves and Mrs. Jennings
- at home. My card was not lost, I hope."
-
- "But have you not received my notes?" cried Marianne
- in the wildest anxiety. "Here is some mistake I am
- sure--some dreadful mistake. What can be the meaning
- of it? Tell me, Willoughby; for heaven's sake tell me,
- what is the matter?"
-
- He made no reply; his complexion changed and all his
- embarrassment returned; but as if, on catching the eye
- of the young lady with whom he had been previously talking,
- he felt the necessity of instant exertion, he recovered
- himself again, and after saying, "Yes, I had the pleasure
- of receiving the information of your arrival in town,
- which you were so good as to send me," turned hastily away
- with a slight bow and joined his friend.
-
- Marianne, now looking dreadfully white, and unable
- to stand, sunk into her chair, and Elinor, expecting every
- moment to see her faint, tried to screen her from the
- observation of others, while reviving her with lavender water.
-
- "Go to him, Elinor," she cried, as soon as she
- could speak, "and force him to come to me. Tell him
- I must see him again--must speak to him instantly.--
- I cannot rest--I shall not have a moment's peace till this
- is explained--some dreadful misapprehension or other.--
- Oh go to him this moment."
-
- "How can that be done? No, my dearest Marianne,
- you must wait. This is not the place for explanations.
- Wait only till tomorrow."
-
- With difficulty however could she prevent her
- from following him herself; and to persuade her to check
- her agitation, to wait, at least, with the appearance
- of composure, till she might speak to him with more privacy
- and more effect, was impossible; for Marianne continued
- incessantly to give way in a low voice to the misery
- of her feelings, by exclamations of wretchedness.
- In a short time Elinor saw Willoughby quit the room by the
- door towards the staircase, and telling Marianne that he
- was gone, urged the impossibility of speaking to him again
- that evening, as a fresh argument for her to be calm.
- She instantly begged her sister would entreat Lady
- Middleton to take them home, as she was too miserable
- to stay a minute longer.
-
- Lady Middleton, though in the middle of a rubber,
- on being informed that Marianne was unwell, was too
- polite to object for a moment to her wish of going away,
- and making over her cards to a friend, they departed
- as soon the carriage could be found. Scarcely a word
- was spoken during their return to Berkeley Street.
- Marianne was in a silent agony, too much oppressed even
- for tears; but as Mrs. Jennings was luckily not come home,
- they could go directly to their own room, where hartshorn
- restored her a little to herself. She was soon undressed
- and in bed, and as she seemed desirous of being alone,
- her sister then left her, and while she waited the return
- of Mrs. Jennings, had leisure enough for thinking over
- the past.
-
- That some kind of engagement had subsisted
- between Willoughby and Marianne she could not doubt,
- and that Willoughby was weary of it, seemed equally clear;
- for however Marianne might still feed her own wishes,
- SHE could not attribute such behaviour to mistake
- or misapprehension of any kind. Nothing but a thorough
- change of sentiment could account for it. Her indignation
- would have been still stronger than it was, had she
- not witnessed that embarrassment which seemed to speak
- a consciousness of his own misconduct, and prevented
- her from believing him so unprincipled as to have been
- sporting with the affections of her sister from the first,
- without any design that would bear investigation.
- Absence might have weakened his regard, and convenience
- might have determined him to overcome it, but that such
- a regard had formerly existed she could not bring herself
- to doubt.
-
- As for Marianne, on the pangs which so unhappy a meeting
- must already have given her, and on those still more
- severe which might await her in its probable consequence,
- she could not reflect without the deepest concern.
- Her own situation gained in the comparison; for while she
- could ESTEEM Edward as much as ever, however they might be
- divided in future, her mind might be always supported.
- But every circumstance that could embitter such an evil
- seemed uniting to heighten the misery of Marianne
- in a final separation from Willoughby--in an immediate
- and irreconcilable rupture with him.
-
-
-
- CHAPTER 29
-
-
- Before the house-maid had lit their fire the next day,
- or the sun gained any power over a cold, gloomy morning
- in January, Marianne, only half dressed, was kneeling
- against one of the window-seats for the sake of all
- the little light she could command from it, and writing
- as fast as a continual flow of tears would permit her.
- In this situation, Elinor, roused from sleep by her agitation
- and sobs, first perceived her; and after observing her
- for a few moments with silent anxiety, said, in a tone
- of the most considerate gentleness,
-
- "Marianne, may I ask-?"
-
- "No, Elinor," she replied, "ask nothing; you will
- soon know all."
-
- The sort of desperate calmness with which this was said,
- lasted no longer than while she spoke, and was immediately
- followed by a return of the same excessive affliction.
- It was some minutes before she could go on with her letter,
- and the frequent bursts of grief which still obliged her,
- at intervals, to withhold her pen, were proofs enough of her
- feeling how more than probable it was that she was writing
- for the last time to Willoughby.
-
- Elinor paid her every quiet and unobtrusive attention
- in her power; and she would have tried to sooth and
- tranquilize her still more, had not Marianne entreated her,
- with all the eagerness of the most nervous irritability,
- not to speak to her for the world. In such circumstances,
- it was better for both that they should not be long together;
- and the restless state of Marianne's mind not only prevented
- her from remaining in the room a moment after she was dressed,
- but requiring at once solitude and continual change of place,
- made her wander about the house till breakfast time, avoiding
- the sight of every body.
-
- At breakfast she neither ate, nor attempted to eat
- any thing; and Elinor's attention was then all employed,
- not in urging her, not in pitying her, nor in appearing
- to regard her, but in endeavouring to engage Mrs. Jenning's
- notice entirely to herself.
-
- As this was a favourite meal with Mrs. Jennings,
- it lasted a considerable time, and they were just setting
- themselves, after it, round the common working table, when a
- letter was delivered to Marianne, which she eagerly caught
- from the servant, and, turning of a death-like paleness,
- instantly ran out of the room. Elinor, who saw as plainly
- by this, as if she had seen the direction, that it must
- come from Willoughby, felt immediately such a sickness
- at heart as made her hardly able to hold up her head,
- and sat in such a general tremour as made her fear it
- impossible to escape Mrs. Jenning's notice. That good lady,
- however, saw only that Marianne had received a letter
- from Willoughby, which appeared to her a very good joke,
- and which she treated accordingly, by hoping, with a laugh,
- that she would find it to her liking. Of Elinor's distress,
- she was too busily employed in measuring lengths of worsted
- for her rug, to see any thing at all; and calmly continuing
- her talk, as soon as Marianne disappeared, she said,
-
- "Upon my word, I never saw a young woman so
- desperately in love in my life! MY girls were nothing
- to her, and yet they used to be foolish enough; but as
- for Miss Marianne, she is quite an altered creature.
- I hope, from the bottom of my heart, he won't keep her
- waiting much longer, for it is quite grievous to see her
- look so ill and forlorn. Pray, when are they to be married?"
-
- Elinor, though never less disposed to speak than at
- that moment, obliged herself to answer such an attack
- as this, and, therefore, trying to smile, replied, "And have
- you really, Ma'am, talked yourself into a persuasion
- of my sister's being engaged to Mr. Willoughby? I thought
- it had been only a joke, but so serious a question seems
- to imply more; and I must beg, therefore, that you will not
- deceive yourself any longer. I do assure you that nothing
- would surprise me more than to hear of their being going
- to be married."
-
- "For shame, for shame, Miss Dashwood! how can you
- talk so? Don't we all know that it must be a match, that
- they were over head and ears in love with each other from
- the first moment they met? Did not I see them together
- in Devonshire every day, and all day long; and did not I
- know that your sister came to town with me on purpose
- to buy wedding clothes? Come, come, this won't do.
- Because you are so sly about it yourself, you think nobody
- else has any senses; but it is no such thing, I can tell you,
- for it has been known all over town this ever so long.
- I tell every body of it and so does Charlotte."
-
- "Indeed, Ma'am," said Elinor, very seriously,
- "you are mistaken. Indeed, you are doing a very unkind thing
- in spreading the report, and you will find that you have
- though you will not believe me now."
-
- Mrs. Jennings laughed again, but Elinor had not
- spirits to say more, and eager at all events to know
- what Willoughby had written, hurried away to their room,
- where, on opening the door, she saw Marianne stretched on
- the bed, almost choked by grief, one letter in her hand,
- and two or three others laying by her. Elinor drew near,
- but without saying a word; and seating herself on the bed,
- took her hand, kissed her affectionately several times,
- and then gave way to a burst of tears, which at first
- was scarcely less violent than Marianne's. The latter,
- though unable to speak, seemed to feel all the tenderness
- of this behaviour, and after some time thus spent in
- joint affliction, she put all the letters into Elinor's hands;
- and then covering her face with her handkerchief,
- almost screamed with agony. Elinor, who knew that such grief,
- shocking as it was to witness it, must have its course,
- watched by her till this excess of suffering had somewhat
- spent itself, and then turning eagerly to Willoughby's letter,
- read as follows:
-
- "Bond Street, January.
- "MY DEAR MADAM,
-
- "I have just had the honour of receiving your
- letter, for which I beg to return my sincere
- acknowledgments. I am much concerned to find there
- was anything in my behaviour last night that did
- not meet your approbation; and though I am quite at
- a loss to discover in what point I could be so
- unfortunate as to offend you, I entreat your
- forgiveness of what I can assure you to have been
- perfectly unintentional. I shall never reflect on
- my former acquaintance with your family in Devonshire
- without the most grateful pleasure, and flatter
- myself it will not be broken by any mistake or
- misapprehension of my actions. My esteem for your
- whole family is very sincere; but if I have been so
- unfortunate as to give rise to a belief of more than
- I felt, or meant to express, I shall reproach myself
- for not having been more guarded in my professions
- of that esteem. That I should ever have meant more
- you will allow to be impossible, when you understand
- that my affections have been long engaged elsewhere,
- and it will not be many weeks, I believe, before
- this engagement is fulfilled. It is with great
- regret that I obey your commands in returning the
- letters with which I have been honoured from you,
- and the lock of hair, which you so obligingly bestowed
- on me.
-
- "I am, dear Madam,
- "Your most obedient
- "humble servant,
- "JOHN WILLOUGHBY."
-
-
- With what indignation such a letter as this must
- be read by Miss Dashwood, may be imagined. Though aware,
- before she began it, that it must bring a confession
- of his inconstancy, and confirm their separation for ever,
- she was not aware that such language could be suffered
- to announce it; nor could she have supposed Willoughby
- capable of departing so far from the appearance of every
- honourable and delicate feeling--so far from the common
- decorum of a gentleman, as to send a letter so impudently
- cruel: a letter which, instead of bringing with his desire
- of a release any professions of regret, acknowledged no
- breach of faith, denied all peculiar affection whatever--
- a letter of which every line was an insult, and which
- proclaimed its writer to be deep in hardened villainy.
-
- She paused over it for some time with indignant
- astonishment; then read it again and again; but every
- perusal only served to increase her abhorrence of the man,
- and so bitter were her feelings against him, that she
- dared not trust herself to speak, lest she might wound
- Marianne still deeper by treating their disengagement,
- not as a loss to her of any possible good but as an
- escape from the worst and most irremediable of all
- evils, a connection, for life, with an unprincipled man,
- as a deliverance the most real, a blessing the most important.
-
- In her earnest meditations on the contents of the letter,
- on the depravity of that mind which could dictate it,
- and probably, on the very different mind of a very different
- person, who had no other connection whatever with the affair
- than what her heart gave him with every thing that passed,
- Elinor forgot the immediate distress of her sister,
- forgot that she had three letters on her lap yet unread,
- and so entirely forgot how long she had been in the room,
- that when on hearing a carriage drive up to the door,
- she went to the window to see who could be coming so
- unreasonably early, she was all astonishment to perceive
- Mrs. Jennings's chariot, which she knew had not been
- ordered till one. Determined not to quit Marianne,
- though hopeless of contributing, at present, to her ease,
- she hurried away to excuse herself from attending
- Mrs. Jennings, on account of her sister being indisposed.
- Mrs. Jennings, with a thoroughly good-humoured concern
- for its cause, admitted the excuse most readily, and Elinor,
- after seeing her safe off, returned to Marianne, whom she
- found attempting to rise from the bed, and whom she reached
- just in time to prevent her from falling on the floor,
- faint and giddy from a long want of proper rest and food;
- for it was many days since she had any appetite, and many
- nights since she had really slept; and now, when her
- mind was no longer supported by the fever of suspense,
- the consequence of all this was felt in an aching head,
- a weakened stomach, and a general nervous faintness.
- A glass of wine, which Elinor procured for her directly,
- made her more comfortable, and she was at last able to express
- some sense of her kindness, by saying,
-
- "Poor Elinor! how unhappy I make you!"
-
- "I only wish," replied her sister, "there were
- any thing I COULD do, which might be of comfort to you."
-
- This, as every thing else would have been,
- was too much for Marianne, who could only exclaim,
- in the anguish of her heart, "Oh! Elinor, I am miserable,
- indeed," before her voice was entirely lost in sobs.
-
- Elinor could no longer witness this torrent
- of unresisted grief in silence.
-
- "Exert yourself, dear Marianne," she cried,
- "if you would not kill yourself and all who love you.
- Think of your mother; think of her misery while YOU suffer:
- for her sake you must exert yourself."
-
- "I cannot, I cannot," cried Marianne; "leave me,
- leave me, if I distress you; leave me, hate me, forget me!
- but do not torture me so. Oh! how easy for those,
- who have no sorrow of their own to talk of exertion! Happy,
- happy Elinor, YOU cannot have an idea of what I suffer."
-
- "Do you call ME happy, Marianne? Ah! if you knew!--And
- can you believe me to be so, while I see you so wretched!"
-
- "Forgive me, forgive me," throwing her arms round
- her sister's neck; "I know you feel for me; I know what
- a heart you have; but yet you are--you must be happy;
- Edward loves you--what, oh what, can do away such happiness
- as that?"
-
- "Many, many circumstances," said Elinor, solemnly.
-
- "No, no, no," cried Marianne wildly, "he loves you,
- and only you. You CAN have no grief."
-
- "I can have no pleasure while I see you in this state."
-
- "And you will never see me otherwise. Mine is
- a misery which nothing can do away."
-
- "You must not talk so, Marianne. Have you no
- comforts? no friends? Is your loss such as leaves
- no opening for consolation? Much as you suffer now,
- think of what you would have suffered if the discovery
- of his character had been delayed to a later period--
- if your engagement had been carried on for months and months,
- as it might have been, before he chose to put an end to it.
- Every additional day of unhappy confidence, on your side,
- would have made the blow more dreadful."
-
- "Engagement!" cried Marianne, "there has been
- no engagement."
-
- "No engagement!"
-
- "No, he is not so unworthy as you believe him.
- He has broken no faith with me."
-
- "But he told you that he loved you."
-
- "Yes--no--never absolutely. It was every day implied,
- but never professedly declared. Sometimes I thought it
- had been--but it never was."
-
- "Yet you wrote to him?"--
-
- "Yes--could that be wrong after all that had passed?--
- But I cannot talk."
-
- Elinor said no more, and turning again to the three
- letters which now raised a much stronger curiosity
- than before, directly ran over the contents of all.
- The first, which was what her sister had sent him
- on their arrival in town, was to this effect.
-
- Berkeley Street, January.
-
- "How surprised you will be, Willoughby, on
- receiving this; and I think you will feel something
- more than surprise, when you know that I am in town.
- An opportunity of coming hither, though with Mrs.
- Jennings, was a temptation we could not resist.
- I wish you may receive this in time to come here
- to-night, but I will not depend on it. At any rate
- I shall expect you to-morrow. For the present, adieu.
-
- "M.D."
-
- Her second note, which had been written on the morning
- after the dance at the Middletons', was in these words:--
-
- "I cannot express my disappointment in having
- missed you the day before yesterday, nor my astonishment
- at not having received any answer to a note which
- I sent you above a week ago. I have been expecting
- to hear from you, and still more to see you, every
- hour of the day. Pray call again as soon as possible,
- and explain the reason of my having expected this
- in vain. You had better come earlier another time,
- because we are generally out by one. We were last
- night at Lady Middleton's, where there was a dance.
- I have been told that you were asked to be of the
- party. But could it be so? You must be very much
- altered indeed since we parted, if that could be
- the case, and you not there. But I will not suppose
- this possible, and I hope very soon to receive your
- personal assurance of its being otherwise.
-
- "M.D."
-
- The contents of her last note to him were these:--
-
- "What am I to imagine, Willoughby, by your
- behaviour last night? Again I demand an explanation
- of it. I was prepared to meet you with the pleasure
- which our separation naturally produced, with the
- familiarity which our intimacy at Barton appeared
- to me to justify. I was repulsed indeed! I have
- passed a wretched night in endeavouring to excuse
- a conduct which can scarcely be called less than
- insulting; but though I have not yet been able to
- form any reasonable apology for your behaviour,
- I am perfectly ready to hear your justification of
- it. You have perhaps been misinformed, or purposely
- deceived, in something concerning me, which may have
- lowered me in your opinion. Tell me what it is,
- explain the grounds on which you acted, and I shall
- be satisfied, in being able to satisfy you. It
- would grieve me indeed to be obliged to think ill
- of you; but if I am to do it, if I am to learn that
- you are not what we have hitherto believed you, that
- your regard for us all was insincere, that your
- behaviour to me was intended only to deceive, let
- it be told as soon as possible. My feelings are at
- present in a state of dreadful indecision; I wish
- to acquit you, but certainty on either side will be
- ease to what I now suffer. If your sentiments are
- no longer what they were, you will return my notes,
- and the lock of my hair which is in your possession.
-
- "M.D."
-
- That such letters, so full of affection and confidence,
- could have been so answered, Elinor, for Willoughby's sake,
- would have been unwilling to believe. But her condemnation
- of him did not blind her to the impropriety of their
- having been written at all; and she was silently grieving
- over the imprudence which had hazarded such unsolicited
- proofs of tenderness, not warranted by anything preceding,
- and most severely condemned by the event, when Marianne,
- perceiving that she had finished the letters, observed to
- her that they contained nothing but what any one would
- have written in the same situation.
-
- "I felt myself," she added, "to be as solemnly
- engaged to him, as if the strictest legal covenant
- had bound us to each other."
-
- "I can believe it," said Elinor; "but unfortunately
- he did not feel the same."
-
- "He DID feel the same, Elinor--for weeks and weeks he
- felt it. I know he did. Whatever may have changed him now, (and
- nothing but the blackest art employed against me can have done
- it), I was once as dear to him as my own soul could wish.
- This lock of hair, which now he can so readily give up,
- was begged of me with the most earnest supplication.
- Had you seen his look, his manner, had you heard his voice
- at that moment! Have you forgot the last evening of our
- being together at Barton? The morning that we parted
- too! When he told me that it might be many weeks before
- we met again--his distress--can I ever forget his distress?"
-
- For a moment or two she could say no more;
- but when this emotion had passed away, she added,
- in a firmer tone,
-
- "Elinor, I have been cruelly used; but not by Willoughby."
-
- "Dearest Marianne, who but himself? By whom can he
- have been instigated?"
-
- "By all the world, rather than by his own heart.
- I could rather believe every creature of my acquaintance
- leagued together to ruin me in his opinion, than believe
- his nature capable of such cruelty. This woman of whom he
- writes--whoever she be--or any one, in short, but your own
- dear self, mama, and Edward, may have been so barbarous
- to bely me. Beyond you three, is there a creature
- in the world whom I would not rather suspect of evil
- than Willoughby, whose heart I know so well?"
-
- Elinor would not contend, and only replied,
- "Whoever may have been so detestably your enemy, let them
- be cheated of their malignant triumph, my dear sister,
- by seeing how nobly the consciousness of your own
- innocence and good intentions supports your spirits.
- It is a reasonable and laudable pride which resists
- such malevolence."
-
- "No, no," cried Marianne, "misery such as mine has
- no pride. I care not who knows that I am wretched.
- The triumph of seeing me so may be open to all the world.
- Elinor, Elinor, they who suffer little may be proud and
- independent as they like--may resist insult, or return
- mortification--but I cannot. I must feel--I must be
- wretched--and they are welcome to enjoy the consciousness
- of it that can."
-
- "But for my mother's sake and mine--"
-
- "I would do more than for my own. But to appear
- happy when I am so miserable--Oh! who can require it?"
-
- Again they were both silent. Elinor was employed
- in walking thoughtfully from the fire to the window,
- from the window to the fire, without knowing that she
- received warmth from one, or discerning objects through
- the other; and Marianne, seated at the foot of the bed,
- with her head leaning against one of its posts,
- again took up Willoughby's letter, and, after shuddering
- over every sentence, exclaimed--
-
- "It is too much! Oh, Willoughby, Willoughby, could this
- be yours! Cruel, cruel--nothing can acquit you. Elinor,
- nothing can. Whatever he might have heard against me--
- ought he not to have suspended his belief? ought he not to
- have told me of it, to have given me the power of clearing
- myself? 'The lock of hair, (repeating it from the letter,)
- which you so obligingly bestowed on me'--That is unpardonable.
- Willoughby, where was your heart when you wrote those words?
- Oh, barbarously insolent!--Elinor, can he be justified?"
-
- "No, Marianne, in no possible way."
-
- "And yet this woman--who knows what her art may
- have been?--how long it may have been premeditated,
- and how deeply contrived by her!--Who is she?--Who can
- she be?--Whom did I ever hear him talk of as young and
- attractive among his female acquaintance?--Oh! no one,
- no one--he talked to me only of myself."
-
- Another pause ensued; Marianne was greatly agitated,
- and it ended thus.
-
- "Elinor, I must go home. I must go and comfort mama.
- Can not we be gone to-morrow?"
-
- "To-morrow, Marianne!"
-
- "Yes, why should I stay here? I came only for
- Willoughby's sake--and now who cares for me? Who regards me?"
-
- "It would be impossible to go to-morrow. We owe
- Mrs. Jennings much more than civility; and civility of
- the commonest kind must prevent such a hasty removal as that."
-
- "Well then, another day or two, perhaps; but I cannot
- stay here long, I cannot stay to endure the questions
- and remarks of all these people. The Middletons and
- Palmers--how am I to bear their pity? The pity of such
- a woman as Lady Middleton! Oh, what would HE say to that!"
-
- Elinor advised her to lie down again, and for a
- moment she did so; but no attitude could give her ease;
- and in restless pain of mind and body she moved from one
- posture to another, till growing more and more hysterical,
- her sister could with difficulty keep her on the bed at all,
- and for some time was fearful of being constrained to call
- for assistance. Some lavender drops, however, which she
- was at length persuaded to take, were of use; and from
- that time till Mrs. Jennings returned, she continued
- on the bed quiet and motionless.
-
-
-
- CHAPTER 30
-
-
- Mrs. Jennings came immediately to their room on her return,
- and without waiting to have her request of admittance answered,
- opened the door and walked in with a look of real concern.
-
- "How do you do my dear?"--said she in a voice of great
- compassion to Marianne, who turned away her face without
- attempting to answer.
-
- "How is she, Miss Dashwood?--Poor thing! she looks very bad.--
- No wonder. Ay, it is but too true. He is to be married
- very soon--a good-for-nothing fellow! I have no patience
- with him. Mrs. Taylor told me of it half an hour ago,
- and she was told it by a particular friend of Miss
- Grey herself, else I am sure I should not have believed it;
- and I was almost ready to sink as it was. Well, said I,
- all I can say is, that if this be true, he has used
- a young lady of my acquaintance abominably ill, and I
- wish with all my soul his wife may plague his heart out.
- And so I shall always say, my dear, you may depend on it.
- I have no notion of men's going on in this way; and if ever
- I meet him again, I will give him such a dressing as he
- has not had this many a day. But there is one comfort,
- my dear Miss Marianne; he is not the only young man
- in the world worth having; and with your pretty face
- you will never want admirers. Well, poor thing! I won't
- disturb her any longer, for she had better have her cry
- out at once and have done with. The Parrys and Sandersons
- luckily are coming tonight you know, and that will amuse her."
-
- She then went away, walking on tiptoe out of the room,
- as if she supposed her young friend's affliction could
- be increased by noise.
-
- Marianne, to the surprise of her sister,
- determined on dining with them. Elinor even advised
- her against it. But "no, she would go down; she could
- bear it very well, and the bustle about her would
- be less." Elinor, pleased to have her governed for a
- moment by such a motive, though believing it hardly
- possible that she could sit out the dinner, said no more;
- and adjusting her dress for her as well as she could,
- while Marianne still remained on the bed, was ready
- to assist her into the dining room as soon as they were
- summoned to it.
-
- When there, though looking most wretchedly,
- she ate more and was calmer than her sister had expected.
- Had she tried to speak, or had she been conscious of half
- Mrs. Jennings's well-meant but ill-judged attentions
- to her, this calmness could not have been maintained;
- but not a syllable escaped her lips; and the abstraction
- of her thoughts preserved her in ignorance of every thing
- that was passing before her.
-
- Elinor, who did justice to Mrs. Jennings's kindness,
- though its effusions were often distressing, and sometimes
- almost ridiculous, made her those acknowledgments,
- and returned her those civilities, which her sister could
- not make or return for herself. Their good friend saw
- that Marianne was unhappy, and felt that every thing
- was due to her which might make her at all less so.
- She treated her therefore, with all the indulgent fondness
- of a parent towards a favourite child on the last day of
- its holidays. Marianne was to have the best place by the fire,
- was to be tempted to eat by every delicacy in the house,
- and to be amused by the relation of all the news of the day.
- Had not Elinor, in the sad countenance of her sister,
- seen a check to all mirth, she could have been entertained
- by Mrs. Jennings's endeavours to cure a disappointment in love,
- by a variety of sweetmeats and olives, and a good fire.
- As soon, however, as the consciousness of all this was
- forced by continual repetition on Marianne, she could
- stay no longer. With a hasty exclamation of Misery,
- and a sign to her sister not to follow her, she directly got
- up and hurried out of the room.
-
- "Poor soul!" cried Mrs. Jennings, as soon as she was gone,
- "how it grieves me to see her! And I declare if she is
- not gone away without finishing her wine! And the dried
- cherries too! Lord! nothing seems to do her any good.
- I am sure if I knew of any thing she would like, I would
- send all over the town for it. Well, it is the oddest
- thing to me, that a man should use such a pretty girl
- so ill! But when there is plenty of money on one side,
- and next to none on the other, Lord bless you! they care
- no more about such things!--"
-
- "The lady then--Miss Grey I think you called her--
- is very rich?"
-
- "Fifty thousand pounds, my dear. Did you ever see
- her? a smart, stylish girl they say, but not handsome.
- I remember her aunt very well, Biddy Henshawe; she married
- a very wealthy man. But the family are all rich together.
- Fifty thousand pounds! and by all accounts, it won't come
- before it's wanted; for they say he is all to pieces.
- No wonder! dashing about with his curricle and hunters!
- Well, it don't signify talking; but when a young man,
- be who he will, comes and makes love to a pretty girl,
- and promises marriage, he has no business to fly off
- from his word only because he grows poor, and a richer
- girl is ready to have him. Why don't he, in such a case,
- sell his horses, let his house, turn off his servants,
- and make a thorough reform at once? I warrant you,
- Miss Marianne would have been ready to wait till matters
- came round. But that won't do now-a-days; nothing in the
- way of pleasure can ever be given up by the young men of
- this age."
-
- "Do you know what kind of a girl Miss Grey is?
- Is she said to be amiable?"
-
- "I never heard any harm of her; indeed I hardly ever
- heard her mentioned; except that Mrs. Taylor did say
- this morning, that one day Miss Walker hinted to her,
- that she believed Mr. and Mrs. Ellison would not be sorry
- to have Miss Grey married, for she and Mrs. Ellison could
- never agree."--
-
- "And who are the Ellisons?"
-
- "Her guardians, my dear. But now she is of age
- and may choose for herself; and a pretty choice she has
- made!--What now," after pausing a moment--"your poor sister
- is gone to her own room, I suppose, to moan by herself.
- Is there nothing one can get to comfort her? Poor dear,
- it seems quite cruel to let her be alone. Well, by-and-by we
- shall have a few friends, and that will amuse her a little.
- What shall we play at? She hates whist I know; but is there
- no round game she cares for?"
-
- "Dear ma'am, this kindness is quite unnecessary.
- Marianne, I dare say, will not leave her room again
- this evening. I shall persuade her if I can to go
- early to bed, for I am sure she wants rest."
-
- "Aye, I believe that will be best for her. Let her name
- her own supper, and go to bed. Lord! no wonder she has
- been looking so bad and so cast down this last week or two,
- for this matter I suppose has been hanging over her head as
- long as that. And so the letter that came today finished it!
- Poor soul! I am sure if I had had a notion of it,
- I would not have joked her about it for all my money.
- But then you know, how should I guess such a thing? I made
- sure of its being nothing but a common love letter, and
- you know young people like to be laughed at about them. Lord!
- how concerned Sir John and my daughters will be when they
- hear it! If I had my senses about me I might have called
- in Conduit Street in my way home, and told them of it.
- But I shall see them tomorrow."
-
- "It would be unnecessary I am sure, for you to caution
- Mrs. Palmer and Sir John against ever naming Mr. Willoughby,
- or making the slightest allusion to what has passed,
- before my sister. Their own good-nature must point out
- to them the real cruelty of appearing to know any thing
- about it when she is present; and the less that may ever
- be said to myself on the subject, the more my feelings
- will be spared, as you my dear madam will easily believe."
-
- "Oh! Lord! yes, that I do indeed. It must be terrible
- for you to hear it talked of; and as for your sister,
- I am sure I would not mention a word about it to her
- for the world. You saw I did not all dinner time.
- No more would Sir John, nor my daughters, for they are
- all very thoughtful and considerate; especially if I
- give them a hint, as I certainly will. For my part,
- I think the less that is said about such things, the better,
- the sooner 'tis blown over and forgot. And what does
- talking ever do you know?"
-
- "In this affair it can only do harm; more so
- perhaps than in many cases of a similar kind, for it
- has been attended by circumstances which, for the sake
- of every one concerned in it, make it unfit to become
- the public conversation. I must do THIS justice to
- Mr. Willoughby--he has broken no positive engagement
- with my sister."
-
- "Law, my dear! Don't pretend to defend him.
- No positive engagement indeed! after taking her all
- over Allenham House, and fixing on the very rooms they
- were to live in hereafter!"
-
- Elinor, for her sister's sake, could not press the
- subject farther, and she hoped it was not required of her
- for Willoughby's; since, though Marianne might lose much,
- he could gain very little by the enforcement of the real truth.
- After a short silence on both sides, Mrs. Jennings,
- with all her natural hilarity, burst forth again.
-
- "Well, my dear, 'tis a true saying about an ill-wind,
- for it will be all the better for Colonel Brandon.
- He will have her at last; aye, that he will. Mind me,
- now, if they an't married by Mid-summer. Lord! how he'll
- chuckle over this news! I hope he will come tonight.
- It will be all to one a better match for your sister.
- Two thousand a year without debt or drawback--except
- the little love-child, indeed; aye, I had forgot her;
- but she may be 'prenticed out at a small cost, and then
- what does it signify? Delaford is a nice place, I can
- tell you; exactly what I call a nice old fashioned place,
- full of comforts and conveniences; quite shut in with great
- garden walls that are covered with the best fruit-trees
- in the country; and such a mulberry tree in one corner!
- Lord! how Charlotte and I did stuff the only time we
- were there! Then, there is a dove-cote, some delightful
- stew-ponds, and a very pretty canal; and every thing,
- in short, that one could wish for; and, moreover, it is
- close to the church, and only a quarter of a mile from
- the turnpike-road, so 'tis never dull, for if you only
- go and sit up in an old yew arbour behind the house,
- you may see all the carriages that pass along.
- Oh! 'tis a nice place! A butcher hard by in the village,
- and the parsonage-house within a stone's throw.
- To my fancy, a thousand times prettier than Barton Park,
- where they are forced to send three miles for their meat,
- and have not a neighbour nearer than your mother.
- Well, I shall spirit up the Colonel as soon as I can.
- One shoulder of mutton, you know, drives another down.
- If we CAN but put Willoughby out of her head!"
-
- "Ay, if we can do THAT, Ma'am," said Elinor,
- "we shall do very well with or without Colonel Brandon."
- And then rising, she went away to join Marianne,
- whom she found, as she expected, in her own room, leaning,
- in silent misery, over the small remains of a fire,
- which, till Elinor's entrance, had been her only light.
-
- "You had better leave me," was all the notice
- that her sister received from her.
-
- "I will leave you," said Elinor, "if you will go
- to bed." But this, from the momentary perverseness
- of impatient suffering, she at first refused to do.
- Her sister's earnest, though gentle persuasion, however,
- soon softened her to compliance, and Elinor saw her
- lay her aching head on the pillow, and as she hoped,
- in a way to get some quiet rest before she left her.
-
- In the drawing-room, whither she then repaired,
- she was soon joined by Mrs. Jennings, with a wine-glass,
- full of something, in her hand.
-
- "My dear," said she, entering, "I have just recollected
- that I have some of the finest old Constantia wine in the
- house that ever was tasted, so I have brought a glass of it
- for your sister. My poor husband! how fond he was of it!
- Whenever he had a touch of his old colicky gout, he said
- it did him more good than any thing else in the world.
- Do take it to your sister."
-
- "Dear Ma'am," replied Elinor, smiling at the difference
- of the complaints for which it was recommended, "how good
- you are! But I have just left Marianne in bed, and, I hope,
- almost asleep; and as I think nothing will be of so much
- service to her as rest, if you will give me leave,
- I will drink the wine myself."
-
- Mrs. Jennings, though regretting that she had not been
- five minutes earlier, was satisfied with the compromise;
- and Elinor, as she swallowed the chief of it, reflected,
- that though its effects on a colicky gout were, at present,
- of little importance to her, its healing powers,
- on a disappointed heart might be as reasonably tried
- on herself as on her sister.
-
- Colonel Brandon came in while the party were at tea,
- and by his manner of looking round the room for Marianne,
- Elinor immediately fancied that he neither expected
- nor wished to see her there, and, in short, that he
- was already aware of what occasioned her absence.
- Mrs. Jennings was not struck by the same thought;
- for soon after his entrance, she walked across the room
- to the tea-table where Elinor presided, and whispered--
- "The Colonel looks as grave as ever you see. He knows
- nothing of it; do tell him, my dear."
-
- He shortly afterwards drew a chair close to her's,
- and, with a look which perfectly assured her of his
- good information, inquired after her sister.
-
- "Marianne is not well," said she. "She has been
- indisposed all day, and we have persuaded her to go to bed."
-
- "Perhaps, then," he hesitatingly replied, "what I
- heard this morning may be--there may be more truth in it
- than I could believe possible at first."
-
- "What did you hear?"
-
- "That a gentleman, whom I had reason to think--in short,
- that a man, whom I KNEW to be engaged--but how shall I
- tell you? If you know it already, as surely you must,
- I may be spared."
-
- "You mean," answered Elinor, with forced calmness,
- "Mr. Willoughby's marriage with Miss Grey. Yes, we DO
- know it all. This seems to have been a day of general
- elucidation, for this very morning first unfolded it to us.
- Mr. Willoughby is unfathomable! Where did you hear it?"
-
- "In a stationer's shop in Pall Mall, where I
- had business. Two ladies were waiting for their carriage,
- and one of them was giving the other an account of the
- intended match, in a voice so little attempting concealment,
- that it was impossible for me not to hear all. The name
- of Willoughby, John Willoughby, frequently repeated,
- first caught my attention; and what followed was a positive
- assertion that every thing was now finally settled
- respecting his marriage with Miss Grey--it was no longer
- to be a secret--it would take place even within a few weeks,
- with many particulars of preparations and other matters.
- One thing, especially, I remember, because it served
- to identify the man still more:--as soon as the ceremony
- was over, they were to go to Combe Magna, his seat
- in Somersetshire. My astonishment!--but it would be
- impossible to describe what I felt. The communicative
- lady I learnt, on inquiry, for I stayed in the shop
- till they were gone, was a Mrs. Ellison, and that, as I
- have been since informed, is the name of Miss Grey's guardian."
-
- "It is. But have you likewise heard that Miss Grey
- has fifty thousand pounds? In that, if in any thing,
- we may find an explanation."
-
- "It may be so; but Willoughby is capable--at least
- I think"--he stopped a moment; then added in a voice
- which seemed to distrust itself, "And your sister--
- how did she--"
-
- "Her sufferings have been very severe. I have
- only to hope that they may be proportionately short.
- It has been, it is a most cruel affliction. Till yesterday,
- I believe, she never doubted his regard; and even now,
- perhaps--but I am almost convinced that he never was
- really attached to her. He has been very deceitful! and,
- in some points, there seems a hardness of heart about him."
-
- "Ah!" said Colonel Brandon, "there is, indeed! But
- your sister does not--I think you said so--she does
- not consider quite as you do?"
-
- "You know her disposition, and may believe how eagerly
- she would still justify him if she could."
-
- He made no answer; and soon afterwards, by the removal
- of the tea-things, and the arrangement of the card parties,
- the subject was necessarily dropped. Mrs. Jennings, who had
- watched them with pleasure while they were talking, and who
- expected to see the effect of Miss Dashwood's communication,
- in such an instantaneous gaiety on Colonel Brandon's side,
- as might have become a man in the bloom of youth, of hope
- and happiness, saw him, with amazement, remain the whole
- evening more serious and thoughtful than usual.
-
-
-
- CHAPTER XXXI
-
-
- From a night of more sleep than she had expected,
- Marianne awoke the next morning to the same consciousness
- of misery in which she had closed her eyes.
-
- Elinor encouraged her as much as possible to talk
- of what she felt; and before breakfast was ready, they had
- gone through the subject again and again; and with the same
- steady conviction and affectionate counsel on Elinor's side,
- the same impetuous feelings and varying opinions on
- Marianne's, as before. Sometimes she could believe
- Willoughby to be as unfortunate and as innocent as herself,
- and at others, lost every consolation in the impossibility
- of acquitting him. At one moment she was absolutely
- indifferent to the observation of all the world, at another
- she would seclude herself from it for ever, and at a third
- could resist it with energy. In one thing, however,
- she was uniform, when it came to the point, in avoiding,
- where it was possible, the presence of Mrs. Jennings,
- and in a determined silence when obliged to endure it.
- Her heart was hardened against the belief of Mrs. Jennings's
- entering into her sorrows with any compassion.
-
- "No, no, no, it cannot be," she cried;
- "she cannot feel. Her kindness is not sympathy;
- her good-nature is not tenderness. All that she wants
- is gossip, and she only likes me now because I supply it."
-
- Elinor had not needed this to be assured of the injustice
- to which her sister was often led in her opinion of others,
- by the irritable refinement of her own mind, and the too
- great importance placed by her on the delicacies of a
- strong sensibility, and the graces of a polished manner.
- Like half the rest of the world, if more than half there
- be that are clever and good, Marianne, with excellent
- abilities and an excellent disposition, was neither
- reasonable nor candid. She expected from other people
- the same opinions and feelings as her own, and she judged
- of their motives by the immediate effect of their actions
- on herself. Thus a circumstance occurred, while the
- sisters were together in their own room after breakfast,
- which sunk the heart of Mrs. Jennings still lower
- in her estimation; because, through her own weakness,
- it chanced to prove a source of fresh pain to herself,
- though Mrs. Jennings was governed in it by an impulse
- of the utmost goodwill.
-
- With a letter in her outstretched hand, and countenance
- gaily smiling, from the persuasion of bringing comfort,
- she entered their room, saying,
-
- "Now, my dear, I bring you something that I am sure
- will do you good."
-
- Marianne heard enough. In one moment her imagination
- placed before her a letter from Willoughby, full of tenderness
- and contrition, explanatory of all that had passed, satisfactory,
- convincing; and instantly followed by Willoughby himself,
- rushing eagerly into the room to inforce, at her feet,
- by the eloquence of his eyes, the assurances of his letter.
- The work of one moment was destroyed by the next.
- The hand writing of her mother, never till then unwelcome,
- was before her; and, in the acuteness of the disappointment
- which followed such an ecstasy of more than hope,
- she felt as if, till that instant, she had never suffered.
-
- The cruelty of Mrs. Jennings no language, within
- her reach in her moments of happiest eloquence,
- could have expressed; and now she could reproach her
- only by the tears which streamed from her eyes with
- passionate violence--a reproach, however, so entirely
- lost on its object, that after many expressions of pity,
- she withdrew, still referring her to the letter of comfort.
- But the letter, when she was calm enough to read it,
- brought little comfort. Willoughby filled every page.
- Her mother, still confident of their engagement, and relying
- as warmly as ever on his constancy, had only been roused
- by Elinor's application, to intreat from Marianne greater
- openness towards them both; and this, with such tenderness
- towards her, such affection for Willoughby, and such
- a conviction of their future happiness in each other,
- that she wept with agony through the whole of it.
-
- All her impatience to be at home again now returned;
- her mother was dearer to her than ever; dearer through
- the very excess of her mistaken confidence in Willoughby,
- and she was wildly urgent to be gone. Elinor, unable herself
- to determine whether it were better for Marianne to be
- in London or at Barton, offered no counsel of her own
- except of patience till their mother's wishes could be known;
- and at length she obtained her sister's consent to wait
- for that knowledge.
-
- Mrs. Jennings left them earlier than usual; for she
- could not be easy till the Middletons and Palmers were able
- to grieve as much as herself; and positively refusing
- Elinor's offered attendance, went out alone for the rest
- of the morning. Elinor, with a very heavy heart, aware of
- the pain she was going to communicate, and perceiving,
- by Marianne's letter, how ill she had succeeded in laying
- any foundation for it, then sat down to write her mother
- an account of what had passed, and entreat her directions
- for the future; while Marianne, who came into the drawing-room
- on Mrs. Jennings's going away, remained fixed at the table
- where Elinor wrote, watching the advancement of her pen,
- grieving over her for the hardship of such a task,
- and grieving still more fondly over its effect on her mother.
-
- In this manner they had continued about a quarter
- of an hour, when Marianne, whose nerves could not then
- bear any sudden noise, was startled by a rap at the door.
-
- "Who can this be?" cried Elinor. "So early too! I
- thought we HAD been safe."
-
- Marianne moved to the window--
-
- "It is Colonel Brandon!" said she, with vexation.
- "We are never safe from HIM."
-
- "He will not come in, as Mrs. Jennings is from home."
-
- "I will not trust to THAT," retreating to her own room.
- "A man who has nothing to do with his own time has no
- conscience in his intrusion on that of others."
-
- The event proved her conjecture right, though it
- was founded on injustice and error; for Colonel Brandon
- DID come in; and Elinor, who was convinced that
- solicitude for Marianne brought him thither, and who saw
- THAT solicitude in his disturbed and melancholy look,
- and in his anxious though brief inquiry after her,
- could not forgive her sister for esteeming him so lightly.
-
- "I met Mrs. Jennings in Bond Street," said he,
- after the first salutation, "and she encouraged me
- to come on; and I was the more easily encouraged,
- because I thought it probable that I might find you alone,
- which I was very desirous of doing. My object--my
- wish--my sole wish in desiring it--I hope, I believe
- it is--is to be a means of giving comfort;--no, I must
- not say comfort--not present comfort--but conviction,
- lasting conviction to your sister's mind. My regard for her,
- for yourself, for your mother--will you allow me to prove it,
- by relating some circumstances which nothing but a VERY
- sincere regard--nothing but an earnest desire of being
- useful--I think I am justified--though where so many hours
- have been spent in convincing myself that I am right,
- is there not some reason to fear I may be wrong?"
- He stopped.
-
- "I understand you," said Elinor. "You have something
- to tell me of Mr. Willoughby, that will open his character
- farther. Your telling it will be the greatest act of friendship
- that can be shewn Marianne. MY gratitude will be insured
- immediately by any information tending to that end, and HERS
- must be gained by it in time. Pray, pray let me hear it."
-
- "You shall; and, to be brief, when I quitted Barton
- last October,--but this will give you no idea--I must go
- farther back. You will find me a very awkward narrator,
- Miss Dashwood; I hardly know where to begin. A short
- account of myself, I believe, will be necessary, and it
- SHALL be a short one. On such a subject," sighing heavily,
- "can I have little temptation to be diffuse."
-
- He stopt a moment for recollection, and then,
- with another sigh, went on.
-
- "You have probably entirely forgotten a conversation--
- (it is not to be supposed that it could make any impression
- on you)--a conversation between us one evening at Barton
- Park--it was the evening of a dance--in which I alluded
- to a lady I had once known, as resembling, in some measure,
- your sister Marianne."
-
- "Indeed," answered Elinor, "I have NOT forgotten it."
- He looked pleased by this remembrance, and added,
-
- "If I am not deceived by the uncertainty, the partiality
- of tender recollection, there is a very strong resemblance
- between them, as well in mind as person. The same warmth
- of heart, the same eagerness of fancy and spirits.
- This lady was one of my nearest relations, an orphan from
- her infancy, and under the guardianship of my father.
- Our ages were nearly the same, and from our earliest years
- we were playfellows and friends. I cannot remember the
- time when I did not love Eliza; and my affection for her,
- as we grew up, was such, as perhaps, judging from my
- present forlorn and cheerless gravity, you might think me
- incapable of having ever felt. Her's, for me, was, I believe,
- fervent as the attachment of your sister to Mr. Willoughby
- and it was, though from a different cause, no less unfortunate.
- At seventeen she was lost to me for ever. She was
- married--married against her inclination to my brother.
- Her fortune was large, and our family estate much encumbered.
- And this, I fear, is all that can be said for the
- conduct of one, who was at once her uncle and guardian.
- My brother did not deserve her; he did not even love her.
- I had hoped that her regard for me would support her
- under any difficulty, and for some time it did; but at
- last the misery of her situation, for she experienced
- great unkindness, overcame all her resolution, and though
- she had promised me that nothing--but how blindly I
- relate! I have never told you how this was brought on.
- We were within a few hours of eloping together for Scotland.
- The treachery, or the folly, of my cousin's maid betrayed us.
- I was banished to the house of a relation far distant,
- and she was allowed no liberty, no society, no amusement,
- till my father's point was gained. I had depended on her
- fortitude too far, and the blow was a severe one--
- but had her marriage been happy, so young as I then was,
- a few months must have reconciled me to it, or at least
- I should not have now to lament it. This however
- was not the case. My brother had no regard for her;
- his pleasures were not what they ought to have been,
- and from the first he treated her unkindly. The consequence
- of this, upon a mind so young, so lively, so inexperienced
- as Mrs. Brandon's, was but too natural. She resigned
- herself at first to all the misery of her situation;
- and happy had it been if she had not lived to overcome those
- regrets which the remembrance of me occasioned. But can we
- wonder that, with such a husband to provoke inconstancy,
- and without a friend to advise or restrain her (for
- my father lived only a few months after their marriage,
- and I was with my regiment in the East Indies) she
- should fall? Had I remained in England, perhaps--but I
- meant to promote the happiness of both by removing
- from her for years, and for that purpose had procured
- my exchange. The shock which her marriage had given me,"
- he continued, in a voice of great agitation, "was of
- trifling weight--was nothing to what I felt when I heard,
- about two years afterwards, of her divorce. It was
- THAT which threw this gloom,--even now the recollection
- of what I suffered--"
-
- He could say no more, and rising hastily walked for a few
- minutes about the room. Elinor, affected by his relation,
- and still more by his distress, could not speak. He saw
- her concern, and coming to her, took her hand, pressed it,
- and kissed it with grateful respect. A few minutes more
- of silent exertion enabled him to proceed with composure.
-
- "It was nearly three years after this unhappy
- period before I returned to England. My first care,
- when I DID arrive, was of course to seek for her;
- but the search was as fruitless as it was melancholy.
- I could not trace her beyond her first seducer, and there
- was every reason to fear that she had removed from him
- only to sink deeper in a life of sin. Her legal allowance
- was not adequate to her fortune, nor sufficient for her
- comfortable maintenance, and I learnt from my brother that
- the power of receiving it had been made over some months
- before to another person. He imagined, and calmly could he
- imagine it, that her extravagance, and consequent distress,
- had obliged her to dispose of it for some immediate relief.
- At last, however, and after I had been six months in England,
- I DID find her. Regard for a former servant of my own,
- who had since fallen into misfortune, carried me to visit
- him in a spunging-house, where he was confined for debt;
- and there, the same house, under a similar confinement,
- was my unfortunate sister. So altered--so faded--worn
- down by acute suffering of every kind! hardly could I
- believe the melancholy and sickly figure before me,
- to be the remains of the lovely, blooming, healthful girl,
- on whom I had once doted. What I endured in so beholding
- her--but I have no right to wound your feelings by attempting
- to describe it--I have pained you too much already.
- That she was, to all appearance, in the last stage
- of a consumption, was--yes, in such a situation it was
- my greatest comfort. Life could do nothing for her,
- beyond giving time for a better preparation for death;
- and that was given. I saw her placed in comfortable lodgings,
- and under proper attendants; I visited her every day
- during the rest of her short life: I was with her in her
- last moments."
-
- Again he stopped to recover himself; and Elinor
- spoke her feelings in an exclamation of tender concern,
- at the fate of his unfortunate friend.
-
- "Your sister, I hope, cannot be offended," said he,
- "by the resemblance I have fancied between her and my
- poor disgraced relation. Their fates, their fortunes,
- cannot be the same; and had the natural sweet
- disposition of the one been guarded by a firmer mind,
- or a happier marriage, she might have been all that you
- will live to see the other be. But to what does all this
- lead? I seem to have been distressing you for nothing.
- Ah! Miss Dashwood--a subject such as this--untouched
- for fourteen years--it is dangerous to handle it at all!
- I WILL be more collected--more concise. She left to my care
- her only child, a little girl, the offspring of her first
- guilty connection, who was then about three years old.
- She loved the child, and had always kept it with her.
- It was a valued, a precious trust to me; and gladly
- would I have discharged it in the strictest sense,
- by watching over her education myself, had the nature
- of our situations allowed it; but I had no family, no home;
- and my little Eliza was therefore placed at school.
- I saw her there whenever I could, and after the death of my
- brother, (which happened about five years ago, and which
- left to me the possession of the family property,) she
- visited me at Delaford. I called her a distant relation;
- but I am well aware that I have in general been suspected
- of a much nearer connection with her. It is now three
- years ago (she had just reached her fourteenth year,)
- that I removed her from school, to place her under the care
- of a very respectable woman, residing in Dorsetshire,
- who had the charge of four or five other girls of about
- the same time of life; and for two years I had every reason
- to be pleased with her situation. But last February,
- almost a twelvemonth back, she suddenly disappeared.
- I had allowed her, (imprudently, as it has since turned
- out,) at her earnest desire, to go to Bath with one of
- her young friends, who was attending her father there
- for his health. I knew him to be a very good sort of man,
- and I thought well of his daughter--better than she deserved,
- for, with a most obstinate and ill-judged secrecy,
- she would tell nothing, would give no clue, though she
- certainly knew all. He, her father, a well-meaning,
- but not a quick-sighted man, could really, I believe,
- give no information; for he had been generally confined
- to the house, while the girls were ranging over the town
- and making what acquaintance they chose; and he tried
- to convince me, as thoroughly as he was convinced himself,
- of his daughter's being entirely unconcerned in the business.
- In short, I could learn nothing but that she was gone;
- all the rest, for eight long months, was left to conjecture.
- What I thought, what I feared, may be imagined; and what I
- suffered too."
-
- "Good heavens!" cried Elinor, "could it be--could
- Willoughby!"--
-
- "The first news that reached me of her," he continued,
- "came in a letter from herself, last October.
- It was forwarded to me from Delaford, and I received it
- on the very morning of our intended party to Whitwell;
- and this was the reason of my leaving Barton so suddenly,
- which I am sure must at the time have appeared strange
- to every body, and which I believe gave offence to some.
- Little did Mr. Willoughby imagine, I suppose, when his
- looks censured me for incivility in breaking up the party,
- that I was called away to the relief of one whom he
- had made poor and miserable; but HAD he known it,
- what would it have availed? Would he have been less
- gay or less happy in the smiles of your sister? No,
- he had already done that, which no man who CAN feel
- for another would do. He had left the girl whose
- youth and innocence he had seduced, in a situation of
- the utmost distress, with no creditable home, no help,
- no friends, ignorant of his address! He had left her,
- promising to return; he neither returned, nor wrote,
- nor relieved her."
-
- "This is beyond every thing!" exclaimed Elinor.
-
- "His character is now before you; expensive, dissipated,
- and worse than both. Knowing all this, as I have now
- known it many weeks, guess what I must have felt on seeing
- your sister as fond of him as ever, and on being assured
- that she was to marry him: guess what I must have felt
- for all your sakes. When I came to you last week and
- found you alone, I came determined to know the truth;
- though irresolute what to do when it WAS known.
- My behaviour must have seemed strange to you then;
- but now you will comprehend it. To suffer you all to be
- so deceived; to see your sister--but what could I do?
- I had no hope of interfering with success; and sometimes
- I thought your sister's influence might yet reclaim him.
- But now, after such dishonorable usage, who can tell what
- were his designs on her. Whatever they may have been,
- however, she may now, and hereafter doubtless WILL
- turn with gratitude towards her own condition, when she
- compares it with that of my poor Eliza, when she considers
- the wretched and hopeless situation of this poor girl,
- and pictures her to herself, with an affection for him so strong,
- still as strong as her own, and with a mind tormented
- by self-reproach, which must attend her through life.
- Surely this comparison must have its use with her.
- She will feel her own sufferings to be nothing. They
- proceed from no misconduct, and can bring no disgrace.
- On the contrary, every friend must be made still more
- her friend by them. Concern for her unhappiness,
- and respect for her fortitude under it, must strengthen
- every attachment. Use your own discretion, however,
- in communicating to her what I have told you. You must
- know best what will be its effect; but had I not seriously,
- and from my heart believed it might be of service,
- might lessen her regrets, I would not have suffered
- myself to trouble you with this account of my family
- afflictions, with a recital which may seem to have been
- intended to raise myself at the expense of others."
-
- Elinor's thanks followed this speech with grateful
- earnestness; attended too with the assurance of her
- expecting material advantage to Marianne, from the
- communication of what had passed.
-
- "I have been more pained," said she, "by her
- endeavors to acquit him than by all the rest; for it
- irritates her mind more than the most perfect conviction
- of his unworthiness can do. Now, though at first she
- will suffer much, I am sure she will soon become easier.
- Have you," she continued, after a short silence,
- "ever seen Mr. Willoughby since you left him at Barton?"
-
- "Yes," he replied gravely, "once I have. One meeting
- was unavoidable."
-
- Elinor, startled by his manner, looked at him anxiously,
- saying,
-
- "What? have you met him to--"
-
- "I could meet him no other way. Eliza had confessed
- to me, though most reluctantly, the name of her lover;
- and when he returned to town, which was within a fortnight
- after myself, we met by appointment, he to defend,
- I to punish his conduct. We returned unwounded,
- and the meeting, therefore, never got abroad."
-
- Elinor sighed over the fancied necessity of this;
- but to a man and a soldier she presumed not to censure it.
-
- "Such," said Colonel Brandon, after a pause,
- "has been the unhappy resemblance between the fate of mother
- and daughter! and so imperfectly have I discharged my trust!"
-
- "Is she still in town?"
-
- "No; as soon as she recovered from her lying-in,
- for I found her near her delivery, I removed her and her
- child into the country, and there she remains."
-
- Recollecting, soon afterwards, that he was probably
- dividing Elinor from her sister, he put an end to his visit,
- receiving from her again the same grateful acknowledgments,
- and leaving her full of compassion and esteem for him.
-
-
-
- CHAPTER 32
-
-
- When the particulars of this conversation were repeated
- by Miss Dashwood to her sister, as they very soon were,
- the effect on her was not entirely such as the former
- had hoped to see. Not that Marianne appeared to distrust
- the truth of any part of it, for she listened to it all
- with the most steady and submissive attention, made neither
- objection nor remark, attempted no vindication of Willoughby,
- and seemed to shew by her tears that she felt it to
- be impossible. But though this behaviour assured Elinor
- that the conviction of this guilt WAS carried home to
- her mind, though she saw with satisfaction the effect of it,
- in her no longer avoiding Colonel Brandon when he called,
- in her speaking to him, even voluntarily speaking,
- with a kind of compassionate respect, and though she
- saw her spirits less violently irritated than before,
- she did not see her less wretched. Her mind did become
- settled, but it was settled in a gloomy dejection.
- She felt the loss of Willoughby's character yet more heavily
- than she had felt the loss of his heart; his seduction and
- desertion of Miss Williams, the misery of that poor girl,
- and the doubt of what his designs might ONCE have been
- on herself, preyed altogether so much on her spirits,
- that she could not bring herself to speak of what she felt
- even to Elinor; and, brooding over her sorrows in silence,
- gave more pain to her sister than could have been communicated
- by the most open and most frequent confession of them.
-
- To give the feelings or the language of Mrs. Dashwood
- on receiving and answering Elinor's letter would be only
- to give a repetition of what her daughters had already felt
- and said; of a disappointment hardly less painful than
- Marianne's, and an indignation even greater than Elinor's.
- Long letters from her, quickly succeeding each other,
- arrived to tell all that she suffered and thought;
- to express her anxious solicitude for Marianne, and entreat
- she would bear up with fortitude under this misfortune.
- Bad indeed must the nature of Marianne's affliction be,
- when her mother could talk of fortitude! mortifying
- and humiliating must be the origin of those regrets,
- which SHE could wish her not to indulge!
-
- Against the interest of her own individual comfort,
- Mrs. Dashwood had determined that it would be better for
- Marianne to be any where, at that time, than at Barton,
- where every thing within her view would be bringing back
- the past in the strongest and most afflicting manner,
- by constantly placing Willoughby before her, such as
- she had always seen him there. She recommended it to
- her daughters, therefore, by all means not to shorten their
- visit to Mrs. Jennings; the length of which, though never
- exactly fixed, had been expected by all to comprise at least
- five or six weeks. A variety of occupations, of objects,
- and of company, which could not be procured at Barton,
- would be inevitable there, and might yet, she hoped,
- cheat Marianne, at times, into some interest beyond herself,
- and even into some amusement, much as the ideas of both
- might now be spurned by her.
-
- From all danger of seeing Willoughby again,
- her mother considered her to be at least equally safe
- in town as in the country, since his acquaintance must
- now be dropped by all who called themselves her friends.
- Design could never bring them in each other's way:
- negligence could never leave them exposed to a surprise;
- and chance had less in its favour in the crowd of London
- than even in the retirement of Barton, where it might
- force him before her while paying that visit at Allenham
- on his marriage, which Mrs. Dashwood, from foreseeing at
- first as a probable event, had brought herself to expect
- as a certain one.
-
- She had yet another reason for wishing her children
- to remain where they were; a letter from her son-in-law
- had told her that he and his wife were to be in town
- before the middle of February, and she judged it right
- that they should sometimes see their brother.
-
- Marianne had promised to be guided by her mother's opinion,
- and she submitted to it therefore without opposition,
- though it proved perfectly different from what she wished
- and expected, though she felt it to be entirely wrong,
- formed on mistaken grounds, and that by requiring her
- longer continuance in London it deprived her of the only
- possible alleviation of her wretchedness, the personal
- sympathy of her mother, and doomed her to such society and
- such scenes as must prevent her ever knowing a moment's rest.
-
- But it was a matter of great consolation to her,
- that what brought evil to herself would bring good to
- her sister; and Elinor, on the other hand, suspecting that
- it would not be in her power to avoid Edward entirely,
- comforted herself by thinking, that though their longer
- stay would therefore militate against her own happiness,
- it would be better for Marianne than an immediate return
- into Devonshire.
-
- Her carefulness in guarding her sister from ever
- hearing Willoughby's name mentioned, was not thrown away.
- Marianne, though without knowing it herself, reaped all
- its advantage; for neither Mrs. Jennings, nor Sir John,
- nor even Mrs. Palmer herself, ever spoke of him before her.
- Elinor wished that the same forbearance could have extended
- towards herself, but that was impossible, and she was
- obliged to listen day after day to the indignation of them all.
-
- Sir John, could not have thought it possible.
- "A man of whom he had always had such reason to think well!
- Such a good-natured fellow! He did not believe there was a
- bolder rider in England! It was an unaccountable business.
- He wished him at the devil with all his heart. He would
- not speak another word to him, meet him where he might,
- for all the world! No, not if it were to be by the side
- of Barton covert, and they were kept watching for two
- hours together. Such a scoundrel of a fellow! such
- a deceitful dog! It was only the last time they met
- that he had offered him one of Folly's puppies! and this
- was the end of it!"
-
- Mrs. Palmer, in her way, was equally angry.
- "She was determined to drop his acquaintance immediately,
- and she was very thankful that she had never been acquainted
- with him at all. She wished with all her heart Combe
- Magna was not so near Cleveland; but it did not signify,
- for it was a great deal too far off to visit; she hated
- him so much that she was resolved never to mention
- his name again, and she should tell everybody she saw,
- how good-for-nothing he was."
-
- The rest of Mrs. Palmer's sympathy was shewn in procuring
- all the particulars in her power of the approaching marriage,
- and communicating them to Elinor. She could soon tell
- at what coachmaker's the new carriage was building,
- by what painter Mr. Willoughby's portrait was drawn,
- and at what warehouse Miss Grey's clothes might be seen.
-
- The calm and polite unconcern of Lady Middleton
- on the occasion was a happy relief to Elinor's spirits,
- oppressed as they often were by the clamorous kindness
- of the others. It was a great comfort to her to be sure
- of exciting no interest in ONE person at least among their
- circle of friends: a great comfort to know that there
- was ONE who would meet her without feeling any curiosity
- after particulars, or any anxiety for her sister's health.
-
- Every qualification is raised at times, by the
- circumstances of the moment, to more than its real value;
- and she was sometimes worried down by officious condolence
- to rate good-breeding as more indispensable to comfort
- than good-nature.
-
- Lady Middleton expressed her sense of the affair
- about once every day, or twice, if the subject occurred
- very often, by saying, "It is very shocking, indeed!"
- and by the means of this continual though gentle vent,
- was able not only to see the Miss Dashwoods from the
- first without the smallest emotion, but very soon
- to see them without recollecting a word of the matter;
- and having thus supported the dignity of her own sex,
- and spoken her decided censure of what was wrong
- in the other, she thought herself at liberty to attend
- to the interest of her own assemblies, and therefore
- determined (though rather against the opinion of Sir John)
- that as Mrs. Willoughby would at once be a woman of elegance
- and fortune, to leave her card with her as soon as she married.
-
- Colonel Brandon's delicate, unobtrusive enquiries
- were never unwelcome to Miss Dashwood. He had abundantly
- earned the privilege of intimate discussion of her
- sister's disappointment, by the friendly zeal with
- which he had endeavoured to soften it, and they always
- conversed with confidence. His chief reward for the
- painful exertion of disclosing past sorrows and present
- humiliations, was given in the pitying eye with which
- Marianne sometimes observed him, and the gentleness
- of her voice whenever (though it did not often happen)
- she was obliged, or could oblige herself to speak to him.
- THESE assured him that his exertion had produced an
- increase of good-will towards himself, and THESE gave
- Elinor hopes of its being farther augmented hereafter;
- but Mrs. Jennings, who knew nothing of all this, who knew
- only that the Colonel continued as grave as ever, and that
- she could neither prevail on him to make the offer himself,
- nor commission her to make it for him, began, at the
- end of two days, to think that, instead of Midsummer,
- they would not be married till Michaelmas, and by the
- end of a week that it would not be a match at all.
- The good understanding between the Colonel and Miss
- Dashwood seemed rather to declare that the honours
- of the mulberry-tree, the canal, and the yew arbour,
- would all be made over to HER; and Mrs. Jennings had,
- for some time ceased to think at all of Mrs. Ferrars.
-
- Early in February, within a fortnight from the
- receipt of Willoughby's letter, Elinor had the painful
- office of informing her sister that he was married.
- She had taken care to have the intelligence conveyed
- to herself, as soon as it was known that the ceremony
- was over, as she was desirous that Marianne should not
- receive the first notice of it from the public papers,
- which she saw her eagerly examining every morning.
-
- She received the news with resolute composure;
- made no observation on it, and at first shed no tears;
- but after a short time they would burst out, and for the
- rest of the day, she was in a state hardly less pitiable
- than when she first learnt to expect the event.
-
- The Willoughbys left town as soon as they were married;
- and Elinor now hoped, as there could be no danger
- of her seeing either of them, to prevail on her sister,
- who had never yet left the house since the blow first fell,
- to go out again by degrees as she had done before.
-
- About this time the two Miss Steeles, lately arrived
- at their cousin's house in Bartlett's Buildings,
- Holburn, presented themselves again before their more
- grand relations in Conduit and Berkeley Streets;
- and were welcomed by them all with great cordiality.
-
- Elinor only was sorry to see them. Their presence
- always gave her pain, and she hardly knew how to make
- a very gracious return to the overpowering delight of Lucy
- in finding her STILL in town.
-
- "I should have been quite disappointed if I had not
- found you here STILL," said she repeatedly, with a strong
- emphasis on the word. "But I always thought I SHOULD.
- I was almost sure you would not leave London yet awhile;
- though you TOLD me, you know, at Barton, that you should
- not stay above a MONTH. But I thought, at the time,
- that you would most likely change your mind when it came
- to the point. It would have been such a great pity
- to have went away before your brother and sister came.
- And now to be sure you will be in no hurry to be gone.
- I am amazingly glad you did not keep to YOUR WORD."
-
- Elinor perfectly understood her, and was forced
- to use all her self-command to make it appear that she
- did NOT.
-
- "Well, my dear," said Mrs. Jennings, "and how did
- you travel?"
-
- "Not in the stage, I assure you," replied Miss Steele,
- with quick exultation; "we came post all the way, and had
- a very smart beau to attend us. Dr. Davies was coming
- to town, and so we thought we'd join him in a post-chaise;
- and he behaved very genteelly, and paid ten or twelve
- shillings more than we did."
-
- "Oh, oh!" cried Mrs. Jennings; "very pretty,
- indeed! and the Doctor is a single man, I warrant you."
-
- "There now," said Miss Steele, affectedly simpering,
- "everybody laughs at me so about the Doctor, and I
- cannot think why. My cousins say they are sure I have
- made a conquest; but for my part I declare I never think
- about him from one hour's end to another. 'Lord! here
- comes your beau, Nancy,' my cousin said t'other day,
- when she saw him crossing the street to the house.
- My beau, indeed! said I--I cannot think who you mean.
- The Doctor is no beau of mine."
-
- "Aye, aye, that is very pretty talking--but it won't do--
- the Doctor is the man, I see."
-
- "No, indeed!" replied her cousin, with affected earnestness,
- "and I beg you will contradict it, if you ever hear it talked of."
-
- Mrs. Jennings directly gave her the gratifying
- assurance that she certainly would NOT, and Miss Steele
- was made completely happy.
-
- "I suppose you will go and stay with your brother
- and sister, Miss Dashwood, when they come to town,"
- said Lucy, returning, after a cessation of hostile hints,
- to the charge.
-
- "No, I do not think we shall."
-
- "Oh, yes, I dare say you will."
-
- Elinor would not humour her by farther opposition.
-
- "What a charming thing it is that Mrs. Dashwood can
- spare you both for so long a time together!"
-
- "Long a time, indeed!" interposed Mrs. Jennings.
- "Why, their visit is but just begun!"
-
- Lucy was silenced.
-
- "I am sorry we cannot see your sister, Miss Dashwood,"
- said Miss Steele. "I am sorry she is not well--"
- for Marianne had left the room on their arrival.
-
- "You are very good. My sister will be equally
- sorry to miss the pleasure of seeing you; but she has
- been very much plagued lately with nervous head-aches,
- which make her unfit for company or conversation."
-
- "Oh, dear, that is a great pity! but such old
- friends as Lucy and me!--I think she might see US;
- and I am sure we would not speak a word."
-
- Elinor, with great civility, declined the proposal.
- Her sister was perhaps laid down upon the bed, or in her
- dressing gown, and therefore not able to come to them.
-
- "Oh, if that's all," cried Miss Steele, "we can
- just as well go and see HER."
-
- Elinor began to find this impertinence too much for
- her temper; but she was saved the trouble of checking it,
- by Lucy's sharp reprimand, which now, as on many occasions,
- though it did not give much sweetness to the manners
- of one sister, was of advantage in governing those of
- the other.
-
-
-
- CHAPTER 33
-
-
- After some opposition, Marianne yielded to her
- sister's entreaties, and consented to go out with her
- and Mrs. Jennings one morning for half an hour. She
- expressly conditioned, however, for paying no visits,
- and would do no more than accompany them to Gray's in
- Sackville Street, where Elinor was carrying on a negotiation
- for the exchange of a few old-fashioned jewels of her mother.
-
- When they stopped at the door, Mrs. Jennings recollected
- that there was a lady at the other end of the street
- on whom she ought to call; and as she had no business
- at Gray's, it was resolved, that while her young friends
- transacted their's, she should pay her visit and
- return for them.
-
- On ascending the stairs, the Miss Dashwoods found
- so many people before them in the room, that there was
- not a person at liberty to tend to their orders; and they
- were obliged to wait. All that could be done was, to sit
- down at that end of the counter which seemed to promise the
- quickest succession; one gentleman only was standing there,
- and it is probable that Elinor was not without hope
- of exciting his politeness to a quicker despatch.
- But the correctness of his eye, and the delicacy
- of his taste, proved to be beyond his politeness.
- He was giving orders for a toothpick-case for himself,
- and till its size, shape, and ornaments were determined,
- all of which, after examining and debating for a quarter
- of an hour over every toothpick-case in the shop,
- were finally arranged by his own inventive fancy, he had
- no leisure to bestow any other attention on the two ladies,
- than what was comprised in three or four very broad stares;
- a kind of notice which served to imprint on Elinor
- the remembrance of a person and face, of strong,
- natural, sterling insignificance, though adorned in
- the first style of fashion.
-
- Marianne was spared from the troublesome feelings
- of contempt and resentment, on this impertinent examination
- of their features, and on the puppyism of his manner
- in deciding on all the different horrors of the different
- toothpick-cases presented to his inspection, by remaining
- unconscious of it all; for she was as well able to collect
- her thoughts within herself, and be as ignorant of what was
- passing around her, in Mr. Gray's shop, as in her own bedroom.
-
- At last the affair was decided. The ivory,
- the gold, and the pearls, all received their appointment,
- and the gentleman having named the last day on which his
- existence could be continued without the possession of the
- toothpick-case, drew on his gloves with leisurely care,
- and bestowing another glance on the Miss Dashwoods, but such
- a one as seemed rather to demand than express admiration,
- walked off with a happy air of real conceit and affected indifference.
-
- Elinor lost no time in bringing her business forward,
- was on the point of concluding it, when another gentleman
- presented himself at her side. She turned her eyes towards
- his face, and found him with some surprise to be her brother.
-
- Their affection and pleasure in meeting was just enough
- to make a very creditable appearance in Mr. Gray's shop.
- John Dashwood was really far from being sorry to see
- his sisters again; it rather gave them satisfaction;
- and his inquiries after their mother were respectful
- and attentive.
-
- Elinor found that he and Fanny had been in town
- two days.
-
- "I wished very much to call upon you yesterday,"
- said he, "but it was impossible, for we were obliged
- to take Harry to see the wild beasts at Exeter Exchange;
- and we spent the rest of the day with Mrs. Ferrars.
- Harry was vastly pleased. THIS morning I had fully intended
- to call on you, if I could possibly find a spare half hour,
- but one has always so much to do on first coming to town.
- I am come here to bespeak Fanny a seal. But tomorrow I
- think I shall certainly be able to call in Berkeley Street,
- and be introduced to your friend Mrs. Jennings.
- I understand she is a woman of very good fortune.
- And the Middletons too, you must introduce me to THEM.
- As my mother-in-law's relations, I shall be happy to show
- them every respect. They are excellent neighbours to you in
- the country, I understand."
-
- "Excellent indeed. Their attention to our comfort,
- their friendliness in every particular, is more than I
- can express."
-
- "I am extremely glad to hear it, upon my word;
- extremely glad indeed. But so it ought to be; they are
- people of large fortune, they are related to you, and
- every civility and accommodation that can serve to make
- your situation pleasant might be reasonably expected.
- And so you are most comfortably settled in your little cottage
- and want for nothing! Edward brought us a most charming
- account of the place: the most complete thing of its kind,
- he said, that ever was, and you all seemed to enjoy it beyond
- any thing. It was a great satisfaction to us to hear it,
- I assure you."
-
- Elinor did feel a little ashamed of her brother;
- and was not sorry to be spared the necessity of answering him,
- by the arrival of Mrs. Jennings's servant, who came to tell
- her that his mistress waited for them at the door.
-
- Mr. Dashwood attended them down stairs, was introduced
- to Mrs. Jennings at the door of her carriage, and repeating
- his hope of being able to call on them the next day,
- took leave.
-
- His visit was duly paid. He came with a pretence at
- an apology from their sister-in-law, for not coming too;
- "but she was so much engaged with her mother, that really
- she had no leisure for going any where." Mrs. Jennings,
- however, assured him directly, that she should not stand
- upon ceremony, for they were all cousins, or something
- like it, and she should certainly wait on Mrs. John
- Dashwood very soon, and bring her sisters to see her.
- His manners to THEM, though calm, were perfectly kind;
- to Mrs. Jennings, most attentively civil; and on Colonel
- Brandon's coming in soon after himself, he eyed him with a
- curiosity which seemed to say, that he only wanted to know
- him to be rich, to be equally civil to HIM.
-
- After staying with them half an hour, he asked
- Elinor to walk with him to Conduit Street, and introduce
- him to Sir John and Lady Middleton. The weather was
- remarkably fine, and she readily consented. As soon
- as they were out of the house, his enquiries began.
-
- "Who is Colonel Brandon? Is he a man of fortune?"
-
- "Yes; he has very good property in Dorsetshire."
-
- "I am glad of it. He seems a most gentlemanlike man;
- and I think, Elinor, I may congratulate you on the prospect
- of a very respectable establishment in life."
-
- "Me, brother! what do you mean?"
-
- "He likes you. I observed him narrowly, and am
- convinced of it. What is the amount of his fortune?"
-
- "I believe about two thousand a year."
-
- "Two thousand a-year;" and then working himself
- up to a pitch of enthusiastic generosity, he added,
- "Elinor, I wish with all my heart it were TWICE as much,
- for your sake."
-
- "Indeed I believe you," replied Elinor; "but I am
- very sure that Colonel Brandon has not the smallest wish
- of marrying ME."
-
- "You are mistaken, Elinor; you are very much mistaken.
- A very little trouble on your side secures him.
- Perhaps just at present he may be undecided; the smallness
- of your fortune may make him hang back; his friends
- may all advise him against it. But some of those little
- attentions and encouragements which ladies can so easily
- give will fix him, in spite of himself. And there can be
- no reason why you should not try for him. It is not to be
- supposed that any prior attachment on your side--in short,
- you know as to an attachment of that kind, it is quite
- out of the question, the objections are insurmountable--
- you have too much sense not to see all that. Colonel Brandon
- must be the man; and no civility shall be wanting on
- my part to make him pleased with you and your family.
- It is a match that must give universal satisfaction.
- In short, it is a kind of thing that"--lowering his voice
- to an important whisper--"will be exceedingly welcome
- to ALL PARTIES." Recollecting himself, however, he added,
- "That is, I mean to say--your friends are all truly
- anxious to see you well settled; Fanny particularly,
- for she has your interest very much at heart, I assure you.
- And her mother too, Mrs. Ferrars, a very good-natured woman,
- I am sure it would give her great pleasure; she said as much
- the other day."
-
- Elinor would not vouchsafe any answer.
-
- "It would be something remarkable, now," he continued,
- "something droll, if Fanny should have a brother and I
- a sister settling at the same time. And yet it is not
- very unlikely."
-
- "Is Mr. Edward Ferrars," said Elinor, with resolution,
- "going to be married?"
-
- "It is not actually settled, but there is such
- a thing in agitation. He has a most excellent mother.
- Mrs. Ferrars, with the utmost liberality, will come forward,
- and settle on him a thousand a year, if the match
- takes place. The lady is the Hon. Miss Morton, only daughter
- of the late Lord Morton, with thirty thousand pounds.
- A very desirable connection on both sides, and I have not
- a doubt of its taking place in time. A thousand a-year
- is a great deal for a mother to give away, to make over
- for ever; but Mrs. Ferrars has a noble spirit. To give
- you another instance of her liberality:--The other day,
- as soon as we came to town, aware that money could
- not be very plenty with us just now, she put bank-notes
- into Fanny's hands to the amount of two hundred pounds.
- And extremely acceptable it is, for we must live at a great
- expense while we are here."
-
- He paused for her assent and compassion; and she
- forced herself to say,
-
- "Your expenses both in town and country must certainly
- be considerable; but your income is a large one."
-
- "Not so large, I dare say, as many people suppose.
- I do not mean to complain, however; it is undoubtedly
- a comfortable one, and I hope will in time be better.
- The enclosure of Norland Common, now carrying on,
- is a most serious drain. And then I have made a little
- purchase within this half year; East Kingham Farm,
- you must remember the place, where old Gibson used to live.
- The land was so very desirable for me in every respect,
- so immediately adjoining my own property, that I felt it
- my duty to buy it. I could not have answered it to my
- conscience to let it fall into any other hands. A man must
- pay for his convenience; and it HAS cost me a vast deal
- of money."
-
- "More than you think it really and intrinsically worth."
-
- "Why, I hope not that. I might have sold it again,
- the next day, for more than I gave: but, with regard to the
- purchase-money, I might have been very unfortunate indeed;
- for the stocks were at that time so low, that if I had not
- happened to have the necessary sum in my banker's hands,
- I must have sold out to very great loss."
-
- Elinor could only smile.
-
- "Other great and inevitable expenses too we have
- had on first coming to Norland. Our respected father,
- as you well know, bequeathed all the Stanhill effects
- that remained at Norland (and very valuable they were)
- to your mother. Far be it from me to repine at his
- doing so; he had an undoubted right to dispose of his
- own property as he chose, but, in consequence of it,
- we have been obliged to make large purchases of linen,
- china, &c. to supply the place of what was taken away.
- You may guess, after all these expenses, how very far we
- must be from being rich, and how acceptable Mrs. Ferrars's
- kindness is."
-
- "Certainly," said Elinor; "and assisted by her liberality,
- I hope you may yet live to be in easy circumstances."
-
- "Another year or two may do much towards it,"
- he gravely replied; "but however there is still a great
- deal to be done. There is not a stone laid of Fanny's
- green-house, and nothing but the plan of the flower-garden
- marked out."
-
- "Where is the green-house to be?"
-
- "Upon the knoll behind the house. The old
- walnut trees are all come down to make room for it.
- It will be a very fine object from many parts of the park,
- and the flower-garden will slope down just before it,
- and be exceedingly pretty. We have cleared away all the old
- thorns that grew in patches over the brow."
-
- Elinor kept her concern and her censure to herself;
- and was very thankful that Marianne was not present,
- to share the provocation.
-
- Having now said enough to make his poverty clear,
- and to do away the necessity of buying a pair of ear-rings
- for each of his sisters, in his next visit at Gray's
- his thoughts took a cheerfuller turn, and he began to
- congratulate Elinor on having such a friend as Mrs. Jennings.
-
- "She seems a most valuable woman indeed--Her house,
- her style of living, all bespeak an exceeding good income;
- and it is an acquaintance that has not only been
- of great use to you hitherto, but in the end may prove
- materially advantageous.--Her inviting you to town is
- certainly a vast thing in your favour; and indeed, it
- speaks altogether so great a regard for you, that in all
- probability when she dies you will not be forgotten.--
- She must have a great deal to leave."
-
- "Nothing at all, I should rather suppose; for she has
- only her jointure, which will descend to her children."
-
- "But it is not to be imagined that she lives up to
- her income. Few people of common prudence will do THAT;
- and whatever she saves, she will be able to dispose of."
-
- "And do you not think it more likely that she
- should leave it to her daughters, than to us?"
-
- "Her daughters are both exceedingly well married,
- and therefore I cannot perceive the necessity of her
- remembering them farther. Whereas, in my opinion, by her
- taking so much notice of you, and treating you in this
- kind of way, she has given you a sort of claim on her
- future consideration, which a conscientious woman would
- not disregard. Nothing can be kinder than her behaviour;
- and she can hardly do all this, without being aware
- of the expectation it raises."
-
- "But she raises none in those most concerned.
- Indeed, brother, your anxiety for our welfare and prosperity
- carries you too far."
-
- "Why, to be sure," said he, seeming to recollect himself,
- "people have little, have very little in their power.
- But, my dear Elinor, what is the matter with Marianne?--
- she looks very unwell, has lost her colour, and is grown
- quite thin. Is she ill?"
-
- "She is not well, she has had a nervous complaint
- on her for several weeks."
-
- "I am sorry for that. At her time of life,
- any thing of an illness destroys the bloom for ever!
- Her's has been a very short one! She was as handsome a girl
- last September, as I ever saw; and as likely to attract
- the man. There was something in her style of beauty,
- to please them particularly. I remember Fanny used to say
- that she would marry sooner and better than you did;
- not but what she is exceedingly fond of YOU, but so it
- happened to strike her. She will be mistaken, however.
- I question whether Marianne NOW, will marry a man worth
- more than five or six hundred a-year, at the utmost,
- and I am very much deceived if YOU do not do better.
- Dorsetshire! I know very little of Dorsetshire; but, my dear
- Elinor, I shall be exceedingly glad to know more of it;
- and I think I can answer for your having Fanny and myself
- among the earliest and best pleased of your visitors."
-
- Elinor tried very seriously to convince him that
- there was no likelihood of her marrying Colonel Brandon;
- but it was an expectation of too much pleasure to himself
- to be relinquished, and he was really resolved on seeking
- an intimacy with that gentleman, and promoting the marriage
- by every possible attention. He had just compunction
- enough for having done nothing for his sisters himself,
- to be exceedingly anxious that everybody else should
- do a great deal; and an offer from Colonel Brandon,
- or a legacy from Mrs. Jennings, was the easiest means
- of atoning for his own neglect.
-
- They were lucky enough to find Lady Middleton
- at home, and Sir John came in before their visit ended.
- Abundance of civilities passed on all sides. Sir John
- was ready to like anybody, and though Mr. Dashwood did
- not seem to know much about horses, he soon set him
- down as a very good-natured fellow: while Lady Middleton
- saw enough of fashion in his appearance to think his
- acquaintance worth having; and Mr. Dashwood went away
- delighted with both.
-
- "I shall have a charming account to carry
- to Fanny," said he, as he walked back with his sister.
- "Lady Middleton is really a most elegant woman! Such
- a woman as I am sure Fanny will be glad to know.
- And Mrs. Jennings too, an exceedingly well-behaved woman,
- though not so elegant as her daughter. Your sister need
- not have any scruple even of visiting HER, which, to say
- the truth, has been a little the case, and very naturally;
- for we only knew that Mrs. Jennings was the widow of a man
- who had got all his money in a low way; and Fanny and
- Mrs. Ferrars were both strongly prepossessed, that neither
- she nor her daughters were such kind of women as Fanny
- would like to associate with. But now I can carry her
- a most satisfactory account of both."
-
-
-
- CHAPTER 34
-
-
- Mrs. John Dashwood had so much confidence in her
- husband's judgment, that she waited the very next day
- both on Mrs. Jennings and her daughter; and her
- confidence was rewarded by finding even the former,
- even the woman with whom her sisters were staying,
- by no means unworthy her notice; and as for Lady Middleton,
- she found her one of the most charming women in the world!
-
- Lady Middleton was equally pleased with Mrs. Dashwood.
- There was a kind of cold hearted selfishness on both sides,
- which mutually attracted them; and they sympathised
- with each other in an insipid propriety of demeanor,
- and a general want of understanding.
-
- The same manners, however, which recommended Mrs. John
- Dashwood to the good opinion of Lady Middleton did not suit
- the fancy of Mrs. Jennings, and to HER she appeared nothing
- more than a little proud-looking woman of uncordial address,
- who met her husband's sisters without any affection,
- and almost without having anything to say to them;
- for of the quarter of an hour bestowed on Berkeley Street,
- she sat at least seven minutes and a half in silence.
-
- Elinor wanted very much to know, though she did
- not chuse to ask, whether Edward was then in town;
- but nothing would have induced Fanny voluntarily
- to mention his name before her, till able to tell her
- that his marriage with Miss Morton was resolved on,
- or till her husband's expectations on Colonel Brandon
- were answered; because she believed them still so very
- much attached to each other, that they could not be too
- sedulously divided in word and deed on every occasion.
- The intelligence however, which SHE would not give,
- soon flowed from another quarter. Lucy came very shortly
- to claim Elinor's compassion on being unable to see Edward,
- though he had arrived in town with Mr. and Mrs. Dashwood.
- He dared not come to Bartlett's Buildings for fear
- of detection, and though their mutual impatience to meet,
- was not to be told, they could do nothing at present
- but write.
-
- Edward assured them himself of his being in town,
- within a very short time, by twice calling in Berkeley Street.
- Twice was his card found on the table, when they returned
- from their morning's engagements. Elinor was pleased
- that he had called; and still more pleased that she had
- missed him.
-
- The Dashwoods were so prodigiously delighted
- with the Middletons, that, though not much in the habit
- of giving anything, they determined to give them--
- a dinner; and soon after their acquaintance began,
- invited them to dine in Harley Street, where they had
- taken a very good house for three months. Their sisters
- and Mrs. Jennings were invited likewise, and John Dashwood
- was careful to secure Colonel Brandon, who, always glad
- to be where the Miss Dashwoods were, received his eager
- civilities with some surprise, but much more pleasure.
- They were to meet Mrs. Ferrars; but Elinor could not learn
- whether her sons were to be of the party. The expectation
- of seeing HER, however, was enough to make her interested
- in the engagement; for though she could now meet Edward's
- mother without that strong anxiety which had once promised
- to attend such an introduction, though she could now see
- her with perfect indifference as to her opinion of herself,
- her desire of being in company with Mrs. Ferrars,
- her curiosity to know what she was like, was as lively as ever.
-
- The interest with which she thus anticipated the
- party, was soon afterwards increased, more powerfully
- than pleasantly, by her hearing that the Miss Steeles
- were also to be at it.
-
- So well had they recommended themselves to Lady Middleton,
- so agreeable had their assiduities made them to her,
- that though Lucy was certainly not so elegant, and her
- sister not even genteel, she was as ready as Sir John
- to ask them to spend a week or two in Conduit Street;
- and it happened to be particularly convenient to the Miss
- Steeles, as soon as the Dashwoods' invitation was known,
- that their visit should begin a few days before the party
- took place.
-
- Their claims to the notice of Mrs. John Dashwood,
- as the nieces of the gentleman who for many years had
- had the care of her brother, might not have done much,
- however, towards procuring them seats at her table;
- but as Lady Middleton's guests they must be welcome; and Lucy,
- who had long wanted to be personally known to the family,
- to have a nearer view of their characters and her own
- difficulties, and to have an opportunity of endeavouring
- to please them, had seldom been happier in her life,
- than she was on receiving Mrs. John Dashwood's card.
-
- On Elinor its effect was very different. She began
- immediately to determine, that Edward who lived with
- his mother, must be asked as his mother was, to a party
- given by his sister; and to see him for the first time,
- after all that passed, in the company of Lucy!--she hardly
- knew how she could bear it!
-
- These apprehensions, perhaps, were not founded
- entirely on reason, and certainly not at all on truth.
- They were relieved however, not by her own recollection,
- but by the good will of Lucy, who believed herself to be
- inflicting a severe disappointment when she told her
- that Edward certainly would not be in Harley Street on Tuesday,
- and even hoped to be carrying the pain still farther
- by persuading her that he was kept away by the extreme
- affection for herself, which he could not conceal when they
- were together.
-
- The important Tuesday came that was to introduce
- the two young ladies to this formidable mother-in-law.
-
- "Pity me, dear Miss Dashwood!" said Lucy, as they
- walked up the stairs together--for the Middletons arrived
- so directly after Mrs. Jennings, that they all followed
- the servant at the same time--"There is nobody here but
- you, that can feel for me.--I declare I can hardly stand.
- Good gracious!--In a moment I shall see the person that all
- my happiness depends on--that is to be my mother!"--
-
- Elinor could have given her immediate relief
- by suggesting the possibility of its being Miss Morton's mother,
- rather than her own, whom they were about to behold;
- but instead of doing that, she assured her, and with
- great sincerity, that she did pity her--to the utter
- amazement of Lucy, who, though really uncomfortable herself,
- hoped at least to be an object of irrepressible envy to Elinor.
-
- Mrs. Ferrars was a little, thin woman, upright,
- even to formality, in her figure, and serious,
- even to sourness, in her aspect. Her complexion was sallow;
- and her features small, without beauty, and naturally
- without expression; but a lucky contraction of the brow
- had rescued her countenance from the disgrace of insipidity,
- by giving it the strong characters of pride and ill nature.
- She was not a woman of many words; for, unlike people
- in general, she proportioned them to the number of
- her ideas; and of the few syllables that did escape her,
- not one fell to the share of Miss Dashwood, whom she eyed
- with the spirited determination of disliking her at all events.
-
- Elinor could not NOW be made unhappy by this behaviour.--
- A few months ago it would have hurt her exceedingly; but it
- was not in Mrs. Ferrars' power to distress her by it now;--
- and the difference of her manners to the Miss Steeles,
- a difference which seemed purposely made to humble her more,
- only amused her. She could not but smile to see the graciousness
- of both mother and daughter towards the very person--
- for Lucy was particularly distinguished--whom of all others,
- had they known as much as she did, they would have been most
- anxious to mortify; while she herself, who had comparatively
- no power to wound them, sat pointedly slighted by both.
- But while she smiled at a graciousness so misapplied,
- she could not reflect on the mean-spirited folly from
- which it sprung, nor observe the studied attentions
- with which the Miss Steeles courted its continuance,
- without thoroughly despising them all four.
-
- Lucy was all exultation on being so honorably
- distinguished; and Miss Steele wanted only to be teazed
- about Dr. Davis to be perfectly happy.
-
- The dinner was a grand one, the servants were numerous,
- and every thing bespoke the Mistress's inclination
- for show, and the Master's ability to support it.
- In spite of the improvements and additions which were
- making to the Norland estate, and in spite of its owner
- having once been within some thousand pounds of being
- obliged to sell out at a loss, nothing gave any symptom
- of that indigence which he had tried to infer from it;--
- no poverty of any kind, except of conversation, appeared--
- but there, the deficiency was considerable. John Dashwood
- had not much to say for himself that was worth hearing,
- and his wife had still less. But there was no peculiar
- disgrace in this; for it was very much the case with
- the chief of their visitors, who almost all laboured
- under one or other of these disqualifications for being
- agreeable--Want of sense, either natural or improved--want
- of elegance--want of spirits--or want of temper.
-
- When the ladies withdrew to the drawing-room
- after dinner, this poverty was particularly evident,
- for the gentlemen HAD supplied the discourse with some
- variety--the variety of politics, inclosing land,
- and breaking horses--but then it was all over; and one
- subject only engaged the ladies till coffee came in,
- which was the comparative heights of Harry Dashwood,
- and Lady Middleton's second son William, who were nearly
- of the same age.
-
- Had both the children been there, the affair might
- have been determined too easily by measuring them at once;
- but as Harry only was present, it was all conjectural
- assertion on both sides; and every body had a right to
- be equally positive in their opinion, and to repeat it
- over and over again as often as they liked.
-
- The parties stood thus:
-
- The two mothers, though each really convinced that
- her own son was the tallest, politely decided in favour
- of the other.
-
- The two grandmothers, with not less partiality,
- but more sincerity, were equally earnest in support
- of their own descendant.
-
- Lucy, who was hardly less anxious to please one parent
- than the other, thought the boys were both remarkably tall
- for their age, and could not conceive that there could
- be the smallest difference in the world between them;
- and Miss Steele, with yet greater address gave it,
- as fast as she could, in favour of each.
-
- Elinor, having once delivered her opinion on
- William's side, by which she offended Mrs. Ferrars and
- Fanny still more, did not see the necessity of enforcing
- it by any farther assertion; and Marianne, when called
- on for her's, offended them all, by declaring that she
- had no opinion to give, as she had never thought about it.
-
- Before her removing from Norland, Elinor had painted
- a very pretty pair of screens for her sister-in-law,
- which being now just mounted and brought home,
- ornamented her present drawing room; and these screens,
- catching the eye of John Dashwood on his following
- the other gentlemen into the room, were officiously
- handed by him to Colonel Brandon for his admiration.
-
- "These are done by my eldest sister," said he; "and you,
- as a man of taste, will, I dare say, be pleased with them.
- I do not know whether you have ever happened to see any
- of her performances before, but she is in general reckoned
- to draw extremely well."
-
- The Colonel, though disclaiming all pretensions
- to connoisseurship, warmly admired the screens, as he
- would have done any thing painted by Miss Dashwood;
- and on the curiosity of the others being of course excited,
- they were handed round for general inspection.
- Mrs. Ferrars, not aware of their being Elinor's work,
- particularly requested to look at them; and after they had
- received gratifying testimony of Lady Middletons's approbation,
- Fanny presented them to her mother, considerately informing
- her, at the same time, that they were done by Miss Dashwood.
-
- "Hum"--said Mrs. Ferrars--"very pretty,"--and without
- regarding them at all, returned them to her daughter.
-
- Perhaps Fanny thought for a moment that her mother
- had been quite rude enough,--for, colouring a little,
- she immediately said,
-
- "They are very pretty, ma'am--an't they?" But then again,
- the dread of having been too civil, too encouraging herself,
- probably came over her, for she presently added,
-
- "Do you not think they are something in Miss
- Morton's style of painting, Ma'am?--She DOES paint most
- delightfully!--How beautifully her last landscape is done!"
-
- "Beautifully indeed! But SHE does every thing well."
-
- Marianne could not bear this.--She was already
- greatly displeased with Mrs. Ferrars; and such ill-timed
- praise of another, at Elinor's expense, though she
- had not any notion of what was principally meant by it,
- provoked her immediately to say with warmth,
-
- "This is admiration of a very particular kind!--
- what is Miss Morton to us?--who knows, or who cares,
- for her?--it is Elinor of whom WE think and speak."
-
- And so saying, she took the screens out of her
- sister-in-law's hands, to admire them herself as they
- ought to be admired.
-
- Mrs. Ferrars looked exceedingly angry, and drawing
- herself up more stiffly than ever, pronounced in retort
- this bitter philippic, "Miss Morton is Lord Morton's daughter."
-
- Fanny looked very angry too, and her husband was
- all in a fright at his sister's audacity. Elinor was
- much more hurt by Marianne's warmth than she had been
- by what produced it; but Colonel Brandon's eyes, as they
- were fixed on Marianne, declared that he noticed only
- what was amiable in it, the affectionate heart which could
- not bear to see a sister slighted in the smallest point.
-
- Marianne's feelings did not stop here. The cold
- insolence of Mrs. Ferrars's general behaviour to her sister,
- seemed, to her, to foretell such difficulties and distresses
- to Elinor, as her own wounded heart taught her to think
- of with horror; and urged by a strong impulse of
- affectionate sensibility, she moved after a moment,
- to her sister's chair, and putting one arm round her neck,
- and one cheek close to hers, said in a low, but eager,
- voice,
-
- "Dear, dear Elinor, don't mind them. Don't let them
- make YOU unhappy."
-
- She could say no more; her spirits were quite overcome,
- and hiding her face on Elinor's shoulder, she burst
- into tears. Every body's attention was called, and almost
- every body was concerned.--Colonel Brandon rose up and went
- to them without knowing what he did.--Mrs. Jennings,
- with a very intelligent "Ah! poor dear," immediately gave
- her her salts; and Sir John felt so desperately enraged
- against the author of this nervous distress, that he
- instantly changed his seat to one close by Lucy Steele,
- and gave her, in a whisper, a brief account of the whole
- shocking affair.
-
- In a few minutes, however, Marianne was recovered
- enough to put an end to the bustle, and sit down among
- the rest; though her spirits retained the impression
- of what had passed, the whole evening.
-
- "Poor Marianne!" said her brother to Colonel Brandon,
- in a low voice, as soon as he could secure his attention,--
- "She has not such good health as her sister,--she is very
- nervous,--she has not Elinor's constitution;--and one must
- allow that there is something very trying to a young woman
- who HAS BEEN a beauty in the loss of her personal attractions.
- You would not think it perhaps, but Marianne WAS remarkably
- handsome a few months ago; quite as handsome as Elinor.--
- Now you see it is all gone."
-
-
-
- CHAPTER 35
-
-
- Elinor's curiosity to see Mrs. Ferrars was satisfied.--
- She had found in her every thing that could tend to make
- a farther connection between the families undesirable.--
- She had seen enough of her pride, her meanness, and her
- determined prejudice against herself, to comprehend all
- the difficulties that must have perplexed the engagement,
- and retarded the marriage, of Edward and herself, had he been
- otherwise free;--and she had seen almost enough to be thankful
- for her OWN sake, that one greater obstacle preserved her
- from suffering under any other of Mrs. Ferrars's creation,
- preserved her from all dependence upon her caprice, or any
- solicitude for her good opinion. Or at least, if she did not
- bring herself quite to rejoice in Edward's being fettered
- to Lucy, she determined, that had Lucy been more amiable,
- she OUGHT to have rejoiced.
-
- She wondered that Lucy's spirits could be so very much
- elevated by the civility of Mrs. Ferrars;--that her interest
- and her vanity should so very much blind her as to make
- the attention which seemed only paid her because she was
- NOT ELINOR, appear a compliment to herself--or to allow
- her to derive encouragement from a preference only given her,
- because her real situation was unknown. But that it was so,
- had not only been declared by Lucy's eyes at the time,
- but was declared over again the next morning more openly,
- for at her particular desire, Lady Middleton set her down
- in Berkeley Street on the chance of seeing Elinor alone,
- to tell her how happy she was.
-
- The chance proved a lucky one, for a message from
- Mrs. Palmer soon after she arrived, carried Mrs. Jennings away.
-
- "My dear friend," cried Lucy, as soon as they were
- by themselves, "I come to talk to you of my happiness.
- Could anything be so flattering as Mrs. Ferrars's way
- of treating me yesterday? So exceeding affable as she
- was!--You know how I dreaded the thoughts of seeing her;--
- but the very moment I was introduced, there was such an
- affability in her behaviour as really should seem to say,
- she had quite took a fancy to me. Now was not it so?--
- You saw it all; and was not you quite struck with it?"
-
- "She was certainly very civil to you."
-
- "Civil!--Did you see nothing but only civility?--
- I saw a vast deal more. Such kindness as fell to the share
- of nobody but me!--No pride, no hauteur, and your sister
- just the same--all sweetness and affability!"
-
- Elinor wished to talk of something else, but Lucy still
- pressed her to own that she had reason for her happiness;
- and Elinor was obliged to go on.--
-
- "Undoubtedly, if they had known your engagement,"
- said she, "nothing could be more flattering than their
- treatment of you;--but as that was not the case"--
-
- "I guessed you would say so"--replied Lucy
- quickly--"but there was no reason in the world why
- Mrs. Ferrars should seem to like me, if she did not,
- and her liking me is every thing. You shan't talk me
- out of my satisfaction. I am sure it will all end well,
- and there will be no difficulties at all, to what I
- used to think. Mrs. Ferrars is a charming woman,
- and so is your sister. They are both delightful women,
- indeed!--I wonder I should never hear you say how agreeable
- Mrs. Dashwood was!"
-
- To this Elinor had no answer to make, and did not
- attempt any.
-
- "Are you ill, Miss Dashwood?--you seem low--you
- don't speak;--sure you an't well."
-
- "I never was in better health."
-
- "I am glad of it with all my heart; but really you did
- not look it. I should be sorry to have YOU ill; you, that have
- been the greatest comfort to me in the world!--Heaven
- knows what I should have done without your friendship."--
-
- Elinor tried to make a civil answer, though doubting
- her own success. But it seemed to satisfy Lucy, for she
- directly replied,
-
- "Indeed I am perfectly convinced of your regard
- for me, and next to Edward's love, it is the greatest
- comfort I have.--Poor Edward!--But now there is one
- good thing, we shall be able to meet, and meet pretty often,
- for Lady Middleton's delighted with Mrs. Dashwood,
- so we shall be a good deal in Harley Street, I dare say,
- and Edward spends half his time with his sister--besides,
- Lady Middleton and Mrs. Ferrars will visit now;--
- and Mrs. Ferrars and your sister were both so good to say
- more than once, they should always be glad to see me.--
- They are such charming women!--I am sure if ever you
- tell your sister what I think of her, you cannot speak
- too high."
-
- But Elinor would not give her any encouragement
- to hope that she SHOULD tell her sister. Lucy continued.
-
- "I am sure I should have seen it in a moment,
- if Mrs. Ferrars had took a dislike to me. If she had only
- made me a formal courtesy, for instance, without saying
- a word, and never after had took any notice of me,
- and never looked at me in a pleasant way--you know
- what I mean--if I had been treated in that forbidding
- sort of way, I should have gave it all up in despair.
- I could not have stood it. For where she DOES dislike,
- I know it is most violent."
-
- Elinor was prevented from making any reply to this
- civil triumph, by the door's being thrown open, the servant's
- announcing Mr. Ferrars, and Edward's immediately walking in.
-
- It was a very awkward moment; and the countenance of each
- shewed that it was so. They all looked exceedingly foolish;
- and Edward seemed to have as great an inclination to walk
- out of the room again, as to advance farther into it.
- The very circumstance, in its unpleasantest form,
- which they would each have been most anxious to avoid,
- had fallen on them.--They were not only all three together,
- but were together without the relief of any other person.
- The ladies recovered themselves first. It was not Lucy's
- business to put herself forward, and the appearance of
- secrecy must still be kept up. She could therefore only
- LOOK her tenderness, and after slightly addressing him,
- said no more.
-
- But Elinor had more to do; and so anxious was she,
- for his sake and her own, to do it well, that she
- forced herself, after a moment's recollection,
- to welcome him, with a look and manner that were almost easy,
- and almost open; and another struggle, another effort still
- improved them. She would not allow the presence of Lucy,
- nor the consciousness of some injustice towards herself,
- to deter her from saying that she was happy to see him,
- and that she had very much regretted being from home,
- when he called before in Berkeley Street. She would
- not be frightened from paying him those attentions which,
- as a friend and almost a relation, were his due, by the
- observant eyes of Lucy, though she soon perceived them
- to be narrowly watching her.
-
- Her manners gave some re-assurance to Edward, and he
- had courage enough to sit down; but his embarrassment still
- exceeded that of the ladies in a proportion, which the case
- rendered reasonable, though his sex might make it rare;
- for his heart had not the indifference of Lucy's, nor
- could his conscience have quite the ease of Elinor's.
-
- Lucy, with a demure and settled air, seemed determined
- to make no contribution to the comfort of the others,
- and would not say a word; and almost every thing that WAS
- said, proceeded from Elinor, who was obliged to volunteer
- all the information about her mother's health, their coming
- to town, &c. which Edward ought to have inquired about,
- but never did.
-
- Her exertions did not stop here; for she soon
- afterwards felt herself so heroically disposed as
- to determine, under pretence of fetching Marianne,
- to leave the others by themselves; and she really did it,
- and THAT in the handsomest manner, for she loitered away
- several minutes on the landing-place, with the most
- high-minded fortitude, before she went to her sister.
- When that was once done, however, it was time for the raptures
- of Edward to cease; for Marianne's joy hurried her into
- the drawing-room immediately. Her pleasure in seeing him
- was like every other of her feelings, strong in itself,
- and strongly spoken. She met him with a hand that would
- be taken, and a voice that expressed the affection of a sister.
-
- "Dear Edward!" she cried, "this is a moment of great
- happiness!--This would almost make amends for every thing?"
-
- Edward tried to return her kindness as it deserved,
- but before such witnesses he dared not say half what he
- really felt. Again they all sat down, and for a moment
- or two all were silent; while Marianne was looking with the
- most speaking tenderness, sometimes at Edward and sometimes
- at Elinor, regretting only that their delight in each
- other should be checked by Lucy's unwelcome presence.
- Edward was the first to speak, and it was to notice
- Marianne's altered looks, and express his fear of her
- not finding London agree with her.
-
- "Oh, don't think of me!" she replied with spirited
- earnestness, though her eyes were filled with tears
- as she spoke, "don't think of MY health. Elinor is well,
- you see. That must be enough for us both."
-
- This remark was not calculated to make Edward or
- Elinor more easy, nor to conciliate the good will of Lucy,
- who looked up at Marianne with no very benignant expression.
-
- "Do you like London?" said Edward, willing to say
- any thing that might introduce another subject.
-
- "Not at all. I expected much pleasure in it,
- but I have found none. The sight of you, Edward, is the
- only comfort it has afforded; and thank Heaven! you
- are what you always were!"
-
- She paused--no one spoke.
-
- "I think, Elinor," she presently added, "we must
- employ Edward to take care of us in our return to Barton.
- In a week or two, I suppose, we shall be going; and, I trust,
- Edward will not be very unwilling to accept the charge."
-
- Poor Edward muttered something, but what it was,
- nobody knew, not even himself. But Marianne, who saw
- his agitation, and could easily trace it to whatever
- cause best pleased herself, was perfectly satisfied,
- and soon talked of something else.
-
- "We spent such a day, Edward, in Harley Street
- yesterday! So dull, so wretchedly dull!--But I have much
- to say to you on that head, which cannot be said now."
-
- And with this admirable discretion did she defer
- the assurance of her finding their mutual relatives more
- disagreeable than ever, and of her being particularly
- disgusted with his mother, till they were more in private.
-
- "But why were you not there, Edward?--Why did you
- not come?"
-
- "I was engaged elsewhere."
-
- "Engaged! But what was that, when such friends
- were to be met?"
-
- "Perhaps, Miss Marianne," cried Lucy, eager to take
- some revenge on her, "you think young men never stand
- upon engagements, if they have no mind to keep them,
- little as well as great."
-
- Elinor was very angry, but Marianne seemed entirely
- insensible of the sting; for she calmly replied,
-
- "Not so, indeed; for, seriously speaking, I am very
- sure that conscience only kept Edward from Harley Street.
- And I really believe he HAS the most delicate conscience
- in the world; the most scrupulous in performing
- every engagement, however minute, and however it
- may make against his interest or pleasure. He is the
- most fearful of giving pain, of wounding expectation,
- and the most incapable of being selfish, of any body
- I ever saw. Edward, it is so, and I will say it.
- What! are you never to hear yourself praised!--Then you
- must be no friend of mine; for those who will accept
- of my love and esteem, must submit to my open commendation."
-
- The nature of her commendation, in the present case,
- however, happened to be particularly ill-suited to the
- feelings of two thirds of her auditors, and was so very
- unexhilarating to Edward, that he very soon got up to go away.
-
- "Going so soon!" said Marianne; "my dear Edward,
- this must not be."
-
- And drawing him a little aside, she whispered
- her persuasion that Lucy could not stay much longer.
- But even this encouragement failed, for he would go;
- and Lucy, who would have outstaid him, had his visit lasted
- two hours, soon afterwards went away.
-
- "What can bring her here so often?" said Marianne,
- on her leaving them. "Could not she see that we wanted
- her gone!--how teazing to Edward!"
-
- "Why so?--we were all his friends, and Lucy has been
- the longest known to him of any. It is but natural
- that he should like to see her as well as ourselves."
-
- Marianne looked at her steadily, and said, "You know,
- Elinor, that this is a kind of talking which I cannot bear.
- If you only hope to have your assertion contradicted,
- as I must suppose to be the case, you ought to recollect
- that I am the last person in the world to do it.
- I cannot descend to be tricked out of assurances, that are
- not really wanted."
-
- She then left the room; and Elinor dared not follow
- her to say more, for bound as she was by her promise
- of secrecy to Lucy, she could give no information that
- would convince Marianne; and painful as the consequences
- of her still continuing in an error might be, she was
- obliged to submit to it. All that she could hope, was
- that Edward would not often expose her or himself to the
- distress of hearing Marianne's mistaken warmth, nor to the
- repetition of any other part of the pain that had attended
- their recent meeting--and this she had every reason to expect.
-
-
- CHAPTER 36
-
-
- Within a few days after this meeting, the newspapers
- announced to the world, that the lady of Thomas Palmer,
- Esq. was safely delivered of a son and heir; a very
- interesting and satisfactory paragraph, at least to all
- those intimate connections who knew it before.
-
- This event, highly important to Mrs. Jennings's happiness,
- produced a temporary alteration in the disposal of her time,
- and influenced, in a like degree, the engagements
- of her young friends; for as she wished to be as much
- as possible with Charlotte, she went thither every morning
- as soon as she was dressed, and did not return till late
- in the evening; and the Miss Dashwoods, at the particular
- request of the Middletons, spent the whole of every day,
- in every day in Conduit Street. For their own comfort
- they would much rather have remained, at least all
- the morning, in Mrs. Jennings's house; but it was not
- a thing to be urged against the wishes of everybody.
- Their hours were therefore made over to Lady Middleton
- and the two Miss Steeles, by whom their company, in fact
- was as little valued, as it was professedly sought.
-
- They had too much sense to be desirable companions
- to the former; and by the latter they were considered with
- a jealous eye, as intruding on THEIR ground, and sharing
- the kindness which they wanted to monopolize. Though nothing
- could be more polite than Lady Middleton's behaviour to
- Elinor and Marianne, she did not really like them at all.
- Because they neither flattered herself nor her children,
- she could not believe them good-natured; and because they
- were fond of reading, she fancied them satirical: perhaps
- without exactly knowing what it was to be satirical;
- but THAT did not signify. It was censure in common use,
- and easily given.
-
- Their presence was a restraint both on her and on Lucy.
- It checked the idleness of one, and the business of the other.
- Lady Middleton was ashamed of doing nothing before them,
- and the flattery which Lucy was proud to think of
- and administer at other times, she feared they would despise
- her for offering. Miss Steele was the least discomposed
- of the three, by their presence; and it was in their power
- to reconcile her to it entirely. Would either of them
- only have given her a full and minute account of the whole
- affair between Marianne and Mr. Willoughby, she would
- have thought herself amply rewarded for the sacrifice
- of the best place by the fire after dinner, which their
- arrival occasioned. But this conciliation was not granted;
- for though she often threw out expressions of pity for her
- sister to Elinor, and more than once dropt a reflection
- on the inconstancy of beaux before Marianne, no effect
- was produced, but a look of indifference from the former,
- or of disgust in the latter. An effort even yet lighter
- might have made her their friend. Would they only have
- laughed at her about the Doctor! But so little were they,
- anymore than the others, inclined to oblige her,
- that if Sir John dined from home, she might spend a whole
- day without hearing any other raillery on the subject,
- than what she was kind enough to bestow on herself.
-
- All these jealousies and discontents, however, were so
- totally unsuspected by Mrs. Jennings, that she thought
- it a delightful thing for the girls to be together;
- and generally congratulated her young friends every night,
- on having escaped the company of a stupid old woman so long.
- She joined them sometimes at Sir John's, sometimes
- at her own house; but wherever it was, she always came
- in excellent spirits, full of delight and importance,
- attributing Charlotte's well doing to her own care, and ready
- to give so exact, so minute a detail of her situation,
- as only Miss Steele had curiosity enough to desire.
- One thing DID disturb her; and of that she made her
- daily complaint. Mr. Palmer maintained the common,
- but unfatherly opinion among his sex, of all infants being alike;
- and though she could plainly perceive, at different times,
- the most striking resemblance between this baby and every
- one of his relations on both sides, there was no convincing
- his father of it; no persuading him to believe that it
- was not exactly like every other baby of the same age;
- nor could he even be brought to acknowledge the simple
- proposition of its being the finest child in the world.
-
- I come now to the relation of a misfortune,
- which about this time befell Mrs. John Dashwood.
- It so happened that while her two sisters with
- Mrs. Jennings were first calling on her in Harley Street,
- another of her acquaintance had dropt in--a circumstance
- in itself not apparently likely to produce evil to her.
- But while the imaginations of other people will carry
- them away to form wrong judgments of our conduct,
- and to decide on it by slight appearances, one's happiness
- must in some measure be always at the mercy of chance.
- In the present instance, this last-arrived lady allowed
- her fancy to so far outrun truth and probability,
- that on merely hearing the name of the Miss Dashwoods,
- and understanding them to be Mr. Dashwood's sisters,
- she immediately concluded them to be staying in Harley Street;
- and this misconstruction produced within a day
- or two afterwards, cards of invitation for them
- as well as for their brother and sister, to a small
- musical party at her house. The consequence of which was,
- that Mrs. John Dashwood was obliged to submit not only
- to the exceedingly great inconvenience of sending her
- carriage for the Miss Dashwoods, but, what was still worse,
- must be subject to all the unpleasantness of appearing
- to treat them with attention: and who could tell that they
- might not expect to go out with her a second time? The power
- of disappointing them, it was true, must always be her's.
- But that was not enough; for when people are determined
- on a mode of conduct which they know to be wrong, they feel
- injured by the expectation of any thing better from them.
-
- Marianne had now been brought by degrees, so much
- into the habit of going out every day, that it was become
- a matter of indifference to her, whether she went or not:
- and she prepared quietly and mechanically for every
- evening's engagement, though without expecting the smallest
- amusement from any, and very often without knowing,
- till the last moment, where it was to take her.
-
- To her dress and appearance she was grown so perfectly
- indifferent, as not to bestow half the consideration on it,
- during the whole of her toilet, which it received from
- Miss Steele in the first five minutes of their being
- together, when it was finished. Nothing escaped HER minute
- observation and general curiosity; she saw every thing,
- and asked every thing; was never easy till she knew the price
- of every part of Marianne's dress; could have guessed the
- number of her gowns altogether with better judgment than
- Marianne herself, and was not without hopes of finding out
- before they parted, how much her washing cost per week,
- and how much she had every year to spend upon herself.
- The impertinence of these kind of scrutinies, moreover,
- was generally concluded with a compliment, which
- though meant as its douceur, was considered by Marianne
- as the greatest impertinence of all; for after undergoing
- an examination into the value and make of her gown,
- the colour of her shoes, and the arrangement of her hair,
- she was almost sure of being told that upon "her word
- she looked vastly smart, and she dared to say she would
- make a great many conquests."
-
- With such encouragement as this, was she dismissed
- on the present occasion, to her brother's carriage;
- which they were ready to enter five minutes after it
- stopped at the door, a punctuality not very agreeable
- to their sister-in-law, who had preceded them to the house
- of her acquaintance, and was there hoping for some delay
- on their part that might inconvenience either herself
- or her coachman.
-
- The events of this evening were not very remarkable.
- The party, like other musical parties, comprehended a
- great many people who had real taste for the performance,
- and a great many more who had none at all; and the performers
- themselves were, as usual, in their own estimation,
- and that of their immediate friends, the first private
- performers in England.
-
- As Elinor was neither musical, nor affecting to be so,
- she made no scruple of turning her eyes from the grand
- pianoforte, whenever it suited her, and unrestrained even
- by the presence of a harp, and violoncello, would fix
- them at pleasure on any other object in the room. In one
- of these excursive glances she perceived among a group
- of young men, the very he, who had given them a lecture
- on toothpick-cases at Gray's. She perceived him soon
- afterwards looking at herself, and speaking familiarly
- to her brother; and had just determined to find out his
- name from the latter, when they both came towards her,
- and Mr. Dashwood introduced him to her as Mr. Robert Ferrars.
-
- He addressed her with easy civility, and twisted
- his head into a bow which assured her as plainly as
- words could have done, that he was exactly the coxcomb
- she had heard him described to be by Lucy. Happy had
- it been for her, if her regard for Edward had depended
- less on his own merit, than on the merit of his nearest
- relations! For then his brother's bow must have given
- the finishing stroke to what the ill-humour of his mother
- and sister would have begun. But while she wondered
- at the difference of the two young men, she did not find
- that the emptiness of conceit of the one, put her out
- of all charity with the modesty and worth of the other.
- Why they WERE different, Robert exclaimed to her himself
- in the course of a quarter of an hour's conversation;
- for, talking of his brother, and lamenting the extreme
- GAUCHERIE which he really believed kept him from mixing
- in proper society, he candidly and generously attributed it
- much less to any natural deficiency, than to the misfortune
- of a private education; while he himself, though probably
- without any particular, any material superiority
- by nature, merely from the advantage of a public school,
- was as well fitted to mix in the world as any other man.
-
- "Upon my soul," he added, "I believe it is nothing more;
- and so I often tell my mother, when she is grieving
- about it. 'My dear Madam,' I always say to her, 'you must
- make yourself easy. The evil is now irremediable,
- and it has been entirely your own doing. Why would
- you be persuaded by my uncle, Sir Robert, against your
- own judgment, to place Edward under private tuition,
- at the most critical time of his life? If you had only sent
- him to Westminster as well as myself, instead of sending
- him to Mr. Pratt's, all this would have been prevented.'
- This is the way in which I always consider the matter,
- and my mother is perfectly convinced of her error."
-
- Elinor would not oppose his opinion, because,
- whatever might be her general estimation of the advantage
- of a public school, she could not think of Edward's
- abode in Mr. Pratt's family, with any satisfaction.
-
- "You reside in Devonshire, I think,"--was his
- next observation, "in a cottage near Dawlish."
-
- Elinor set him right as to its situation;
- and it seemed rather surprising to him that anybody
- could live in Devonshire, without living near Dawlish.
- He bestowed his hearty approbation however on their
- species of house.
-
- "For my own part," said he, "I am excessively fond
- of a cottage; there is always so much comfort, so much
- elegance about them. And I protest, if I had any money
- to spare, I should buy a little land and build one myself,
- within a short distance of London, where I might drive
- myself down at any time, and collect a few friends
- about me, and be happy. I advise every body who is going
- to build, to build a cottage. My friend Lord Courtland
- came to me the other day on purpose to ask my advice,
- and laid before me three different plans of Bonomi's.
- I was to decide on the best of them. 'My dear Courtland,'
- said I, immediately throwing them all into the fire, 'do not
- adopt either of them, but by all means build a cottage.'
- And that I fancy, will be the end of it.
-
- "Some people imagine that there can be no accommodations,
- no space in a cottage; but this is all a mistake.
- I was last month at my friend Elliott's, near Dartford.
- Lady Elliott wished to give a dance. 'But how can it
- be done?' said she; 'my dear Ferrars, do tell me how it
- is to be managed. There is not a room in this cottage
- that will hold ten couple, and where can the supper be?'
- I immediately saw that there could be no difficulty in it,
- so I said, 'My dear Lady Elliott, do not be uneasy.
- The dining parlour will admit eighteen couple with ease;
- card-tables may be placed in the drawing-room; the library
- may be open for tea and other refreshments; and let the
- supper be set out in the saloon.' Lady Elliott was delighted
- with the thought. We measured the dining-room, and found
- it would hold exactly eighteen couple, and the affair
- was arranged precisely after my plan. So that, in fact,
- you see, if people do but know how to set about it,
- every comfort may be as well enjoyed in a cottage
- as in the most spacious dwelling."
-
- Elinor agreed to it all, for she did not think
- he deserved the compliment of rational opposition.
-
- As John Dashwood had no more pleasure in music than his
- eldest sister, his mind was equally at liberty to fix on
- any thing else; and a thought struck him during the evening,
- which he communicated to his wife, for her approbation,
- when they got home. The consideration of Mrs. Dennison's mistake,
- in supposing his sisters their guests, had suggested the
- propriety of their being really invited to become such,
- while Mrs. Jenning's engagements kept her from home.
- The expense would be nothing, the inconvenience not more;
- and it was altogether an attention which the delicacy
- of his conscience pointed out to be requisite to its
- complete enfranchisement from his promise to his father.
- Fanny was startled at the proposal.
-
- "I do not see how it can be done," said she,
- "without affronting Lady Middleton, for they spend every day
- with her; otherwise I should be exceedingly glad to do it.
- You know I am always ready to pay them any attention
- in my power, as my taking them out this evening shews.
- But they are Lady Middleton's visitors. How can I ask them
- away from her?"
-
- Her husband, but with great humility, did not see
- the force of her objection. "They had already spent a week
- in this manner in Conduit Street, and Lady Middleton
- could not be displeased at their giving the same number
- of days to such near relations."
-
- Fanny paused a moment, and then, with fresh vigor, said,
-
- "My love I would ask them with all my heart, if it
- was in my power. But I had just settled within myself
- to ask the Miss Steeles to spend a few days with us.
- They are very well behaved, good kind of girls; and I think
- the attention is due to them, as their uncle did so very
- well by Edward. We can ask your sisters some other year,
- you know; but the Miss Steeles may not be in town any more.
- I am sure you will like them; indeed, you DO like them,
- you know, very much already, and so does my mother; and they
- are such favourites with Harry!"
-
- Mr. Dashwood was convinced. He saw the necessity
- of inviting the Miss Steeles immediately, and his conscience
- was pacified by the resolution of inviting his sisters
- another year; at the same time, however, slyly suspecting
- that another year would make the invitation needless,
- by bringing Elinor to town as Colonel Brandon's wife,
- and Marianne as THEIR visitor.
-
- Fanny, rejoicing in her escape, and proud of the ready
- wit that had procured it, wrote the next morning to Lucy,
- to request her company and her sister's, for some days,
- in Harley Street, as soon as Lady Middleton could spare them.
- This was enough to make Lucy really and reasonably happy.
- Mrs. Dashwood seemed actually working for her, herself;
- cherishing all her hopes, and promoting all her views!
- Such an opportunity of being with Edward and his family was,
- above all things, the most material to her interest,
- and such an invitation the most gratifying to her
- feelings! It was an advantage that could not be too
- gratefully acknowledged, nor too speedily made use of;
- and the visit to Lady Middleton, which had not before had
- any precise limits, was instantly discovered to have been
- always meant to end in two days' time.
-
- When the note was shown to Elinor, as it was within ten
- minutes after its arrival, it gave her, for the first time,
- some share in the expectations of Lucy; for such a mark
- of uncommon kindness, vouchsafed on so short an acquaintance,
- seemed to declare that the good-will towards her arose
- from something more than merely malice against herself;
- and might be brought, by time and address, to do
- every thing that Lucy wished. Her flattery had already
- subdued the pride of Lady Middleton, and made an entry
- into the close heart of Mrs. John Dashwood; and these
- were effects that laid open the probability of greater.
-
- The Miss Steeles removed to Harley Street, and all
- that reached Elinor of their influence there, strengthened
- her expectation of the event. Sir John, who called on
- them more than once, brought home such accounts of the
- favour they were in, as must be universally striking.
- Mrs. Dashwood had never been so much pleased with any
- young women in her life, as she was with them; had given
- each of them a needle book made by some emigrant;
- called Lucy by her Christian name; and did not know
- whether she should ever be able to part with them.
-
-
-
-
-
- [At this point in the first and second edtions, Volume II ended.]
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER 37
-
-
- Mrs. Palmer was so well at the end of a fortnight,
- that her mother felt it no longer necessary to give up
- the whole of her time to her; and, contenting herself with
- visiting her once or twice a day, returned from that period
- to her own home, and her own habits, in which she found
- the Miss Dashwoods very ready to ressume their former share.
-
- About the third or fourth morning after their
- being thus resettled in Berkeley Street, Mrs. Jennings,
- on returning from her ordinary visit to Mrs. Palmer,
- entered the drawing-room, where Elinor was sitting
- by herself, with an air of such hurrying importance
- as prepared her to hear something wonderful; and giving her
- time only to form that idea, began directly to justify it,
- by saying,
-
- "Lord! my dear Miss Dashwood! have you heard the news?"
-
- "No, ma'am. What is it?"
-
- "Something so strange! But you shall hear it all.--
- When I got to Mr. Palmer's, I found Charlotte quite
- in a fuss about the child. She was sure it was very
- ill--it cried, and fretted, and was all over pimples.
- So I looked at it directly, and, 'Lord! my dear,'
- says I, 'it is nothing in the world, but the red gum--'
- and nurse said just the same. But Charlotte, she would
- not be satisfied, so Mr. Donavan was sent for; and luckily
- he happened to just come in from Harley Street, so he
- stepped over directly, and as soon as ever he saw the child,
- be said just as we did, that it was nothing in the world
- but the red gum, and then Charlotte was easy. And so,
- just as he was going away again, it came into my head,
- I am sure I do not know how I happened to think of it,
- but it came into my head to ask him if there was any news.
- So upon that, he smirked, and simpered, and looked grave,
- and seemed to know something or other, and at last he
- said in a whisper, 'For fear any unpleasant report
- should reach the young ladies under your care as to their
- sister's indisposition, I think it advisable to say,
- that I believe there is no great reason for alarm; I hope
- Mrs. Dashwood will do very well.'"
-
- "What! is Fanny ill?"
-
- "That is exactly what I said, my dear. 'Lord!' says I,
- 'is Mrs. Dashwood ill?' So then it all came out; and the
- long and the short of the matter, by all I can learn,
- seems to be this. Mr. Edward Ferrars, the very young
- man I used to joke with you about (but however, as it
- turns out, I am monstrous glad there was never any thing
- in it), Mr. Edward Ferrars, it seems, has been engaged
- above this twelvemonth to my cousin Lucy!--There's for you,
- my dear!--And not a creature knowing a syllable of the matter,
- except Nancy!--Could you have believed such a thing possible?--
- There is no great wonder in their liking one another;
- but that matters should be brought so forward between them,
- and nobody suspect it!--THAT is strange!--I never happened
- to see them together, or I am sure I should have found it
- out directly. Well, and so this was kept a great secret,
- for fear of Mrs. Ferrars, and neither she nor your
- brother or sister suspected a word of the matter;--
- till this very morning, poor Nancy, who, you know, is a
- well-meaning creature, but no conjurer, popt it all out.
- 'Lord!' thinks she to herself, 'they are all so fond
- of Lucy, to be sure they will make no difficulty about it;'
- and so, away she went to your sister, who was sitting all
- alone at her carpet-work, little suspecting what was to
- come--for she had just been saying to your brother, only five
- minutes before, that she thought to make a match between
- Edward and some Lord's daughter or other, I forget who.
- So you may think what a blow it was to all her vanity
- and pride. She fell into violent hysterics immediately,
- with such screams as reached your brother's ears,
- as he was sitting in his own dressing-room down stairs,
- thinking about writing a letter to his steward in the country.
- So up he flew directly, and a terrible scene took place,
- for Lucy was come to them by that time, little dreaming
- what was going on. Poor soul! I pity HER. And I must say,
- I think she was used very hardly; for your sister scolded
- like any fury, and soon drove her into a fainting fit.
- Nancy, she fell upon her knees, and cried bitterly;
- and your brother, he walked about the room, and said
- he did not know what to do. Mrs. Dashwood declared
- they should not stay a minute longer in the house,
- and your brother was forced to go down upon HIS knees too,
- to persuade her to let them stay till they had packed
- up their clothes. THEN she fell into hysterics again,
- and he was so frightened that he would send for Mr. Donavan,
- and Mr. Donavan found the house in all this uproar.
- The carriage was at the door ready to take my poor
- cousins away, and they were just stepping in as he
- came off; poor Lucy in such a condition, he says,
- she could hardly walk; and Nancy, she was almost as bad.
- I declare, I have no patience with your sister; and I hope,
- with all my heart, it will be a match in spite of her.
- Lord! what a taking poor Mr. Edward will be in when he
- hears of it! To have his love used so scornfully! for
- they say he is monstrous fond of her, as well he may.
- I should not wonder, if he was to be in the greatest
- passion!--and Mr. Donavan thinks just the same. He and I
- had a great deal of talk about it; and the best of all is,
- that he is gone back again to Harley Street, that he may
- be within call when Mrs. Ferrars is told of it, for she
- was sent for as soon as ever my cousins left the house,
- for your sister was sure SHE would be in hysterics too;
- and so she may, for what I care. I have no pity for
- either of them. I have no notion of people's making
- such a to-do about money and greatness. There is no
- reason on earth why Mr. Edward and Lucy should not marry;
- for I am sure Mrs. Ferrars may afford to do very well
- by her son, and though Lucy has next to nothing herself,
- she knows better than any body how to make the most
- of every thing; I dare say, if Mrs. Ferrars would only
- allow him five hundred a-year, she would make as good
- an appearance with it as any body else would with eight.
- Lord! how snug they might live in such another cottage
- as yours--or a little bigger--with two maids, and two men;
- and I believe I could help them to a housemaid, for my
- Betty has a sister out of place, that would fit them
- exactly."
-
- Here Mrs. Jennings ceased, and as Elinor had had
- time enough to collect her thoughts, she was able
- to give such an answer, and make such observations,
- as the subject might naturally be supposed to produce.
- Happy to find that she was not suspected of any extraordinary
- interest in it; that Mrs. Jennings (as she had of late
- often hoped might be the case) had ceased to imagine her
- at all attached to Edward; and happy above all the rest,
- in the absence of Marianne, she felt very well able
- to speak of the affair without embarrassment, and to
- give her judgment, as she believed, with impartiality
- on the conduct of every one concerned in it.
-
- She could hardly determine what her own expectation
- of its event really was; though she earnestly tried
- to drive away the notion of its being possible to end
- otherwise at last, than in the marriage of Edward and Lucy.
- What Mrs. Ferrars would say and do, though there could
- not be a doubt of its nature, she was anxious to hear;
- and still more anxious to know how Edward would
- conduct himself. For HIM she felt much compassion;--
- for Lucy very little--and it cost her some pains to procure
- that little;--for the rest of the party none at all.
-
- As Mrs. Jennings could talk on no other subject,
- Elinor soon saw the necessity of preparing Marianne for
- its discussion. No time was to be lost in undeceiving her,
- in making her acquainted with the real truth, and in
- endeavouring to bring her to hear it talked of by others,
- without betraying that she felt any uneasiness for her sister,
- or any resentment against Edward.
-
- Elinor's office was a painful one.--She was going
- to remove what she really believed to be her sister's
- chief consolation,--to give such particulars of Edward as she
- feared would ruin him for ever in her good opinion,-and
- to make Marianne, by a resemblance in their situations,
- which to HER fancy would seem strong, feel all her own
- disappointment over again. But unwelcome as such a task
- must be, it was necessary to be done, and Elinor therefore
- hastened to perform it.
-
- She was very far from wishing to dwell on her own
- feelings, or to represent herself as suffering much,
- any otherwise than as the self-command she had practised
- since her first knowledge of Edward's engagement, might
- suggest a hint of what was practicable to Marianne.
- Her narration was clear and simple; and though it could
- not be given without emotion, it was not accompanied
- by violent agitation, nor impetuous grief.--THAT belonged
- rather to the hearer, for Marianne listened with horror,
- and cried excessively. Elinor was to be the comforter
- of others in her own distresses, no less than in theirs;
- and all the comfort that could be given by assurances
- of her own composure of mind, and a very earnest
- vindication of Edward from every charge but of imprudence,
- was readily offered.
-
- But Marianne for some time would give credit to neither.
- Edward seemed a second Willoughby; and acknowledging
- as Elinor did, that she HAD loved him most sincerely,
- could she feel less than herself! As for Lucy Steele,
- she considered her so totally unamiable, so absolutely
- incapable of attaching a sensible man, that she could
- not be persuaded at first to believe, and afterwards
- to pardon, any former affection of Edward for her.
- She would not even admit it to have been natural;
- and Elinor left her to be convinced that it was so,
- by that which only could convince her, a better knowledge
- of mankind.
-
- Her first communication had reached no farther than
- to state the fact of the engagement, and the length of time
- it had existed.--Marianne's feelings had then broken in,
- and put an end to all regularity of detail; and for some
- time all that could be done was to soothe her distress,
- lessen her alarms, and combat her resentment. The first
- question on her side, which led to farther particulars,
- was,
-
- "How long has this been known to you, Elinor? has
- he written to you?"
-
- "I have known it these four months. When Lucy
- first came to Barton Park last November, she told me
- in confidence of her engagement."
-
- At these words, Marianne's eyes expressed the astonishment
- which her lips could not utter. After a pause of wonder,
- she exclaimed--
-
- "Four months!--Have you known of this four months?"
-
- Elinor confirmed it.
-
- "What!--while attending me in all my misery, has this
- been on your heart?--And I have reproached you for being happy!"--
-
- "It was not fit that you should then know how much
- I was the reverse!"
-
- "Four months!"--cried Marianne again.--"So calm!--
- so cheerful!--how have you been supported?"--
-
- "By feeling that I was doing my duty.--My promise to
- Lucy, obliged me to be secret. I owed it to her, therefore,
- to avoid giving any hint of the truth; and I owed it to my
- family and friends, not to create in them a solicitude about me,
- which it could not be in my power to satisfy."
-
- Marianne seemed much struck.
-
- "I have very often wished to undeceive yourself and my
- mother," added Elinor; "and once or twice I have attempted it;--
- but without betraying my trust, I never could have convinced you."
-
- "Four months!--and yet you loved him!"--
-
- "Yes. But I did not love only him;--and while the comfort
- of others was dear to me, I was glad to spare them from knowing
- how much I felt. Now, I can think and speak of it with
- little emotion. I would not have you suffer on my account;
- for I assure you I no longer suffer materially myself.
- I have many things to support me. I am not conscious of having
- provoked the disappointment by any imprudence of my own,
- I have borne it as much as possible without spreading
- it farther. I acquit Edward of essential misconduct.
- I wish him very happy; and I am so sure of his always
- doing his duty, that though now he may harbour some regret,
- in the end he must become so. Lucy does not want sense,
- and that is the foundation on which every thing good may
- be built.--And after all, Marianne, after all that is
- bewitching in the idea of a single and constant attachment,
- and all that can be said of one's happiness depending
- entirely on any particular person, it is not meant--it
- is not fit--it is not possible that it should be so.--
- Edward will marry Lucy; he will marry a woman superior
- in person and understanding to half her sex; and time
- and habit will teach him to forget that he ever thought
- another superior to HER."--
-
- "If such is your way of thinking," said Marianne,
- "if the loss of what is most valued is so easily
- to be made up by something else, your resolution,
- your self-command, are, perhaps, a little less to be
- wondered at.--They are brought more within my comprehension."
-
- "I understand you.--You do not suppose that I have ever
- felt much.--For four months, Marianne, I have had all this
- hanging on my mind, without being at liberty to speak
- of it to a single creature; knowing that it would make
- you and my mother most unhappy whenever it were explained
- to you, yet unable to prepare you for it in the least.--
- It was told me,--it was in a manner forced on me by the
- very person herself, whose prior engagement ruined all
- my prospects; and told me, as I thought, with triumph.--
- This person's suspicions, therefore, I have had to oppose,
- by endeavouring to appear indifferent where I have been most
- deeply interested;--and it has not been only once;--I have
- had her hopes and exultation to listen to again and again.--
- I have known myself to be divided from Edward for ever,
- without hearing one circumstance that could make me less
- desire the connection.--Nothing has proved him unworthy;
- nor has anything declared him indifferent to me.--
- I have had to contend against the unkindness of his sister,
- and the insolence of his mother; and have suffered the
- punishment of an attachment, without enjoying its advantages.--
- And all this has been going on at a time, when, as you
- know too well, it has not been my only unhappiness.--
- If you can think me capable of ever feeling--surely you
- may suppose that I have suffered NOW. The composure
- of mind with which I have brought myself at present
- to consider the matter, the consolation that I have been
- willing to admit, have been the effect of constant and
- painful exertion;--they did not spring up of themselves;--
- they did not occur to relieve my spirits at first.--
- No, Marianne.--THEN, if I had not been bound to silence,
- perhaps nothing could have kept me entirely--not even what I
- owed to my dearest friends--from openly shewing that I was
- VERY unhappy."--
-
- Marianne was quite subdued.--
-
- "Oh! Elinor," she cried, "you have made me hate
- myself for ever.--How barbarous have I been to you!--
- you, who have been my only comfort, who have borne with me
- in all my misery, who have seemed to be only suffering
- for me!--Is this my gratitude?--Is this the only return I
- can make you?--Because your merit cries out upon myself,
- I have been trying to do it away."
-
- The tenderest caresses followed this confession.
- In such a frame of mind as she was now in, Elinor had
- no difficulty in obtaining from her whatever promise
- she required; and at her request, Marianne engaged
- never to speak of the affair to any one with the least
- appearance of bitterness;--to meet Lucy without betraying
- the smallest increase of dislike to her;--and even to see
- Edward himself, if chance should bring them together,
- without any diminution of her usual cordiality.--
- These were great concessions;--but where Marianne felt
- that she had injured, no reparation could be too much
- for her to make.
-
- She performed her promise of being discreet,
- to admiration.--She attended to all that Mrs. Jennings
- had to say upon the subject, with an unchanging complexion,
- dissented from her in nothing, and was heard three
- times to say, "Yes, ma'am."--She listened to her praise
- of Lucy with only moving from one chair to another,
- and when Mrs. Jennings talked of Edward's affection,
- it cost her only a spasm in her throat.--Such advances
- towards heroism in her sister, made Elinor feel equal
- to any thing herself.
-
- The next morning brought a farther trial of it,
- in a visit from their brother, who came with a most serious
- aspect to talk over the dreadful affair, and bring them
- news of his wife.
-
- "You have heard, I suppose," said he with great solemnity,
- as soon as he was seated, "of the very shocking discovery
- that took place under our roof yesterday."
-
- They all looked their assent; it seemed too awful
- a moment for speech.
-
- "Your sister," he continued, "has suffered dreadfully.
- Mrs. Ferrars too--in short it has been a scene of such
- complicated distress--but I will hope that the storm may
- be weathered without our being any of us quite overcome.
- Poor Fanny! she was in hysterics all yesterday.
- But I would not alarm you too much. Donavan says there
- is nothing materially to be apprehended; her constitution
- is a good one, and her resolution equal to any thing.
- She has borne it all, with the fortitude of an angel!
- She says she never shall think well of anybody again;
- and one cannot wonder at it, after being so deceived!--
- meeting with such ingratitude, where so much kindness
- had been shewn, so much confidence had been placed! It
- was quite out of the benevolence of her heart, that she
- had asked these young women to her house; merely because
- she thought they deserved some attention, were harmless,
- well-behaved girls, and would be pleasant companions;
- for otherwise we both wished very much to have invited you
- and Marianne to be with us, while your kind friend there,
- was attending her daughter. And now to be so rewarded!
- 'I wish, with all my heart,' says poor Fanny in her
- affectionate way, 'that we had asked your sisters instead
- of them.'"
-
- Here he stopped to be thanked; which being done,
- he went on.
-
- "What poor Mrs. Ferrars suffered, when first Fanny
- broke it to her, is not to be described. While she with
- the truest affection had been planning a most eligible
- connection for him, was it to be supposed that he could
- be all the time secretly engaged to another person!--such
- a suspicion could never have entered her head! If she
- suspected ANY prepossession elsewhere, it could not be
- in THAT quarter. 'THERE, to be sure,' said she, 'I might
- have thought myself safe.' She was quite in an agony.
- We consulted together, however, as to what should be done,
- and at last she determined to send for Edward.
- He came. But I am sorry to relate what ensued.
- All that Mrs. Ferrars could say to make him put an end
- to the engagement, assisted too as you may well suppose
- by my arguments, and Fanny's entreaties, was of
- no avail. Duty, affection, every thing was disregarded.
- I never thought Edward so stubborn, so unfeeling before.
- His mother explained to him her liberal designs, in case
- of his marrying Miss Morton; told him she would settle on
- him the Norfolk estate, which, clear of land-tax, brings
- in a good thousand a-year; offered even, when matters
- grew desperate, to make it twelve hundred; and in opposition
- to this, if he still persisted in this low connection,
- represented to him the certain penury that must attend
- the match. His own two thousand pounds she protested
- should be his all; she would never see him again; and so far
- would she be from affording him the smallest assistance,
- that if he were to enter into any profession with a view
- of better support, she would do all in her power to prevent
- him advancing in it."
-
- Here Marianne, in an ecstasy of indignation,
- clapped her hands together, and cried, "Gracious God!
- can this be possible!"
-
- "Well may you wonder, Marianne," replied her brother,
- "at the obstinacy which could resist such arguments as these.
- Your exclamation is very natural."
-
- Marianne was going to retort, but she remembered
- her promises, and forbore.
-
- "All this, however," he continued, "was urged in vain.
- Edward said very little; but what he did say, was in
- the most determined manner. Nothing should prevail on
- him to give up his engagement. He would stand to it,
- cost him what it might."
-
- "Then," cried Mrs. Jennings with blunt sincerity,
- no longer able to be silent, "he has acted like an honest
- man! I beg your pardon, Mr. Dashwood, but if he had
- done otherwise, I should have thought him a rascal.
- I have some little concern in the business, as well
- as yourself, for Lucy Steele is my cousin, and I believe
- there is not a better kind of girl in the world, nor one
- who more deserves a good husband."
-
- John Dashwood was greatly astonished; but his nature
- was calm, not open to provocation, and he never wished
- to offend anybody, especially anybody of good fortune.
- He therefore replied, without any resentment,
-
- "I would by no means speak disrespectfully of any
- relation of yours, madam. Miss Lucy Steele is, I dare say,
- a very deserving young woman, but in the present case
- you know, the connection must be impossible.
- And to have entered into a secret engagement with a
- young man under her uncle's care, the son of a woman
- especially of such very large fortune as Mrs. Ferrars,
- is perhaps, altogether a little extraordinary. In short,
- I do not mean to reflect upon the behaviour of any person
- whom you have a regard for, Mrs. Jennings. We all wish
- her extremely happy; and Mrs. Ferrars's conduct throughout
- the whole, has been such as every conscientious, good mother,
- in like circumstances, would adopt. It has been dignified
- and liberal. Edward has drawn his own lot, and I fear
- it will be a bad one."
-
- Marianne sighed out her similar apprehension;
- and Elinor's heart wrung for the feelings of Edward,
- while braving his mother's threats, for a woman who could
- not reward him.
-
- "Well, sir," said Mrs. Jennings, "and how did it end?"
-
- "I am sorry to say, ma'am, in a most unhappy rupture:--
- Edward is dismissed for ever from his mother's notice.
- He left her house yesterday, but where he is gone, or whether
- he is still in town, I do not know; for WE of course can
- make no inquiry."
-
- "Poor young man!--and what is to become of him?"
-
- "What, indeed, ma'am! It is a melancholy consideration.
- Born to the prospect of such affluence! I cannot conceive
- a situation more deplorable. The interest of two thousand
- pounds--how can a man live on it?--and when to that is added
- the recollection, that he might, but for his own folly,
- within three months have been in the receipt of two
- thousand, five hundred a-year (for Miss Morton has
- thirty thousand pounds,) I cannot picture to myself
- a more wretched condition. We must all feel for him;
- and the more so, because it is totally out of our power
- to assist him."
-
- "Poor young man!" cried Mrs. Jennings, "I am sure
- he should be very welcome to bed and board at my house;
- and so I would tell him if I could see him. It is not fit
- that he should be living about at his own charge now,
- at lodgings and taverns."
-
- Elinor's heart thanked her for such kindness towards Edward,
- though she could not forbear smiling at the form of it.
-
- "If he would only have done as well by himself,"
- said John Dashwood, "as all his friends were disposed to do
- by him, he might now have been in his proper situation,
- and would have wanted for nothing. But as it is, it must
- be out of anybody's power to assist him. And there is one
- thing more preparing against him, which must be worse than
- all--his mother has determined, with a very natural kind
- of spirit, to settle THAT estate upon Robert immediately,
- which might have been Edward's, on proper conditions.
- I left her this morning with her lawyer, talking over
- the business."
-
- "Well!" said Mrs. Jennings, "that is HER revenge.
- Everybody has a way of their own. But I don't think mine
- would be, to make one son independent, because another had
- plagued me."
-
- Marianne got up and walked about the room.
-
- "Can anything be more galling to the spirit of a man,"
- continued John, "than to see his younger brother in
- possession of an estate which might have been his own?
- Poor Edward! I feel for him sincerely."
-
- A few minutes more spent in the same kind of effusion,
- concluded his visit; and with repeated assurances to his
- sisters that he really believed there was no material
- danger in Fanny's indisposition, and that they need
- not therefore be very uneasy about it, he went away;
- leaving the three ladies unanimous in their sentiments
- on the present occasion, as far at least as it regarded
- Mrs. Ferrars's conduct, the Dashwoods', and Edward's.
-
- Marianne's indignation burst forth as soon as he
- quitted the room; and as her vehemence made reserve
- impossible in Elinor, and unnecessary in Mrs. Jennings,
- they all joined in a very spirited critique upon the party.
-
-
-
- CHAPTER 38
-
-
- Mrs. Jennings was very warm in her praise of Edward's
- conduct, but only Elinor and Marianne understood its
- true merit. THEY only knew how little he had had to tempt
- him to be disobedient, and how small was the consolation,
- beyond the consciousness of doing right, that could
- remain to him in the loss of friends and fortune.
- Elinor gloried in his integrity; and Marianne forgave all
- his offences in compassion for his punishment. But though
- confidence between them was, by this public discovery,
- restored to its proper state, it was not a subject on
- which either of them were fond of dwelling when alone.
- Elinor avoided it upon principle, as tending to fix still
- more upon her thoughts, by the too warm, too positive
- assurances of Marianne, that belief of Edward's continued
- affection for herself which she rather wished to do away;
- and Marianne's courage soon failed her, in trying
- to converse upon a topic which always left her more
- dissatisfied with herself than ever, by the comparison
- it necessarily produced between Elinor's conduct and her own.
-
- She felt all the force of that comparison; but not
- as her sister had hoped, to urge her to exertion now;
- she felt it with all the pain of continual self-reproach,
- regretted most bitterly that she had never exerted
- herself before; but it brought only the torture of penitence,
- without the hope of amendment. Her mind was so much weakened
- that she still fancied present exertion impossible,
- and therefore it only dispirited her more.
-
- Nothing new was heard by them, for a day or two afterwards,
- of affairs in Harley Street, or Bartlett's Buildings.
- But though so much of the matter was known to them already,
- that Mrs. Jennings might have had enough to do in spreading
- that knowledge farther, without seeking after more,
- she had resolved from the first to pay a visit of comfort
- and inquiry to her cousins as soon as she could;
- and nothing but the hindrance of more visitors than usual,
- had prevented her going to them within that time.
-
- The third day succeeding their knowledge of the
- particulars, was so fine, so beautiful a Sunday as to draw
- many to Kensington Gardens, though it was only the second
- week in March. Mrs. Jennings and Elinor were of the number;
- but Marianne, who knew that the Willoughbys were again
- in town, and had a constant dread of meeting them,
- chose rather to stay at home, than venture into so public
- a place.
-
- An intimate acquaintance of Mrs. Jennings joined
- them soon after they entered the Gardens, and Elinor was
- not sorry that by her continuing with them, and engaging
- all Mrs. Jennings's conversation, she was herself left
- to quiet reflection. She saw nothing of the Willoughbys,
- nothing of Edward, and for some time nothing of anybody
- who could by any chance whether grave or gay, be interesting
- to her. But at last she found herself with some surprise,
- accosted by Miss Steele, who, though looking rather shy,
- expressed great satisfaction in meeting them, and on receiving
- encouragement from the particular kindness of Mrs. Jennings,
- left her own party for a short time, to join their's.
- Mrs. Jennings immediately whispered to Elinor,
-
- "Get it all out of her, my dear. She will tell you
- any thing if you ask. You see I cannot leave Mrs. Clarke."
-
- It was lucky, however, for Mrs. Jennings's curiosity
- and Elinor's too, that she would tell any thing WITHOUT
- being asked; for nothing would otherwise have been learnt.
-
- "I am so glad to meet you;" said Miss Steele,
- taking her familiarly by the arm--"for I wanted to see you
- of all things in the world." And then lowering her voice,
- "I suppose Mrs. Jennings has heard all about it.
- Is she angry?"
-
- "Not at all, I believe, with you."
-
- "That is a good thing. And Lady Middleton, is SHE angry?"
-
- "I cannot suppose it possible that she should."
-
- "I am monstrous glad of it. Good gracious! I have
- had such a time of it! I never saw Lucy in such a rage
- in my life. She vowed at first she would never trim me
- up a new bonnet, nor do any thing else for me again,
- so long as she lived; but now she is quite come to,
- and we are as good friends as ever. Look, she made me
- this bow to my hat, and put in the feather last night.
- There now, YOU are going to laugh at me too. But why
- should not I wear pink ribbons? I do not care if it IS
- the Doctor's favourite colour. I am sure, for my part,
- I should never have known he DID like it better than
- any other colour, if he had not happened to say so.
- My cousins have been so plaguing me! I declare sometimes
- I do not know which way to look before them."
-
- She had wandered away to a subject on which Elinor
- had nothing to say, and therefore soon judged it expedient
- to find her way back again to the first.
-
- "Well, but Miss Dashwood," speaking triumphantly,
- "people may say what they chuse about Mr. Ferrars's
- declaring he would not have Lucy, for it is no such thing
- I can tell you; and it is quite a shame for such ill-natured
- reports to be spread abroad. Whatever Lucy might think
- about it herself, you know, it was no business of other
- people to set it down for certain."
-
- "I never heard any thing of the kind hinted at before,
- I assure you," said Elinor.
-
- "Oh, did not you? But it WAS said, I know, very well,
- and by more than one; for Miss Godby told Miss Sparks,
- that nobody in their senses could expect Mr. Ferrars
- to give up a woman like Miss Morton, with thirty thousand
- pounds to her fortune, for Lucy Steele that had
- nothing at all; and I had it from Miss Sparks myself.
- And besides that, my cousin Richard said himself,
- that when it came to the point he was afraid Mr. Ferrars
- would be off; and when Edward did not come near us
- for three days, I could not tell what to think myself;
- and I believe in my heart Lucy gave it up all for lost;
- for we came away from your brother's Wednesday,
- and we saw nothing of him not all Thursday, Friday,
- and Saturday, and did not know what was become of him.
- Once Lucy thought to write to him, but then her spirits
- rose against that. However this morning he came just
- as we came home from church; and then it all came out,
- how he had been sent for Wednesday to Harley Street,
- and been talked to by his mother and all of them,
- and how he had declared before them all that he loved
- nobody but Lucy, and nobody but Lucy would he have.
- And how he had been so worried by what passed,
- that as soon as he had went away from his mother's house,
- he had got upon his horse, and rid into the country,
- some where or other; and how he had stayed about at an inn
- all Thursday and Friday, on purpose to get the better
- of it. And after thinking it all over and over again,
- he said, it seemed to him as if, now he had no fortune,
- and no nothing at all, it would be quite unkind to keep
- her on to the engagement, because it must be for her loss,
- for he had nothing but two thousand pounds, and no hope
- of any thing else; and if he was to go into orders,
- as he had some thoughts, he could get nothing but a curacy,
- and how was they to live upon that?--He could not bear
- to think of her doing no better, and so he begged,
- if she had the least mind for it, to put an end to the
- matter directly, and leave him shift for himself.
- I heard him say all this as plain as could possibly be.
- And it was entirely for HER sake, and upon HER account,
- that he said a word about being off, and not upon his own.
- I will take my oath he never dropt a syllable of being
- tired of her, or of wishing to marry Miss Morton, or any
- thing like it. But, to be sure, Lucy would not give
- ear to such kind of talking; so she told him directly
- (with a great deal about sweet and love, you know,
- and all that--Oh, la! one can't repeat such kind of things
- you know)--she told him directly, she had not the least
- mind in the world to be off, for she could live with him
- upon a trifle, and how little so ever he might have,
- she should be very glad to have it all, you know,
- or something of the kind. So then he was monstrous happy,
- and talked on some time about what they should do,
- and they agreed he should take orders directly,
- and they must wait to be married till he got a living.
- And just then I could not hear any more, for my cousin
- called from below to tell me Mrs. Richardson was come in
- her coach, and would take one of us to Kensington Gardens;
- so I was forced to go into the room and interrupt them,
- to ask Lucy if she would like to go, but she did not
- care to leave Edward; so I just run up stairs and put
- on a pair of silk stockings and came off with the
- Richardsons."
-
- "I do not understand what you mean by interrupting them,"
- said Elinor; "you were all in the same room together,
- were not you?"
-
- "No, indeed, not us. La! Miss Dashwood, do you
- think people make love when any body else is by? Oh,
- for shame!--To be sure you must know better than that.
- (Laughing affectedly.)--No, no; they were shut up in the
- drawing-room together, and all I heard was only by listening
- at the door."
-
- "How!" cried Elinor; "have you been repeating to me
- what you only learnt yourself by listening at the door?
- I am sorry I did not know it before; for I certainly
- would not have suffered you to give me particulars of a
- conversation which you ought not to have known yourself.
- How could you behave so unfairly by your sister?"
-
- "Oh, la! there is nothing in THAT. I only stood at
- the door, and heard what I could. And I am sure Lucy would
- have done just the same by me; for a year or two back,
- when Martha Sharpe and I had so many secrets together,
- she never made any bones of hiding in a closet, or behind
- a chimney-board, on purpose to hear what we said."
-
- Elinor tried to talk of something else; but Miss
- Steele could not be kept beyond a couple of minutes,
- from what was uppermost in her mind.
-
- "Edward talks of going to Oxford soon," said she;
- "but now he is lodging at No. --, Pall Mall. What an
- ill-natured woman his monther is, an't she? And your
- brother and sister were not very kind! However,
- I shan't say anything against them to YOU; and to be sure
- they did send us home in their own chariot, which
- was more than I looked for. And for my part, I was all
- in a fright for fear your sister should ask us for the
- huswifes she had gave us a day or two before; but, however,
- nothing was said about them, and I took care to keep mine
- out of sight. Edward have got some business at Oxford,
- he says; so he must go there for a time; and after THAT,
- as soon as he can light upon a Bishop, he will be ordained.
- I wonder what curacy he will get!--Good gracious!
- (giggling as she spoke) I'd lay my life I know what
- my cousins will say, when they hear of it. They will
- tell me I should write to the Doctor, to get Edward
- the curacy of his new living. I know they will; but I am
- sure I would not do such a thing for all the world.--
- 'La!' I shall say directly, 'I wonder how you could think
- of such a thing? I write to the Doctor, indeed!'"
-
- "Well," said Elinor, "it is a comfort to be prepared
- against the worst. You have got your answer ready."
-
- Miss Steele was going to reply on the same subject,
- but the approach of her own party made another more necessary.
-
- "Oh, la! here come the Richardsons. I had a vast deal
- more to say to you, but I must not stay away from them not
- any longer. I assure you they are very genteel people.
- He makes a monstrous deal of money, and they keep their
- own coach. I have not time to speak to Mrs. Jennings about
- it myself, but pray tell her I am quite happy to hear she
- is not in anger against us, and Lady Middleton the same;
- and if anything should happen to take you and your
- sister away, and Mrs. Jennings should want company,
- I am sure we should be very glad to come and stay with her
- for as long a time as she likes. I suppose Lady Middleton
- won't ask us any more this bout. Good-by; I am sorry
- Miss Marianne was not here. Remember me kindly to her.
- La! if you have not got your spotted muslin on!--I wonder
- you was not afraid of its being torn."
-
- Such was her parting concern; for after this, she had
- time only to pay her farewell compliments to Mrs. Jennings,
- before her company was claimed by Mrs. Richardson;
- and Elinor was left in possession of knowledge which
- might feed her powers of reflection some time, though she
- had learnt very little more than what had been already
- foreseen and foreplanned in her own mind. Edward's marriage
- with Lucy was as firmly determined on, and the time
- of its taking place remained as absolutely uncertain,
- as she had concluded it would be;--every thing depended,
- exactly after her expectation, on his getting that preferment,
- of which, at present, there seemed not the smallest chance.
-
- As soon as they returned to the carriage,
- Mrs. Jennings was eager for information; but as Elinor
- wished to spread as little as possible intelligence
- that had in the first place been so unfairly obtained,
- she confined herself to the brief repetition of such
- simple particulars, as she felt assured that Lucy,
- for the sake of her own consequence, would choose
- to have known. The continuance of their engagement,
- and the means that were able to be taken for promoting
- its end, was all her communication; and this produced
- from Mrs. Jennings the following natural remark.
-
- "Wait for his having a living!--ay, we all know how
- THAT will end:--they will wait a twelvemonth, and finding
- no good comes of it, will set down upon a curacy of fifty
- pounds a-year, with the interest of his two thousand pounds,
- and what little matter Mr. Steele and Mr. Pratt can
- give her.--Then they will have a child every year! and
- Lord help 'em! how poor they will be!--I must see
- what I can give them towards furnishing their house.
- Two maids and two men, indeed!--as I talked of t'other
- day.--No, no, they must get a stout girl of all works.--
- Betty's sister would never do for them NOW."
-
- The next morning brought Elinor a letter by the
- two-penny post from Lucy herself. It was as follows:
-
- "Bartlett's Building, March.
-
- "I hope my dear Miss Dashwood will excuse the
- liberty I take of writing to her; but I know your
- friendship for me will make you pleased to hear such
- a good account of myself and my dear Edward, after
- all the troubles we have went through lately,
- therefore will make no more apologies, but proceed
- to say that, thank God! though we have suffered
- dreadfully, we are both quite well now, and as happy
- as we must always be in one another's love. We have
- had great trials, and great persecutions, but
- however, at the same time, gratefully acknowledge
- many friends, yourself not the least among them,
- whose great kindness I shall always thankfully
- remember, as will Edward too, who I have told of
- it. I am sure you will be glad to hear, as likewise
- dear Mrs. Jennings, I spent two happy hours with
- him yesterday afternoon, he would not hear of our
- parting, though earnestly did I, as I thought my
- duty required, urge him to it for prudence sake,
- and would have parted for ever on the spot, would
- he consent to it; but he said it should never be,
- he did not regard his mother's anger, while he could
- have my affections; our prospects are not very
- bright, to be sure, but we must wait, and hope for
- the best; he will be ordained shortly; and should
- it ever be in your power to recommend him to any
- body that has a living to bestow, am very sure you
- will not forget us, and dear Mrs. Jennings too,
- trust she will speak a good word for us to Sir John,
- or Mr. Palmer, or any friend that may be able to
- assist us.--Poor Anne was much to blame for what
- she did, but she did it for the best, so I say
- nothing; hope Mrs. Jennings won't think it too much
- trouble to give us a call, should she come this way
- any morning, 'twould be a great kindness, and my
- cousins would be proud to know her.--My paper reminds
- me to conclude; and begging to be most gratefully
- and respectfully remembered to her, and to Sir John,
- and Lady Middleton, and the dear children, when you
- chance to see them, and love to Miss Marianne,
-
- "I am, &c."
-
- As soon as Elinor had finished it, she performed
- what she concluded to be its writer's real design,
- by placing it in the hands of Mrs. Jennings, who read it
- aloud with many comments of satisfaction and praise.
-
- "Very well indeed!--how prettily she writes!--aye,
- that was quite proper to let him be off if he would.
- That was just like Lucy.--Poor soul! I wish I COULD get
- him a living, with all my heart.--She calls me dear
- Mrs. Jennings, you see. She is a good-hearted girl
- as ever lived.--Very well upon my word. That sentence
- is very prettily turned. Yes, yes, I will go and see her,
- sure enough. How attentive she is, to think of every
- body!--Thank you, my dear, for shewing it me. It is
- as pretty a letter as ever I saw, and does Lucy's head
- and heart great credit."
-
-
-
- CHAPTER 39
-
-
- The Miss Dashwoods had now been rather more than
- two months in town, and Marianne's impatience to be gone
- increased every day. She sighed for the air, the liberty,
- the quiet of the country; and fancied that if any place
- could give her ease, Barton must do it. Elinor was hardly
- less anxious than herself for their removal, and only so much
- less bent on its being effected immediately, as that she
- was conscious of the difficulties of so long a journey,
- which Marianne could not be brought to acknowledge.
- She began, however, seriously to turn her thoughts towards
- its accomplishment, and had already mentioned their wishes
- to their kind hostess, who resisted them with all the
- eloquence of her good-will, when a plan was suggested,
- which, though detaining them from home yet a few weeks
- longer, appeared to Elinor altogether much more eligible
- than any other. The Palmers were to remove to Cleveland
- about the end of March, for the Easter holidays;
- and Mrs. Jennings, with both her friends, received a very
- warm invitation from Charlotte to go with them. This would
- not, in itself, have been sufficient for the delicacy of
- Miss Dashwood;--but it was inforced with so much real
- politeness by Mr. Palmer himself, as, joined to the very
- great amendment of his manners towards them since her
- sister had been known to be unhappy, induced her to accept
- it with pleasure.
-
- When she told Marianne what she had done, however,
- her first reply was not very auspicious.
-
- "Cleveland!"--she cried, with great agitation.
- "No, I cannot go to Cleveland."--
-
- "You forget," said Elinor gently, "that its situation
- is not...that it is not in the neighbourhood of..."
-
- "But it is in Somersetshire.--I cannot go
- into Somersetshire.--There, where I looked forward
- to going...No, Elinor, you cannot expect me to go there."
-
- Elinor would not argue upon the propriety of overcoming
- such feelings;--she only endeavoured to counteract them by
- working on others;--represented it, therefore, as a measure
- which would fix the time of her returning to that dear mother,
- whom she so much wished to see, in a more eligible,
- more comfortable manner, than any other plan could do,
- and perhaps without any greater delay. From Cleveland,
- which was within a few miles of Bristol, the distance to
- Barton was not beyond one day, though a long day's journey;
- and their mother's servant might easily come there to attend
- them down; and as there could be no occasion of their
- staying above a week at Cleveland, they might now be at
- home in little more than three weeks' time. As Marianne's
- affection for her mother was sincere, it must triumph
- with little difficulty, over the imaginary evils she had started.
-
- Mrs. Jennings was so far from being weary of her guest,
- that she pressed them very earnestly to return with her again
- from Cleveland. Elinor was grateful for the attention,
- but it could not alter her design; and their mother's
- concurrence being readily gained, every thing relative
- to their return was arranged as far as it could be;--
- and Marianne found some relief in drawing up a statement
- of the hours that were yet to divide her from Barton.
-
- "Ah! Colonel, I do not know what you and I shall
- do without the Miss Dashwoods;"--was Mrs. Jennings's
- address to him when he first called on her, after their
- leaving her was settled--"for they are quite resolved
- upon going home from the Palmers;--and how forlorn we
- shall be, when I come back!--Lord! we shall sit and gape
- at one another as dull as two cats."
-
- Perhaps Mrs. Jennings was in hopes, by this vigorous
- sketch of their future ennui, to provoke him to make
- that offer, which might give himself an escape from it;--
- and if so, she had soon afterwards good reason to think
- her object gained; for, on Elinor's moving to the window
- to take more expeditiously the dimensions of a print,
- which she was going to copy for her friend, he followed
- her to it with a look of particular meaning, and conversed
- with her there for several minutes. The effect of his
- discourse on the lady too, could not escape her observation,
- for though she was too honorable to listen, and had even
- changed her seat, on purpose that she might NOT hear,
- to one close by the piano forte on which Marianne
- was playing, she could not keep herself from seeing
- that Elinor changed colour, attended with agitation,
- and was too intent on what he said to pursue her employment.--
- Still farther in confirmation of her hopes, in the interval
- of Marianne's turning from one lesson to another,
- some words of the Colonel's inevitably reached her ear,
- in which he seemed to be apologising for the badness
- of his house. This set the matter beyond a doubt.
- She wondered, indeed, at his thinking it necessary
- to do so; but supposed it to be the proper etiquette.
- What Elinor said in reply she could not distinguish,
- but judged from the motion of her lips, that she did
- not think THAT any material objection;--and Mrs. Jennings
- commended her in her heart for being so honest.
- They then talked on for a few minutes longer without her
- catching a syllable, when another lucky stop in Marianne's
- performance brought her these words in the Colonel's calm
- voice,--
-
- "I am afraid it cannot take place very soon."
-
- Astonished and shocked at so unlover-like a speech,
- she was almost ready to cry out, "Lord! what should
- hinder it?"--but checking her desire, confined herself
- to this silent ejaculation.
-
- "This is very strange!--sure he need not wait
- to be older."
-
- This delay on the Colonel's side, however, did not
- seem to offend or mortify his fair companion in the least,
- for on their breaking up the conference soon afterwards,
- and moving different ways, Mrs. Jennings very plainly heard
- Elinor say, and with a voice which shewed her to feel what she said,
-
- "I shall always think myself very much obliged to you."
-
- Mrs. Jennings was delighted with her gratitude,
- and only wondered that after hearing such a sentence,
- the Colonel should be able to take leave of them, as he
- immediately did, with the utmost sang-froid, and go away
- without making her any reply!--She had not thought her old
- friend could have made so indifferent a suitor.
-
- What had really passed between them was to this effect.
-
- "I have heard," said he, with great compassion,
- "of the injustice your friend Mr. Ferrars has suffered
- from his family; for if I understand the matter right,
- he has been entirely cast off by them for persevering
- in his engagement with a very deserving young woman.--
- Have I been rightly informed?--Is it so?--"
-
- Elinor told him that it was.
-
- "The cruelty, the impolitic cruelty,"--he replied,
- with great feeling,--"of dividing, or attempting to divide,
- two young people long attached to each other, is terrible.--
- Mrs. Ferrars does not know what she may be doing--what
- she may drive her son to. I have seen Mr. Ferrars two
- or three times in Harley Street, and am much pleased
- with him. He is not a young man with whom one can
- be intimately acquainted in a short time, but I have
- seen enough of him to wish him well for his own sake,
- and as a friend of yours, I wish it still more.
- I understand that he intends to take orders. Will you
- be so good as to tell him that the living of Delaford,
- now just vacant, as I am informed by this day's post,
- is his, if he think it worth his acceptance--but THAT,
- perhaps, so unfortunately circumstanced as he is now,
- it may be nonsense to appear to doubt; I only wish it
- were more valuable.-- It is a rectory, but a small one;
- the late incumbent, I believe, did not make more than
- 200 L per annum, and though it is certainly capable
- of improvement, I fear, not to such an amount as
- to afford him a very comfortable income. Such as it is,
- however, my pleasure in presenting him to it,
- will be very great. Pray assure him of it."
-
- Elinor's astonishment at this commission could
- hardly have been greater, had the Colonel been really
- making her an offer of his hand. The preferment,
- which only two days before she had considered as hopeless
- for Edward, was already provided to enable him to marry;--
- and SHE, of all people in the world, was fixed on to
- bestow it!--Her emotion was such as Mrs. Jennings had
- attributed to a very different cause;--but whatever minor
- feelings less pure, less pleasing, might have a share
- in that emotion, her esteem for the general benevolence,
- and her gratitude for the particular friendship,
- which together prompted Colonel Brandon to this act,
- were strongly felt, and warmly expressed. She thanked him
- for it with all her heart, spoke of Edward's principles and
- disposition with that praise which she knew them to deserve;
- and promised to undertake the commission with pleasure,
- if it were really his wish to put off so agreeable an office
- to another. But at the same time, she could not help
- thinking that no one could so well perform it as himself.
- It was an office in short, from which, unwilling to give
- Edward the pain of receiving an obligation from HER,
- she would have been very glad to be spared herself;--
- but Colonel Brandon, on motives of equal delicacy,
- declining it likewise, still seemed so desirous of its being
- given through her means, that she would not on any account
- make farther opposition. Edward, she believed, was still in town,
- and fortunately she had heard his address from Miss Steele.
- She could undertake therefore to inform him of it,
- in the course of the day. After this had been settled,
- Colonel Brandon began to talk of his own advantage
- in securing so respectable and agreeable a neighbour,
- and THEN it was that he mentioned with regret, that the
- house was small and indifferent;--an evil which Elinor,
- as Mrs. Jennings had supposed her to do, made very light of,
- at least as far as regarded its size.
-
- "The smallness of the house," said she,
- "I cannot imagine any inconvenience to them,
- for it will be in proportion to their family and income."
-
- By which the Colonel was surprised to find that SHE
- was considering Mr. Ferrars's marriage as the certain
- consequence of the presentation; for he did not suppose it
- possible that Delaford living could supply such an income,
- as anybody in his style of life would venture to settle on--
- and he said so.
-
- "This little rectory CAN do no more than make Mr. Ferrars
- comfortable as a bachelor; it cannot enable him to marry.
- I am sorry to say that my patronage ends with this;
- and my interest is hardly more extensive. If, however,
- by an unforeseen chance it should be in my power to serve
- him farther, I must think very differently of him
- from what I now do, if I am not as ready to be useful
- to him then as I sincerely wish I could be at present.
- What I am now doing indeed, seems nothing at all,
- since it can advance him so little towards what must
- be his principal, his only object of happiness.
- His marriage must still be a distant good;--at least,
- I am afraid it cannot take place very soon.--"
-
- Such was the sentence which, when misunderstood,
- so justly offended the delicate feelings of Mrs. Jennings;
- but after this narration of what really passed between
- Colonel Brandon and Elinor, while they stood at the window,
- the gratitude expressed by the latter on their parting, may
- perhaps appear in general, not less reasonably excited,
- nor less properly worded than if it had arisen from
- an offer of marriage.
-
-
-
- CHAPTER 40
-
-
- "Well, Miss Dashwood," said Mrs. Jennings,
- sagaciously smiling, as soon as the gentleman had withdrawn,
- "I do not ask you what the Colonel has been saying to you;
- for though, upon my honour, I TRIED to keep out of hearing,
- I could not help catching enough to understand his business.
- And I assure you I never was better pleased in my life,
- and I wish you joy of it with all my heart."
-
- "Thank you, ma'am," said Elinor. "It is a matter
- of great joy to me; and I feel the goodness of Colonel
- Brandon most sensibly. There are not many men who would
- act as he has done. Few people who have so compassionate
- a heart! I never was more astonished in my life."
-
- "Lord! my dear, you are very modest. I an't the least
- astonished at it in the world, for I have often thought
- of late, there was nothing more likely to happen."
-
- "You judged from your knowledge of the Colonel's
- general benevolence; but at least you could not foresee
- that the opportunity would so very soon occur."
-
- "Opportunity!" repeated Mrs. Jennings--"Oh! as to that,
- when a man has once made up his mind to such a thing,
- somehow or other he will soon find an opportunity.
- Well, my dear, I wish you joy of it again and again;
- and if ever there was a happy couple in the world, I think
- I shall soon know where to look for them."
-
- "You mean to go to Delaford after them I suppose,"
- said Elinor, with a faint smile.
-
- "Aye, my dear, that I do, indeed. And as to the house
- being a bad one, I do not know what the Colonel would be at,
- for it is as good a one as ever I saw."
-
- "He spoke of its being out of repair."
-
- "Well, and whose fault is that? why don't he repair it?--
- who should do it but himself?"
-
- They were interrupted by the servant's coming in to
- announce the carriage being at the door; and Mrs. Jennings
- immediately preparing to go, said,--
-
- "Well, my dear, I must be gone before I have had half
- my talk out. But, however, we may have it all over in
- the evening; for we shall be quite alone. I do not ask
- you to go with me, for I dare say your mind is too full
- of the matter to care for company; and besides, you must
- long to tell your sister all about it."
-
- Marianne had left the room before the conversation began.
-
- "Certainly, ma'am, I shall tell Marianne of it;
- but I shall not mention it at present to any body else."
-
- "Oh! very well," said Mrs. Jennings rather disappointed.
- "Then you would not have me tell it to Lucy, for I think
- of going as far as Holborn to-day."
-
- "No, ma'am, not even Lucy if you please.
- One day's delay will not be very material; and till I
- have written to Mr. Ferrars, I think it ought not to be
- mentioned to any body else. I shall do THAT directly.
- It is of importance that no time should be lost with him,
- for he will of course have much to do relative to
- his ordination."
-
- This speech at first puzzled Mrs. Jennings exceedingly.
- Why Mr. Ferrars was to have been written to about it
- in such a hurry, she could not immediately comprehend.
- A few moments' reflection, however, produced a very happy idea,
- and she exclaimed;--
-
- "Oh, ho!--I understand you. Mr. Ferrars is to be
- the man. Well, so much the better for him. Ay, to be sure,
- he must be ordained in readiness; and I am very glad
- to find things are so forward between you. But, my dear,
- is not this rather out of character? Should not the Colonel
- write himself?--sure, he is the proper person."
-
- Elinor did not quite understand the beginning of
- Mrs. Jennings's speech, neither did she think it worth
- inquiring into; and therefore only replied to its conclusion.
-
- "Colonel Brandon is so delicate a man, that he rather
- wished any one to announce his intentions to Mr. Ferrars
- than himself."
-
- "And so YOU are forced to do it. Well THAT is an odd
- kind of delicacy! However, I will not disturb you (seeing
- her preparing to write.) You know your own concerns best.
- So goodby, my dear. I have not heard of any thing to
- please me so well since Charlotte was brought to bed."
-
- And away she went; but returning again in a moment,
-
- "I have just been thinking of Betty's sister, my dear.
- I should be very glad to get her so good a mistress.
- But whether she would do for a lady's maid, I am sure I
- can't tell. She is an excellent housemaid, and works
- very well at her needle. However, you will think of all
- that at your leisure."
-
- "Certainly, ma'am," replied Elinor, not hearing
- much of what she said, and more anxious to be alone,
- than to be mistress of the subject.
-
- How she should begin--how she should express
- herself in her note to Edward, was now all her concern.
- The particular circumstances between them made
- a difficulty of that which to any other person would
- have been the easiest thing in the world; but she
- equally feared to say too much or too little, and sat
- deliberating over her paper, with the pen in her band,
- till broken in on by the entrance of Edward himself.
-
- He had met Mrs. Jennings at the door in her way to
- the carriage, as he came to leave his farewell card; and she,
- after apologising for not returning herself, had obliged
- him to enter, by saying that Miss Dashwood was above,
- and wanted to speak with him on very particular business.
-
- Elinor had just been congratulating herself,
- in the midst of her perplexity, that however difficult it
- might be to express herself properly by letter, it was
- at least preferable to giving the information by word
- of mouth, when her visitor entered, to force her upon this
- greatest exertion of all. Her astonishment and confusion
- were very great on his so sudden appearance. She had
- not seen him before since his engagement became public,
- and therefore not since his knowing her to be acquainted
- with it; which, with the consciousness of what she
- had been thinking of, and what she had to tell him,
- made her feel particularly uncomfortable for some minutes.
- He too was much distressed; and they sat down together
- in a most promising state of embarrassment.--Whether he
- had asked her pardon for his intrusion on first coming
- into the room, he could not recollect; but determining
- to be on the safe side, he made his apology in form
- as soon as he could say any thing, after taking a chair.
-
- "Mrs. Jennings told me," said he, "that you wished
- to speak with me, at least I understood her so--or I
- certainly should not have intruded on you in such a manner;
- though at the same time, I should have been extremely
- sorry to leave London without seeing you and your sister;
- especially as it will most likely be some time--it
- is not probable that I should soon have the pleasure
- of meeting you again. I go to Oxford tomorrow."
-
- "You would not have gone, however," said Elinor,
- recovering herself, and determined to get over what she
- so much dreaded as soon as possible, "without receiving
- our good wishes, even if we had not been able to give them
- in person. Mrs. Jennings was quite right in what she said.
- I have something of consequence to inform you of,
- which I was on the point of communicating by paper.
- I am charged with a most agreeable office (breathing
- rather faster than usual as she spoke.) Colonel Brandon,
- who was here only ten minutes ago, has desired me to say,
- that understanding you mean to take orders, he has
- great pleasure in offering you the living of Delaford
- now just vacant, and only wishes it were more valuable.
- Allow me to congratulate you on having so respectable
- and well-judging a friend, and to join in his wish that
- the living--it is about two hundred a-year--were much
- more considerable, and such as might better enable you
- to--as might be more than a temporary accommodation to
- yourself--such, in short, as might establish all your views
- of happiness."
-
- What Edward felt, as he could not say it himself,
- it cannot be expected that any one else should say for him.
- He LOOKED all the astonishment which such unexpected,
- such unthought-of information could not fail of exciting;
- but he said only these two words,
-
- "Colonel Brandon!"
-
- "Yes," continued Elinor, gathering more resolution,
- as some of the worst was over, "Colonel Brandon means
- it as a testimony of his concern for what has lately
- passed--for the cruel situation in which the unjustifiable
- conduct of your family has placed you--a concern
- which I am sure Marianne, myself, and all your friends,
- must share; and likewise as a proof of his high esteem
- for your general character, and his particular approbation
- of your behaviour on the present occasion."
-
- "Colonel Brandon give ME a living!--Can it be possible?"
-
- "The unkindness of your own relations has made you
- astonished to find friendship any where."
-
- "No," replied be, with sudden consciousness, "not to
- find it in YOU; for I cannot be ignorant that to you,
- to your goodness, I owe it all.--I feel it--I would express
- it if I could--but, as you well know, I am no orator."
-
- "You are very much mistaken. I do assure you
- that you owe it entirely, at least almost entirely,
- to your own merit, and Colonel Brandon's discernment
- of it. I have had no hand in it. I did not even know,
- till I understood his design, that the living was vacant;
- nor had it ever occurred to me that he might have
- had such a living in his gift. As a friend of mine,
- of my family, he may, perhaps--indeed I know he HAS,
- still greater pleasure in bestowing it; but, upon my word,
- you owe nothing to my solicitation."
-
- Truth obliged her to acknowledge some small share
- in the action, but she was at the same time so unwilling
- to appear as the benefactress of Edward, that she acknowledged
- it with hesitation; which probably contributed to fix
- that suspicion in his mind which had recently entered it.
- For a short time he sat deep in thought, after Elinor had ceased
- to speak;--at last, and as if it were rather an effort, he said,
-
- "Colonel Brandon seems a man of great worth
- and respectability. I have always heard him spoken
- of as such, and your brother I know esteems him highly.
- He is undoubtedly a sensible man, and in his manners
- perfectly the gentleman."
-
- "Indeed," replied Elinor, "I believe that you will find him,
- on farther acquaintance, all that you have heard him to be,
- and as you will be such very near neighbours (for I understand
- the parsonage is almost close to the mansion-house,)
- it is particularly important that he SHOULD be all this."
-
- Edward made no answer; but when she had turned
- away her head, gave her a look so serious, so earnest,
- so uncheerful, as seemed to say, that he might hereafter wish
- the distance between the parsonage and the mansion-house
- much greater.
-
- "Colonel Brandon, I think, lodges in St. James Street,"
- said he, soon afterwards, rising from his chair.
-
- Elinor told him the number of the house.
-
- "I must hurry away then, to give him those thanks
- which you will not allow me to give YOU; to assure him
- that he has made me a very--an exceedingly happy man."
-
- Elinor did not offer to detain him; and they parted,
- with a very earnest assurance on HER side of her unceasing
- good wishes for his happiness in every change of situation
- that might befall him; on HIS, with rather an attempt to
- return the same good will, than the power of expressing it.
-
- "When I see him again," said Elinor to herself,
- as the door shut him out, "I shall see him the husband
- of Lucy."
-
- And with this pleasing anticipation, she sat down
- to reconsider the past, recall the words and endeavour
- to comprehend all the feelings of Edward; and, of course,
- to reflect on her own with discontent.
-
- When Mrs. Jennings came home, though she returned
- from seeing people whom she had never seen before,
- and of whom therefore she must have a great deal to say,
- her mind was so much more occupied by the important secret
- in her possession, than by anything else, that she
- reverted to it again as soon as Elinor appeared.
-
- "Well, my dear," she cried, "I sent you up to the
- young man. Did not I do right?--And I suppose you had
- no great difficulty--You did not find him very unwilling
- to accept your proposal?"
-
- "No, ma'am; THAT was not very likely."
-
- "Well, and how soon will he be ready?--For it seems
- all to depend upon that."
-
- "Really," said Elinor, "I know so little of these kind
- of forms, that I can hardly even conjecture as to the time,
- or the preparation necessary; but I suppose two or three
- months will complete his ordination."
-
- "Two or three months!" cried Mrs. Jennings; "Lord! my dear,
- how calmly you talk of it; and can the Colonel wait two
- or three months! Lord bless me!--I am sure it would put ME
- quite out of patience!--And though one would be very glad
- to do a kindness by poor Mr. Ferrars, I do think it is
- not worth while to wait two or three months for him.
- Sure somebody else might be found that would do as well;
- somebody that is in orders already."
-
- "My dear ma'am," said Elinor, "what can you be thinking of?--
- Why, Colonel Brandon's only object is to be of use to Mr. Ferrars."
-
- "Lord bless you, my dear!--Sure you do not mean to persuade
- me that the Colonel only marries you for the sake of giving
- ten guineas to Mr. Ferrars!"
-
- The deception could not continue after this;
- and an explanation immediately took place, by which both
- gained considerable amusement for the moment, without any
- material loss of happiness to either, for Mrs. Jennings
- only exchanged one form of delight for another, and still
- without forfeiting her expectation of the first.
-
- "Aye, aye, the parsonage is but a small one," said she,
- after the first ebullition of surprise and satisfaction
- was over, "and very likely MAY be out of repair; but to hear
- a man apologising, as I thought, for a house that to my
- knowledge has five sitting rooms on the ground-floor, and I
- think the housekeeper told me could make up fifteen beds!--
- and to you too, that had been used to live in Barton
- cottage!--It seems quite ridiculous. But, my dear, we must
- touch up the Colonel to do some thing to the parsonage,
- and make it comfortable for them, before Lucy goes to it."
-
- "But Colonel Brandon does not seem to have any idea
- of the living's being enough to allow them to marry."
-
- "The Colonel is a ninny, my dear; because he has two
- thousand a-year himself, he thinks that nobody else can marry
- on less. Take my word for it, that, if I am alive, I shall
- be paying a visit at Delaford Parsonage before Michaelmas;
- and I am sure I sha'nt go if Lucy an't there."
-
- Elinor was quite of her opinion, as to the probability
- of their not waiting for any thing more.
-
-
-
- CHAPTER 41
-
-
- Edward, having carried his thanks to Colonel Brandon,
- proceeded with his happiness to Lucy; and such was the
- excess of it by the time he reached Bartlett's Buildings,
- that she was able to assure Mrs. Jennings, who called
- on her again the next day with her congratulations,
- that she had never seen him in such spirits before in
- her life.
-
- Her own happiness, and her own spirits, were at
- least very certain; and she joined Mrs. Jennings most
- heartily in her expectation of their being all comfortably
- together in Delaford Parsonage before Michaelmas.
- So far was she, at the same time, from any backwardness
- to give Elinor that credit which Edward WOULD give her,
- that she spoke of her friendship for them both with the most
- grateful warmth, was ready to own all their obligation
- to her, and openly declared that no exertion for their
- good on Miss Dashwood's part, either present or future,
- would ever surprise her, for she believed her capable of
- doing any thing in the world for those she really valued.
- As for Colonel Brandon, she was not only ready to worship
- him as a saint, but was moreover truly anxious that
- he should be treated as one in all worldly concerns;
- anxious that his tithes should be raised to the utmost;
- and scarcely resolved to avail herself, at Delaford,
- as far as she possibly could, of his servants, his carriage,
- his cows, and his poultry.
-
- It was now above a week since John Dashwood had
- called in Berkeley Street, and as since that time no notice
- had been taken by them of his wife's indisposition,
- beyond one verbal enquiry, Elinor began to feel it
- necessary to pay her a visit.--This was an obligation,
- however, which not only opposed her own inclination,
- but which had not the assistance of any encouragement
- from her companions. Marianne, not contented with
- absolutely refusing to go herself, was very urgent
- to prevent her sister's going at all; and Mrs. Jennings,
- though her carriage was always at Elinor's service,
- so very much disliked Mrs. John Dashwood, that not even her
- curiosity to see how she looked after the late discovery,
- nor her strong desire to affront her by taking Edward's part,
- could overcome her unwillingness to be in her company again.
- The consequence was, that Elinor set out by herself
- to pay a visit, for which no one could really have
- less inclination, and to run the risk of a tete-a-tete
- with a woman, whom neither of the others had so much
- reason to dislike.
-
- Mrs. Dashwood was denied; but before the carriage could
- turn from the house, her husband accidentally came out.
- He expressed great pleasure in meeting Elinor, told her
- that he had been just going to call in Berkeley Street, and,
- assuring her that Fanny would be very glad to see her,
- invited her to come in.
-
- They walked up stairs in to the drawing-room.--Nobody
- was there.
-
- "Fanny is in her own room, I suppose," said he:--"I
- will go to her presently, for I am sure she will not
- have the least objection in the world to seeing YOU.--
- Very far from it, indeed. NOW especially there
- cannot be--but however, you and Marianne were always
- great favourites.--Why would not Marianne come?"--
-
- Elinor made what excuse she could for her.
-
- "I am not sorry to see you alone," he replied,
- "for I have a good deal to say to you. This living
- of Colonel Brandon's--can it be true?--has he really given
- it to Edward?--I heard it yesterday by chance, and was
- coming to you on purpose to enquire farther about it."
-
- "It is perfectly true.--Colonel Brandon has given
- the living of Delaford to Edward."
-
- "Really!--Well, this is very astonishing!--no
- relationship!--no connection between them!--and now
- that livings fetch such a price!--what was the value of this?"
-
- "About two hundred a year."
-
- "Very well--and for the next presentation to a living
- of that value--supposing the late incumbent to have
- been old and sickly, and likely to vacate it soon--he
- might have got I dare say--fourteen hundred pounds.
- And how came he not to have settled that matter before this
- person's death?--NOW indeed it would be too late to sell it,
- but a man of Colonel Brandon's sense!--I wonder he should
- be so improvident in a point of such common, such natural,
- concern!--Well, I am convinced that there is a vast deal
- of inconsistency in almost every human character. I suppose,
- however--on recollection--that the case may probably be THIS.
- Edward is only to hold the living till the person to whom
- the Colonel has really sold the presentation, is old enough
- to take it.--Aye, aye, that is the fact, depend upon it."
-
- Elinor contradicted it, however, very positively;
- and by relating that she had herself been employed
- in conveying the offer from Colonel Brandon to Edward,
- and, therefore, must understand the terms on which it
- was given, obliged him to submit to her authority.
-
- "It is truly astonishing!"--he cried, after hearing
- what she said--"what could be the Colonel's motive?"
-
- "A very simple one--to be of use to Mr. Ferrars."
-
- "Well, well; whatever Colonel Brandon may be,
- Edward is a very lucky man.--You will not mention the matter
- to Fanny, however, for though I have broke it to her,
- and she bears it vastly well,--she will not like to hear
- it much talked of."
-
- Elinor had some difficulty here to refrain from observing,
- that she thought Fanny might have borne with composure,
- an acquisition of wealth to her brother, by which neither
- she nor her child could be possibly impoverished.
-
- "Mrs. Ferrars," added he, lowering his voice to the
- tone becoming so important a subject, "knows nothing
- about it at present, and I believe it will be best to
- keep it entirely concealed from her as long as may be.--
- When the marriage takes place, I fear she must hear
- of it all."
-
- "But why should such precaution be used?--Though
- it is not to be supposed that Mrs. Ferrars can have
- the smallest satisfaction in knowing that her son has
- money enough to live upon,--for THAT must be quite
- out of the question; yet why, upon her late behaviour,
- is she supposed to feel at all?--She has done with her
- son, she cast him off for ever, and has made all those
- over whom she had any influence, cast him off likewise.
- Surely, after doing so, she cannot be imagined liable
- to any impression of sorrow or of joy on his account--
- she cannot be interested in any thing that befalls him.--
- She would not be so weak as to throw away the comfort
- of a child, and yet retain the anxiety of a parent!"
-
- "Ah! Elinor," said John, "your reasoning is very good,
- but it is founded on ignorance of human nature.
- When Edward's unhappy match takes place, depend upon it
- his mother will feel as much as if she had never discarded him;
- and, therefore every circumstance that may accelerate that
- dreadful event, must be concealed from her as much as possible.
- Mrs. Ferrars can never forget that Edward is her son."
-
- "You surprise me; I should think it must nearly
- have escaped her memory by THIS time."
-
- "You wrong her exceedingly. Mrs. Ferrars is one
- of the most affectionate mothers in the world."
-
- Elinor was silent.
-
- "We think NOW,"--said Mr. Dashwood, after a short pause,
- "of ROBERT'S marrying Miss Morton."
-
- Elinor, smiling at the grave and decisive importance
- of her brother's tone, calmly replied,
-
- "The lady, I suppose, has no choice in the affair."
-
- "Choice!--how do you mean?"
-
- "I only mean that I suppose, from your manner
- of speaking, it must be the same to Miss Morton whether
- she marry Edward or Robert."
-
- "Certainly, there can be no difference; for Robert
- will now to all intents and purposes be considered
- as the eldest son;--and as to any thing else, they are
- both very agreeable young men: I do not know that one
- is superior to the other."
-
- Elinor said no more, and John was also for a short
- time silent.--His reflections ended thus.
-
- "Of ONE thing, my dear sister," kindly taking her hand,
- and speaking in an awful whisper,--"I may assure you;--
- and I WILL do it, because I know it must gratify you.
- I have good reason to think--indeed I have it from the
- best authority, or I should not repeat it, for otherwise
- it would be very wrong to say any thing about it--but
- I have it from the very best authority--not that I ever
- precisely heard Mrs. Ferrars say it herself--but her
- daughter DID, and I have it from her--That in short,
- whatever objections there might be against a certain--a
- certain connection--you understand me--it would have been
- far preferable to her, it would not have given her half
- the vexation that THIS does. I was exceedingly pleased
- to hear that Mrs. Ferrars considered it in that light--
- a very gratifying circumstance you know to us all.
- 'It would have been beyond comparison,' she said, 'the least
- evil of the two, and she would be glad to compound NOW
- for nothing worse.' But however, all that is quite out
- of the question--not to be thought of or mentioned--
- as to any attachment you know--it never could be--all
- that is gone by. But I thought I would just tell you
- of this, because I knew how much it must please you.
- Not that you have any reason to regret, my dear Elinor. There
- is no doubt of your doing exceedingly well--quite as well,
- or better, perhaps, all things considered. Has Colonel
- Brandon been with you lately?"
-
- Elinor had heard enough, if not to gratify her vanity,
- and raise her self-importance, to agitate her nerves
- and fill her mind;--and she was therefore glad to be
- spared from the necessity of saying much in reply herself,
- and from the danger of hearing any thing more from
- her brother, by the entrance of Mr. Robert Ferrars.
- After a few moments' chat, John Dashwood, recollecting that
- Fanny was yet uninformed of her sister's being there,
- quitted the room in quest of her; and Elinor was left
- to improve her acquaintance with Robert, who, by the
- gay unconcern, the happy self-complacency of his manner
- while enjoying so unfair a division of his mother's love
- and liberality, to the prejudice of his banished brother,
- earned only by his own dissipated course of life, and that
- brother's integrity, was confirming her most unfavourable
- opinion of his head and heart.
-
- They had scarcely been two minutes by themselves,
- before he began to speak of Edward; for he, too, had heard
- of the living, and was very inquisitive on the subject.
- Elinor repeated the particulars of it, as she had given them
- to John; and their effect on Robert, though very different,
- was not less striking than it had been on HIM. He laughed
- most immoderately. The idea of Edward's being a clergyman,
- and living in a small parsonage-house, diverted him
- beyond measure;--and when to that was added the fanciful
- imagery of Edward reading prayers in a white surplice,
- and publishing the banns of marriage between John Smith and
- Mary Brown, he could conceive nothing more ridiculous.
-
- Elinor, while she waited in silence and immovable
- gravity, the conclusion of such folly, could not restrain
- her eyes from being fixed on him with a look that spoke
- all the contempt it excited. It was a look, however,
- very well bestowed, for it relieved her own feelings, and gave
- no intelligence to him. He was recalled from wit to wisdom,
- not by any reproof of her's, but by his own sensibility.
-
- "We may treat it as a joke," said he, at last,
- recovering from the affected laugh which had considerably
- lengthened out the genuine gaiety of the moment--"but, upon
- my soul, it is a most serious business. Poor Edward!
- he is ruined for ever. I am extremely sorry for it--
- for I know him to be a very good-hearted creature; as
- well-meaning a fellow perhaps, as any in the world.
- You must not judge of him, Miss Dashwood, from YOUR
- slight acquaintance.--Poor Edward!--His manners are certainly
- not the happiest in nature.--But we are not all born,
- you know, with the same powers,--the same address.--
- Poor fellow!--to see him in a circle of strangers!--
- to be sure it was pitiable enough!--but upon my soul,
- I believe he has as good a heart as any in the kingdom;
- and I declare and protest to you I never was so shocked in my
- life, as when it all burst forth. I could not believe it.--
- My mother was the first person who told me of it;
- and I, feeling myself called on to act with resolution,
- immediately said to her, 'My dear madam, I do not know
- what you may intend to do on the occasion, but as for myself,
- I must say, that if Edward does marry this young woman,
- I never will see him again.' That was what I said immediately.--
- I was most uncommonly shocked, indeed!--Poor Edward!--he has
- done for himself completely--shut himself out for ever from
- all decent society!--but, as I directly said to my mother,
- I am not in the least surprised at it; from his style
- of education, it was always to be expected. My poor mother
- was half frantic."
-
- "Have you ever seen the lady?"
-
- "Yes; once, while she was staying in this house,
- I happened to drop in for ten minutes; and I saw
- quite enough of her. The merest awkward country girl,
- without style, or elegance, and almost without beauty.--
- I remember her perfectly. Just the kind of girl I
- should suppose likely to captivate poor Edward.
- I offered immediately, as soon as my mother related
- the affair to me, to talk to him myself, and dissuade
- him from the match; but it was too late THEN, I found,
- to do any thing, for unluckily, I was not in the way
- at first, and knew nothing of it till after the breach
- had taken place, when it was not for me, you know,
- to interfere. But had I been informed of it a few
- hours earlier--I think it is most probable--that something
- might have been hit on. I certainly should have represented
- it to Edward in a very strong light. 'My dear fellow,'
- I should have said, 'consider what you are doing.
- You are making a most disgraceful connection, and such a one
- as your family are unanimous in disapproving.' I cannot
- help thinking, in short, that means might have been found.
- But now it is all too late. He must be starved, you know;--
- that is certain; absolutely starved."
-
- He had just settled this point with great composure,
- when the entrance of Mrs. John Dashwood put an end to the subject.
- But though SHE never spoke of it out of her own family,
- Elinor could see its influence on her mind, in the something
- like confusion of countenance with which she entered,
- and an attempt at cordiality in her behaviour to herself.
- She even proceeded so far as to be concerned to find
- that Elinor and her sister were so soon to leave town,
- as she had hoped to see more of them;--an exertion
- in which her husband, who attended her into the room,
- and hung enamoured over her accents, seemed to distinguish
- every thing that was most affectionate and graceful.
-
-
-
- CHAPTER 42
-
-
- One other short call in Harley Street, in which Elinor
- received her brother's congratulations on their travelling
- so far towards Barton without any expense, and on Colonel
- Brandon's being to follow them to Cleveland in a day or two,
- completed the intercourse of the brother and sisters
- in town;--and a faint invitation from Fanny, to come
- to Norland whenever it should happen to be in their way,
- which of all things was the most unlikely to occur,
- with a more warm, though less public, assurance, from John
- to Elinor, of the promptitude with which he should come
- to see her at Delaford, was all that foretold any meeting
- in the country.
-
- It amused her to observe that all her friends seemed
- determined to send her to Delaford;--a place, in which,
- of all others, she would now least chuse to visit, or wish
- to reside; for not only was it considered as her future
- home by her brother and Mrs. Jennings, but even Lucy,
- when they parted, gave her a pressing invitation to visit
- her there.
-
- Very early in April, and tolerably early in the day,
- the two parties from Hanover Square and Berkeley Street set
- out from their respective homes, to meet, by appointment,
- on the road. For the convenience of Charlotte and her child,
- they were to be more than two days on their journey,
- and Mr. Palmer, travelling more expeditiously with
- Colonel Brandon, was to join them at Cleveland soon after
- their arrival.
-
- Marianne, few as had been her hours of comfort
- in London, and eager as she had long been to quit it,
- could not, when it came to the point, bid adieu to
- the house in which she had for the last time enjoyed
- those hopes, and that confidence, in Willoughby,
- which were now extinguished for ever, without great pain.
- Nor could she leave the place in which Willoughby remained,
- busy in new engagements, and new schemes, in which SHE
- could have no share, without shedding many tears.
-
- Elinor's satisfaction, at the moment of removal,
- was more positive. She had no such object for her lingering
- thoughts to fix on, she left no creature behind, from whom
- it would give her a moment's regret to be divided for ever,
- she was pleased to be free herself from the persecution
- of Lucy's friendship, she was grateful for bringing
- her sister away unseen by Willoughby since his marriage,
- and she looked forward with hope to what a few months
- of tranquility at Barton might do towards restoring
- Marianne's peace of mind, and confirming her own.
-
- Their journey was safely performed. The second
- day brought them into the cherished, or the prohibited,
- county of Somerset, for as such was it dwelt on by turns
- in Marianne's imagination; and in the forenoon of the third
- they drove up to Cleveland.
-
- Cleveland was a spacious, modern-built house,
- situated on a sloping lawn. It had no park, but the
- pleasure-grounds were tolerably extensive; and like
- every other place of the same degree of importance,
- it had its open shrubbery, and closer wood walk,
- a road of smooth gravel winding round a plantation,
- led to the front, the lawn was dotted over with timber,
- the house itself was under the guardianship of the fir,
- the mountain-ash, and the acacia, and a thick screen of
- them altogether, interspersed with tall Lombardy poplars,
- shut out the offices.
-
- Marianne entered the house with a heart swelling
- with emotion from the consciousness of being only eighty
- miles from Barton, and not thirty from Combe Magna;
- and before she had been five minutes within its walls,
- while the others were busily helping Charlotte to show
- her child to the housekeeper, she quitted it again,
- stealing away through the winding shrubberies, now just
- beginning to be in beauty, to gain a distant eminence;
- where, from its Grecian temple, her eye, wandering over
- a wide tract of country to the south-east, could fondly
- rest on the farthest ridge of hills in the horizon,
- and fancy that from their summits Combe Magna might
- be seen.
-
- In such moments of precious, invaluable misery,
- she rejoiced in tears of agony to be at Cleveland;
- and as she returned by a different circuit to the house,
- feeling all the happy privilege of country liberty,
- of wandering from place to place in free and luxurious solitude,
- she resolved to spend almost every hour of every day
- while she remained with the Palmers, in the indulgence of
- such solitary rambles.
-
- She returned just in time to join the others
- as they quitted the house, on an excursion through its
- more immediate premises; and the rest of the morning was
- easily whiled away, in lounging round the kitchen garden,
- examining the bloom upon its walls, and listening to the
- gardener's lamentations upon blights, in dawdling through
- the green-house, where the loss of her favourite plants,
- unwarily exposed, and nipped by the lingering frost,
- raised the laughter of Charlotte,--and in visiting her
- poultry-yard, where, in the disappointed hopes of her
- dairy-maid, by hens forsaking their nests, or being
- stolen by a fox, or in the rapid decrease of a promising
- young brood, she found fresh sources of merriment.
-
- The morning was fine and dry, and Marianne,
- in her plan of employment abroad, had not calculated
- for any change of weather during their stay at Cleveland.
- With great surprise therefore, did she find herself prevented
- by a settled rain from going out again after dinner.
- She had depended on a twilight walk to the Grecian temple,
- and perhaps all over the grounds, and an evening merely
- cold or damp would not have deterred her from it;
- but a heavy and settled rain even SHE could not fancy dry
- or pleasant weather for walking.
-
- Their party was small, and the hours passed quietly away.
- Mrs. Palmer had her child, and Mrs. Jennings her carpet-work;
- they talked of the friends they had left behind,
- arranged Lady Middleton's engagements, and wondered
- whether Mr. Palmer and Colonel Brandon would get farther
- than Reading that night. Elinor, however little concerned
- in it, joined in their discourse; and Marianne, who had
- the knack of finding her way in every house to the library,
- however it might be avoided by the family in general,
- soon procured herself a book.
-
- Nothing was wanting on Mrs. Palmer's side that constant
- and friendly good humour could do, to make them feel
- themselves welcome. The openness and heartiness of her
- manner more than atoned for that want of recollection
- and elegance which made her often deficient in the forms
- of politeness; her kindness, recommended by so pretty
- a face, was engaging; her folly, though evident
- was not disgusting, because it was not conceited;
- and Elinor could have forgiven every thing but her laugh.
-
- The two gentlemen arrived the next day to a very
- late dinner, affording a pleasant enlargement of the party,
- and a very welcome variety to their conversation, which a
- long morning of the same continued rain had reduced very low.
-
- Elinor had seen so little of Mr. Palmer, and in that
- little had seen so much variety in his address to her
- sister and herself, that she knew not what to expect
- to find him in his own family. She found him, however,
- perfectly the gentleman in his behaviour to all his visitors,
- and only occasionally rude to his wife and her mother;
- she found him very capable of being a pleasant companion,
- and only prevented from being so always, by too great
- an aptitude to fancy himself as much superior to people
- in general, as he must feel himself to be to Mrs. Jennings
- and Charlotte. For the rest of his character and habits,
- they were marked, as far as Elinor could perceive,
- with no traits at all unusual in his sex and time of life.
- He was nice in his eating, uncertain in his hours;
- fond of his child, though affecting to slight it;
- and idled away the mornings at billiards, which ought
- to have been devoted to business. She liked him, however,
- upon the whole, much better than she had expected, and in
- her heart was not sorry that she could like him no more;--
- not sorry to be driven by the observation of his Epicurism,
- his selfishness, and his conceit, to rest with complacency
- on the remembrance of Edward's generous temper, simple taste,
- and diffident feelings.
-
- Of Edward, or at least of some of his concerns,
- she now received intelligence from Colonel Brandon,
- who had been into Dorsetshire lately; and who,
- treating her at once as the disinterested friend
- of Mr. Ferrars, and the kind of confidant of himself,
- talked to her a great deal of the parsonage at Delaford,
- described its deficiencies, and told her what he meant
- to do himself towards removing them.--His behaviour
- to her in this, as well as in every other particular,
- his open pleasure in meeting her after an absence
- of only ten days, his readiness to converse with her,
- and his deference for her opinion, might very well
- justify Mrs. Jennings's persuasion of his attachment,
- and would have been enough, perhaps, had not Elinor still,
- as from the first, believed Marianne his real favourite,
- to make her suspect it herself. But as it was,
- such a notion had scarcely ever entered her head,
- except by Mrs. Jennings's suggestion; and she could
- not help believing herself the nicest observer of the
- two;--she watched his eyes, while Mrs. Jennings thought
- only of his behaviour;--and while his looks of anxious
- solicitude on Marianne's feeling, in her head and throat,
- the beginning of a heavy cold, because unexpressed by words,
- entirely escaped the latter lady's observation;--SHE could
- discover in them the quick feelings, and needless alarm
- of a lover.
-
- Two delighful twilight walks on the third and fourth
- evenings of her being there, not merely on the dry gravel
- of the shrubbery, but all over the grounds, and especially
- in the most distant parts of them, where there was something
- more of wildness than in the rest, where the trees were
- the oldest, and the grass was the longest and wettest,
- had--assisted by the still greater imprudence of sitting
- in her wet shoes and stockings--given Marianne a cold
- so violent as, though for a day or two trifled with
- or denied, would force itself by increasing ailments on
- the concern of every body, and the notice of herself.
- Prescriptions poured in from all quarters, and as usual,
- were all declined. Though heavy and feverish, with a pain
- in her limbs, and a cough, and a sore throat, a good night's
- rest was to cure her entirely; and it was with difficulty
- that Elinor prevailed on her, when she went to bed,
- to try one or two of the simplest of the remedies.
-
-
-
- CHAPTER 43
-
-
- Marianne got up the next morning at her usual time;
- to every inquiry replied that she was better, and tried to
- prove herself so, by engaging in her accustomary employments.
- But a day spent in sitting shivering over the fire
- with a book in her hand, which she was unable to read,
- or in lying, weary and languid, on a sofa, did not speak
- much in favour of her amendment; and when, at last,
- she went early to bed, more and more indisposed, Colonel
- Brandon was only astonished at her sister's composure,
- who, though attending and nursing her the whole day,
- against Marianne inclination, and forcing proper medicines
- on her at night, trusted, like Marianne, to the certainty
- and efficacy of sleep, and felt no real alarm.
-
- A very restless and feverish night, however,
- disappointed the expectation of both; and when Marianne,
- after persisting in rising, confessed herself unable
- to sit up, and returned voluntarily to her bed,
- Elinor was very ready to adopt Mrs. Jennings's advice,
- of sending for the Palmers' apothecary.
-
- He came, examined his patient, and though encouraging
- Miss Dashwood to expect that a very few days would restore
- her sister to health, yet, by pronouncing her disorder
- to have a putrid tendency, and allowing the word "infection"
- to pass his lips, gave instant alarm to Mrs. Palmer,
- on her baby's account. Mrs. Jennings, who had been inclined
- from the first to think Marianne's complaint more serious
- than Elinor, now looked very grave on Mr. Harris's report,
- and confirming Charlotte's fears and caution, urged the
- necessity of her immediate removal with her infant;
- and Mr. Palmer, though treating their apprehensions as idle,
- found the anxiety and importunity of his wife too great
- to be withstood. Her departure, therefore, was fixed on;
- and within an hour after Mr. Harris's arrival, she set off,
- with her little boy and his nurse, for the house of a
- near relation of Mr. Palmer's, who lived a few miles
- on the other side of Bath; whither her husband promised,
- at her earnest entreaty, to join her in a day or two;
- and whither she was almost equally urgent with her
- mother to accompany her. Mrs. Jennings, however, with a
- kindness of heart which made Elinor really love her,
- declared her resolution of not stirring from Cleveland
- as long as Marianne remained ill, and of endeavouring,
- by her own attentive care, to supply to her the place
- of the mother she had taken her from; and Elinor found her
- on every occasion a most willing and active helpmate,
- desirous to share in all her fatigues, and often by her
- better experience in nursing, of material use.
-
- Poor Marianne, languid and low from the nature
- of her malady, and feeling herself universally ill,
- could no longer hope that tomorrow would find her recovered;
- and the idea of what tomorrow would have produced,
- but for this unlucky illness, made every ailment severe;
- for on that day they were to have begun their journey home;
- and, attended the whole way by a servant of Mrs. Jennings,
- were to have taken their mother by surprise on the
- following forenoon. The little she said was all in
- lamentation of this inevitable delay; though Elinor tried
- to raise her spirits, and make her believe, as she THEN
- really believed herself, that it would be a very short one.
-
- The next day produced little or no alteration in the
- state of the patient; she certainly was not better, and,
- except that there was no amendment, did not appear worse.
- Their party was now farther reduced; for Mr. Palmer,
- though very unwilling to go as well from real humanity
- and good-nature, as from a dislike of appearing to be
- frightened away by his wife, was persuaded at last
- by Colonel Brandon to perform his promise of following her;
- and while he was preparing to go, Colonel Brandon himself,
- with a much greater exertion, began to talk of going
- likewise.--Here, however, the kindness of Mrs. Jennings
- interposed most acceptably; for to send the Colonel away
- while his love was in so much uneasiness on her sister's
- account, would be to deprive them both, she thought,
- of every comfort; and therefore telling him at once
- that his stay at Cleveland was necessary to herself,
- that she should want him to play at piquet of an evening,
- while Miss Dashwood was above with her sister, &c. she
- urged him so strongly to remain, that he, who was gratifying
- the first wish of his own heart by a compliance, could not
- long even affect to demur; especially as Mrs. Jennings's
- entreaty was warmly seconded by Mr. Palmer, who seemed
- to feel a relief to himself, in leaving behind him a person
- so well able to assist or advise Miss Dashwood in any emergence.
-
- Marianne was, of course, kept in ignorance of all
- these arrangements. She knew not that she had been
- the means of sending the owners of Cleveland away,
- in about seven days from the time of their arrival.
- It gave her no surprise that she saw nothing of Mrs. Palmer;
- and as it gave her likewise no concern, she never mentioned
- her name.
-
- Two days passed away from the time of Mr. Palmer's departure,
- and her situation continued, with little variation,
- the same. Mr. Harris, who attended her every day,
- still talked boldly of a speedy recovery, and Miss Dashwood
- was equally sanguine; but the expectation of the others
- was by no means so cheerful. Mrs. Jennings had determined
- very early in the seizure that Marianne would never
- get over it, and Colonel Brandon, who was chiefly
- of use in listening to Mrs. Jennings's forebodings,
- was not in a state of mind to resist their influence.
- He tried to reason himself out of fears, which the different
- judgment of the apothecary seemed to render absurd;
- but the many hours of each day in which he was left
- entirely alone, were but too favourable for the admission
- of every melancholy idea, and he could not expel from
- his mind the persuasion that he should see Marianne no more.
-
- On the morning of the third day however, the gloomy
- anticipations of both were almost done away; for when
- Mr. Harris arrived, he declared his patient materially better.
- Her pulse was much stronger, and every symptom more favourable
- than on the preceding visit. Elinor, confirmed in every
- pleasant hope, was all cheerfulness; rejoicing that
- in her letters to her mother, she had pursued her own
- judgment rather than her friend's, in making very light
- of the indisposition which delayed them at Cleveland;
- and almost fixing on the time when Marianne would be able
- to travel.
-
- But the day did not close so auspiciously as it began.--
- Towards the evening Marianne became ill again, growing
- more heavy, restless, and uncomfortable than before.
- Her sister, however, still sanguine, was willing to
- attribute the change to nothing more than the fatigue
- of having sat up to have her bed made; and carefully
- administering the cordials prescribed, saw her, with
- satisfaction, sink at last into a slumber, from which
- she expected the most beneficial effects. Her sleep,
- though not so quiet as Elinor wished to see it,
- lasted a considerable time; and anxious to observe
- the result of it herself, she resolved to sit with her
- during the whole of it. Mrs. Jennings, knowing nothing
- of any change in the patient, went unusually early to bed;
- her maid, who was one of the principal nurses, was recreating
- herself in the housekeeper's room, and Elinor remained
- alone with Marianne.
-
- The repose of the latter became more and more disturbed;
- and her sister, who watched, with unremitting attention
- her continual change of posture, and heard the frequent
- but inarticulate sounds of complaint which passed her lips,
- was almost wishing to rouse her from so painful a slumber,
- when Marianne, suddenly awakened by some accidental noise
- in the house, started hastily up, and, with feverish wildness,
- cried out,--
-
- "Is mama coming?--"
-
- "Not yet," cried the other, concealing her terror,
- and assisting Marianne to lie down again, "but she will
- be here, I hope, before it is long. It is a great way,
- you know, from hence to Barton."
-
- "But she must not go round by London," cried Marianne,
- in the same hurried manner. "I shall never see her,
- if she goes by London."
-
- Elinor perceived with alarm that she was not
- quite herself, and, while attempting to soothe her,
- eagerly felt her pulse. It was lower and quicker than ever!
- and Marianne, still talking wildly of mama, her alarm
- increased so rapidly, as to determine her on sending
- instantly for Mr. Harris, and despatching a messenger
- to Barton for her mother. To consult with Colonel Brandon
- on the best means of effecting the latter, was a thought
- which immediately followed the resolution of its performance;
- and as soon she had rung up the maid to take her place
- by her sister, she hastened down to the drawing-room,
- where she knew he was generally to be found at a much
- later hour than the present.
-
- It was no time for hesitation. Her fears and her
- difficulties were immediately before him. Her fears,
- he had no courage, no confidence to attempt the removal of:--
- he listened to them in silent despondence;--but her
- difficulties were instantly obviated, for with a readiness
- that seemed to speak the occasion, and the service
- pre-arranged in his mind, he offered himself as the
- messenger who should fetch Mrs. Dashwood. Elinor made no
- resistance that was not easily overcome. She thanked him
- with brief, though fervent gratitude, and while he went
- to hurry off his servant with a message to Mr. Harris, and
- an order for post-horses directly, she wrote a few lines
- to her mother.
-
- The comfort of such a friend at that moment as Colonel
- Brandon--or such a companion for her mother,--how gratefully
- was it felt!--a companion whose judgment would guide,
- whose attendance must relieve, and whose friendship might
- soothe her!--as far as the shock of such a summons COULD
- be lessened to her, his presence, his manners, his assistance,
- would lessen it.
-
- HE, meanwhile, whatever he might feel, acted with all
- the firmness of a collected mind, made every necessary
- arrangement with the utmost despatch, and calculated
- with exactness the time in which she might look for
- his return. Not a moment was lost in delay of any kind.
- The horses arrived, even before they were expected,
- and Colonel Brandon only pressing her hand with a look
- of solemnity, and a few words spoken too low to reach her ear,
- hurried into the carriage. It was then about twelve
- o'clock, and she returned to her sister's apartment to wait
- for the arrival of the apothecary, and to watch by her
- the rest of the night. It was a night of almost equal
- suffering to both. Hour after hour passed away in sleepless
- pain and delirium on Marianne's side, and in the most
- cruel anxiety on Elinor's, before Mr. Harris appeared.
- Her apprehensions once raised, paid by their excess for all
- her former security; and the servant who sat up with her,
- for she would not allow Mrs. Jennings to be called,
- only tortured her more, by hints of what her mistress
- had always thought.
-
- Marianne's ideas were still, at intervals,
- fixed incoherently on her mother, and whenever she
- mentioned her name, it gave a pang to the heart of
- poor Elinor, who, reproaching herself for having trifled
- with so many days of illness, and wretched for some
- immediate relief, fancied that all relief might soon
- be in vain, that every thing had been delayed too long,
- and pictured to herself her suffering mother arriving
- too late to see this darling child, or to see her rational.
-
- She was on the point of sending again for Mr. Harris,
- or if HE could not come, for some other advice,
- when the former--but not till after five o'clock--arrived.
- His opinion, however, made some little amends for his delay,
- for though acknowledging a very unexpected and unpleasant
- alteration in his patient, he would not allow the danger
- to be material, and talked of the relief which a fresh
- mode of treatment must procure, with a confidence which,
- in a lesser degree, was communicated to Elinor. He promised
- to call again in the course of three or four hours,
- and left both the patient and her anxious attendant more
- composed than he had found them.
-
- With strong concern, and with many reproaches for not
- being called to their aid, did Mrs. Jennings hear in the
- morning of what had passed. Her former apprehensions,
- now with greater reason restored, left her no doubt of
- the event; and though trying to speak comfort to Elinor,
- her conviction of her sister's danger would not allow her
- to offer the comfort of hope. Her heart was really grieved.
- The rapid decay, the early death of a girl so young,
- so lovely as Marianne, must have struck a less interested
- person with concern. On Mrs. Jennings's compassion
- she had other claims. She had been for three months
- her companion, was still under her care, and she was
- known to have been greatly injured, and long unhappy.
- The distress of her sister too, particularly a favourite,
- was before her;--and as for their mother, when Mrs. Jennings
- considered that Marianne might probably be to HER what
- Charlotte was to herself, her sympathy in HER sufferings
- was very sincere.
-
- Mr. Harris was punctual in his second visit;--
- but he came to be disappointed in his hopes of what the
- last would produce. His medicines had failed;--the fever
- was unabated; and Marianne only more quiet--not more
- herself--remained in a heavy stupor. Elinor, catching all,
- and more than all, his fears in a moment, proposed to call
- in further advice. But he judged it unnecessary: he had
- still something more to try, some more fresh application,
- of whose success he was as confident as the last, and his
- visit concluded with encouraging assurances which reached
- the ear, but could not enter the heart of Miss Dashwood.
- She was calm, except when she thought of her mother;
- but she was almost hopeless; and in this state she continued
- till noon, scarcely stirring from her sister's bed,
- her thoughts wandering from one image of grief,
- one suffering friend to another, and her spirits oppressed
- to the utmost by the conversation of Mrs. Jennings,
- who scrupled not to attribute the severity and danger
- of this attack to the many weeks of previous indisposition
- which Marianne's disappointment had brought on.
- Elinor felt all the reasonableness of the idea, and it
- gave fresh misery to her reflections.
-
- About noon, however, she began--but with a caution--a
- dread of disappointment which for some time kept her silent,
- even to her friend--to fancy, to hope she could perceive
- a slight amendment in her sister's pulse;--she waited,
- watched, and examined it again and again;--and at last,
- with an agitation more difficult to bury under exterior calmness,
- than all her foregoing distress, ventured to communicate
- her hopes. Mrs. Jennings, though forced, on examination,
- to acknowledge a temporary revival, tried to keep her
- young friend from indulging a thought of its continuance;--
- and Elinor, conning over every injunction of distrust,
- told herself likewise not to hope. But it was too late.
- Hope had already entered; and feeling all its anxious flutter,
- she bent over her sister to watch--she hardly knew for what.
- Half an hour passed away, and the favourable symptom
- yet blessed her. Others even arose to confirm it.
- Her breath, her skin, her lips, all flattered Elinor
- with signs of amendment; and Marianne fixed her eyes on
- her with a rational, though languid, gaze. Anxiety and
- hope now oppressed her in equal degrees, and left her no
- moment of tranquillity till the arrival of Mr. Harris at
- four o'clock;--when his assurances, his felicitations on
- a recovery in her sister even surpassing his expectation,
- gave her confidence, comfort, and tears of joy.
-
- Marianne was in every respect materially better,
- and he declared her entirely out of danger. Mrs. Jennings,
- perhaps satisfied with the partial justification of her
- forebodings which had been found in their late alarm,
- allowed herself to trust in his judgment, and admitted,
- with unfeigned joy, and soon with unequivocal cheerfulness,
- the probability of an entire recovery.
-
- Elinor could not be cheerful. Her joy was of a
- different kind, and led to any thing rather than to gaiety.
- Marianne restored to life, health, friends, and to her
- doting mother, was an idea to fill her heart with sensations
- of exquisite comfort, and expand it in fervent gratitude;--
- but it lead to no outward demonstrations of joy, no words,
- no smiles. All within Elinor's breast was satisfaction,
- silent and strong.
-
- She continued by the side of her sister, with little
- intermission the whole afternoon, calming every fear,
- satisfying every inquiry of her enfeebled spirits,
- supplying every succour, and watching almost every look and
- every breath. The possibility of a relapse would of course,
- in some moments, occur to remind her of what anxiety was--
- but when she saw, on her frequent and minute examination,
- that every symptom of recovery continued, and saw Marianne
- at six o'clock sink into a quiet, steady, and to all
- appearance comfortable, sleep, she silenced every doubt.
-
- The time was now drawing on, when Colonel Brandon
- might be expected back. At ten o'clock, she trusted,
- or at least not much later her mother would be relieved
- from the dreadful suspense in which she must now be
- travelling towards them. The Colonel, too!--perhaps scarcely
- less an object of pity!--Oh!--how slow was the progress
- of time which yet kept them in ignorance!
-
- At seven o'clock, leaving Marianne still sweetly asleep,
- she joined Mrs. Jennings in the drawing-room to tea.
- Of breakfast she had been kept by her fears, and of
- dinner by their sudden reverse, from eating much;--
- and the present refreshment, therefore, with such feelings
- of content as she brought to it, was particularly welcome.
- Mrs. Jennings would have persuaded her, at its conclusion,
- to take some rest before her mother's arrival, and allow HER to
- take her place by Marianne; but Elinor had no sense of fatigue,
- no capability of sleep at that moment about her, and she was
- not to be kept away from her sister an unnecessary instant.
- Mrs. Jennings therefore attending her up stairs into the
- sick chamber, to satisfy herself that all continued right,
- left her there again to her charge and her thoughts,
- and retired to her own room to write letters and sleep.
-
- The night was cold and stormy. The wind roared
- round the house, and the rain beat against the windows;
- but Elinor, all happiness within, regarded it not.
- Marianne slept through every blast; and the travellers--
- they had a rich reward in store, for every present inconvenience.
-
- The clock struck eight. Had it been ten,
- Elinor would have been convinced that at that moment
- she heard a carriage driving up to the house;
- and so strong was the persuasion that she DID, in spite
- of the ALMOST impossibility of their being already come,
- that she moved into the adjoining dressing-closet and
- opened a window shutter, to be satisfied of the truth.
- She instantly saw that her ears had not deceived her.
- The flaring lamps of a carriage were immediately in view.
- By their uncertain light she thought she could discern it
- to be drawn by four horses; and this, while it told the
- excess of her poor mother's alarm, gave some explanation
- to such unexpected rapidity.
-
- Never in her life had Elinor found it so difficult
- to be calm, as at that moment. The knowledge of what her
- mother must be feeling as the carriage stopt at the door--
- of her doubt--her dread--perhaps her despair!--and
- of what SHE had to tell!--with such knowledge it was
- impossible to be calm. All that remained to be done
- was to be speedy; and, therefore staying only till
- she could leave Mrs. Jennings's maid with her sister,
- she hurried down stairs.
-
- The bustle in the vestibule, as she passed along
- an inner lobby, assured her that they were already
- in the house. She rushed to the drawing-room,--she
- entered it,--and saw only Willoughby.
-
-
-
- CHAPTER 44
-
-
- Elinor, starting back with a look of horror at
- the sight of him, obeyed the first impulse of her heart
- in turning instantly to quit the room, and her hand
- was already on the lock, when its action was suspended
- by his hastily advancing, and saying, in a voice rather
- of command than supplication,
-
- "Miss Dashwood, for half an hour--for ten minutes--
- I entreat you to stay."
-
- "No, sir," she replied with firmness, "I shall NOT stay.
- Your business cannot be with ME. The servants, I suppose,
- forgot to tell you that Mr. Palmer was not in the house."
-
- "Had they told me," he cried with vehemence,
- "that Mr. Palmer and all his relations were at the devil,
- it would not have turned me from the door. My business
- is with you, and only you."
-
- "With me!"--in the utmost amazement--"well, sir,--
- be quick--and if you can--less violent."
-
- "Sit down, and I will be both."
-
- She hesitated; she knew not what to do. The possibility
- of Colonel Brandon's arriving and finding her there,
- came across her. But she had promised to hear him,
- and her curiosity no less than her honor was engaged.
- After a moment's recollection, therefore, concluding that
- prudence required dispatch, and that her acquiescence would
- best promote it, she walked silently towards the table,
- and sat down. He took the opposite chair, and for half
- a minute not a word was said by either.
-
- "Pray be quick, sir,"--said Elinor, impatiently;--
- "I have no time to spare."
-
- He was sitting in an attitude of deep meditation,
- and seemed not to hear her.
-
- "Your sister," said he, with abruptness, a moment
- afterwards--"is out of danger. I heard it from the servant.
- God be praised!--But is it true? is it really true?"
-
- Elinor would not speak. He repeated the inquiry
- with yet greater eagerness.
-
- "For God's sake tell me, is she out of danger,
- or is she not?"
-
- "We hope she is."
-
- He rose up, and walked across the room.
-
- "Had I known as much half an hour ago--But
- since I AM here,"--speaking with a forced vivacity as he
- returned to his seat--"what does it signify?--For once,
- Miss Dashwood--it will be the last time, perhaps--let us
- be cheerful together.--I am in a fine mood for gaiety.--
- Tell me honestly"--a deeper glow overspreading his cheeks--
- "do you think me most a knave or a fool?"
-
- Elinor looked at him with greater astonishment than ever.
- She began to think that be must be in liquor;--the
- strangeness of such a visit, and of such manners,
- seemed no otherwise intelligible; and with this impression
- she immediately rose, saying,
-
- "Mr. Willoughby, I advise you at present to return
- to Combe--I am not at leisure to remain with you longer.--
- Whatever your business may be with me, will it be better
- recollected and explained to-morrow."
-
- "I understand you," he replied, with an expressive smile,
- and a voice perfectly calm; "yes, I am very drunk.--
- A pint of porter with my cold beef at Marlborough was
- enough to over-set me."
-
- "At Marlborough!"--cried Elinor, more and more at
- a loss to understand what he would be at.
-
- "Yes,--I left London this morning at eight o'clock,
- and the only ten minutes I have spent out of my chaise
- since that time procured me a nuncheon at Marlborough."
-
- The steadiness of his manner, and the intelligence
- of his eye as he spoke, convincing Elinor, that whatever
- other unpardonable folly might bring him to Cleveland,
- he was not brought there by intoxication, she said,
- after a moment's recollection,
-
- "Mr. Willoughby, you OUGHT to feel, and I certainly
- DO--that after what has passed--your coming here in
- this manner, and forcing yourself upon my notice,
- requires a very particular excuse.--What is it,
- that you mean by it?"--
-
- "I mean,"--said he, with serious energy--"if I can,
- to make you hate me one degree less than you do NOW.
- I mean to offer some kind of explanation, some kind
- of apology, for the past; to open my whole heart to you,
- and by convincing you, that though I have been always
- a blockhead, I have not been always a rascal, to obtain
- something like forgiveness from Ma--from your sister."
-
- "Is this the real reason of your coming?"
-
- "Upon my soul it is,"--was his answer, with a warmth
- which brought all the former Willoughby to her remembrance,
- and in spite of herself made her think him sincere.
-
- "If that is all, you may be satisfied already,--
- for Marianne DOES--she has LONG forgiven you."
-
- "Has she?"--he cried, in the same eager tone.--
- "Then she has forgiven me before she ought to have done it.
- But she shall forgive me again, and on more reasonable
- grounds.--NOW will you listen to me?"
-
- Elinor bowed her assent.
-
- "I do not know," said he, after a pause of expectation
- on her side, and thoughtfulness on his own,--"how YOU
- may have accounted for my behaviour to your sister,
- or what diabolical motive you may have imputed to me.--
- Perhaps you will hardly think the better of me,--it is
- worth the trial however, and you shall hear every thing.
- When I first became intimate in your family, I had no
- other intention, no other view in the acquaintance
- than to pass my time pleasantly while I was obliged to remain
- in Devonshire, more pleasantly than I had ever done before.
- Your sister's lovely person and interesting manners
- could not but please me; and her behaviour to me almost
- from the first, was of a kind--It is astonishing,
- when I reflect on what it was, and what SHE was, that my
- heart should have been so insensible! But at first
- I must confess, my vanity only was elevated by it.
- Careless of her happiness, thinking only of my own amusement,
- giving way to feelings which I had always been too much
- in the habit of indulging, I endeavoured, by every means
- in my power, to make myself pleasing to her, without any
- design of returning her affection."
-
- Miss Dashwood, at this point, turning her eyes on him
- with the most angry contempt, stopped him, by saying,
-
- "It is hardly worth while, Mr. Willoughby,
- for you to relate, or for me to listen any longer.
- Such a beginning as this cannot be followed by any thing.--
- Do not let me be pained by hearing any thing more on
- the subject."
-
- "I insist on you hearing the whole of it," he replied,
- "My fortune was never large, and I had always been expensive,
- always in the habit of associating with people of better
- income than myself. Every year since my coming of age,
- or even before, I believe, had added to my debts; and though
- the death of my old cousin, Mrs. Smith, was to set me free;
- yet that event being uncertain, and possibly far distant,
- it had been for some time my intention to re-establish my
- circumstances by marrying a woman of fortune. To attach
- myself to your sister, therefore, was not a thing to be
- thought of;--and with a meanness, selfishness, cruelty--
- which no indignant, no contemptuous look, even of yours,
- Miss Dashwood, can ever reprobate too much--I was acting
- in this manner, trying to engage her regard, without a
- thought of returning it.--But one thing may be said
- for me: even in that horrid state of selfish vanity,
- I did not know the extent of the injury I meditated,
- because I did not THEN know what it was to love.
- But have I ever known it?--Well may it be doubted; for, had I
- really loved, could I have sacrificed my feelings to vanity,
- to avarice?--or, what is more, could I have sacrificed hers?--
- But I have done it. To avoid a comparative poverty,
- which her affection and her society would have deprived
- of all its horrors, I have, by raising myself to affluence,
- lost every thing that could make it a blessing."
-
- "You did then," said Elinor, a little softened,
- "believe yourself at one time attached to her?"
-
- "To have resisted such attractions, to have withstood
- such tenderness!--Is there a man on earth who could have
- done it?--Yes, I found myself, by insensible degrees,
- sincerely fond of her; and the happiest hours of my life
- were what I spent with her when I felt my intentions
- were strictly honourable, and my feelings blameless.
- Even THEN, however, when fully determined on paying
- my addresses to her, I allowed myself most improperly
- to put off, from day to day, the moment of doing it,
- from an unwillingness to enter into an engagement
- while my circumstances were so greatly embarrassed.
- I will not reason here--nor will I stop for YOU to expatiate
- on the absurdity, and the worse than absurdity, of scrupling
- to engage my faith where my honour was already bound.
- The event has proved, that I was a cunning fool,
- providing with great circumspection for a possible
- opportunity of making myself contemptible and wretched
- for ever. At last, however, my resolution was taken,
- and I had determined, as soon as I could engage her alone,
- to justify the attentions I had so invariably paid her,
- and openly assure her of an affection which I had already
- taken such pains to display. But in the interim--in the
- interim of the very few hours that were to pass, before I
- could have an opportunity of speaking with her in private--
- a circumstance occurred--an unlucky circumstance, to ruin
- all my resolution, and with it all my comfort. A discovery
- took place,"--here he hesitated and looked down.--"Mrs. Smith
- had somehow or other been informed, I imagine by some
- distant relation, whose interest it was to deprive me of
- her favour, of an affair, a connection--but I need not
- explain myself farther," he added, looking at her with an
- heightened colour and an enquiring eye--"your particular
- intimacy--you have probably heard the whole story long ago."
-
- "I have," returned Elinor, colouring likewise,
- and hardening her heart anew against any compassion for him,
- "I have heard it all. And how you will explain away any
- part of your guilt in that dreadful business, I confess
- is beyond my comprehension."
-
- "Remember," cried Willoughby, "from whom you received
- the account. Could it be an impartial one? I acknowledge
- that her situation and her character ought to have been
- respected by me. I do not mean to justify myself, but at
- the same time cannot leave you to suppose that I have nothing
- to urge--that because she was injured she was irreproachable,
- and because I was a libertine, SHE must be a saint.
- If the violence of her passions, the weakness of her
- understanding--I do not mean, however, to defend myself.
- Her affection for me deserved better treatment, and I often,
- with great self-reproach, recall the tenderness which,
- for a very short time, had the power of creating any return.
- I wish--I heartily wish it had never been. But I have injured
- more than herself; and I have injured one, whose affection
- for me--(may I say it?) was scarcely less warm than hers;
- and whose mind--Oh! how infinitely superior!"--
-
- "Your indifference, however, towards that unfortunate
- girl--I must say it, unpleasant to me as the discussion
- of such a subject may well be--your indifference is no
- apology for your cruel neglect of her. Do not think yourself
- excused by any weakness, any natural defect of understanding
- on her side, in the wanton cruelty so evident on yours.
- You must have known, that while you were enjoying yourself
- in Devonshire pursuing fresh schemes, always gay,
- always happy, she was reduced to the extremest indigence."
-
- "But, upon my soul, I did NOT know it," he warmly
- replied; "I did not recollect that I had omitted to give
- her my direction; and common sense might have told her
- how to find it out."
-
- "Well, sir, and what said Mrs. Smith?"
-
- "She taxed me with the offence at once, and my confusion
- may be guessed. The purity of her life, the formality
- of her notions, her ignorance of the world--every thing
- was against me. The matter itself I could not deny,
- and vain was every endeavour to soften it. She was
- previously disposed, I believe, to doubt the morality of my
- conduct in general, and was moreover discontented with
- the very little attention, the very little portion of my
- time that I had bestowed on her, in my present visit.
- In short, it ended in a total breach. By one measure I
- might have saved myself. In the height of her morality,
- good woman! she offered to forgive the past, if I would
- marry Eliza. That could not be--and I was formally
- dismissed from her favour and her house. The night
- following this affair--I was to go the next morning--
- was spent by me in deliberating on what my future conduct
- should be. The struggle was great--but it ended too soon.
- My affection for Marianne, my thorough conviction of her
- attachment to me--it was all insufficient to outweigh
- that dread of poverty, or get the better of those false
- ideas of the necessity of riches, which I was naturally
- inclined to feel, and expensive society had increased.
- I had reason to believe myself secure of my present wife,
- if I chose to address her, and I persuaded myself to think
- that nothing else in common prudence remained for me to do.
- A heavy scene however awaited me, before I could leave
- Devonshire;--I was engaged to dine with you on that very day;
- some apology was therefore necessary for my breaking
- this engagement. But whether I should write this apology,
- or deliver it in person, was a point of long debate.
- To see Marianne, I felt, would be dreadful, and I even doubted
- whether I could see her again, and keep to my resolution.
- In that point, however, I undervalued my own magnanimity,
- as the event declared; for I went, I saw her, and saw
- her miserable, and left her miserable--and left her hoping
- never to see her again."
-
- "Why did you call, Mr. Willoughby?" said Elinor,
- reproachfully; "a note would have answered every purpose.--
- Why was it necessary to call?"
-
- "It was necessary to my own pride. I could not bear
- to leave the country in a manner that might lead you,
- or the rest of the neighbourhood, to suspect any part
- of what had really passed between Mrs. Smith and myself--
- and I resolved therefore on calling at the cottage,
- in my way to Honiton. The sight of your dear sister,
- however, was really dreadful; and, to heighten the matter,
- I found her alone. You were all gone I do not know where.
- I had left her only the evening before, so fully,
- so firmly resolved within my self on doing right!
- A few hours were to have engaged her to me for ever;
- and I remember how happy, how gay were my spirits, as I
- walked from the cottage to Allenham, satisfied with myself,
- delighted with every body! But in this, our last interview
- of friendship, I approached her with a sense of guilt
- that almost took from me the power of dissembling.
- Her sorrow, her disappointment, her deep regret, when I told
- her that I was obliged to leave Devonshire so immediately--I
- never shall forget it--united too with such reliance,
- such confidence in me!--Oh, God!--what a hard-hearted rascal
- I was!"
-
- They were both silent for a few moments.
- Elinor first spoke.
-
- "Did you tell her that you should soon return?"
-
- "I do not know what I told her," he replied, impatiently;
- "less than was due to the past, beyond a doubt, and in all
- likelihood much more than was justified by the future.
- I cannot think of it.--It won't do.--Then came your dear mother
- to torture me farther, with all her kindness and confidence.
- Thank Heaven! it DID torture me. I was miserable.
- Miss Dashwood, you cannot have an idea of the comfort it
- gives me to look back on my own misery. I owe such a grudge
- to myself for the stupid, rascally folly of my own heart,
- that all my past sufferings under it are only triumph and
- exultation to me now. Well, I went, left all that I loved,
- and went to those to whom, at best, I was only indifferent.
- My journey to town--travelling with my own horses,
- and therefore so tediously--no creature to speak to--my
- own reflections so cheerful--when I looked forward
- every thing so inviting!--when I looked back at Barton,
- the picture so soothing!--oh, it was a blessed journey!"
-
- He stopped.
-
- "Well, sir," said Elinor, who, though pitying him,
- grew impatient for his departure, "and this is all?"
-
- "Ah!--no,--have you forgot what passed in town?--
- That infamous letter--Did she shew it you?"
-
- "Yes, I saw every note that passed."
-
- "When the first of hers reached me (as it immediately did,
- for I was in town the whole time,) what I felt is--
- in the common phrase, not to be expressed; in a more
- simple one--perhaps too simple to raise any emotion--
- my feelings were very, very painful.--Every line, every word
- was--in the hackneyed metaphor which their dear writer,
- were she here, would forbid--a dagger to my heart.
- To know that Marianne was in town was--in the same language--
- a thunderbolt.--Thunderbolts and daggers!--what a reproof
- would she have given me!--her taste, her opinions--I believe
- they are better known to me than my own,--and I am sure
- they are dearer."
-
- Elinor's heart, which had undergone many changes
- in the course of this extraordinary conversation,
- was now softened again;--yet she felt it her duty to check
- such ideas in her companion as the last.
-
- "This is not right, Mr. Willoughby.--Remember that
- you are married. Relate only what in your conscience
- you think necessary for me to hear."
-
- "Marianne's note, by assuring me that I was still
- as dear to her as in former days, that in spite of the many,
- many weeks we had been separated, she was as constant
- in her own feelings, and as full of faith in the constancy
- of mine as ever, awakened all my remorse. I say awakened,
- because time and London, business and dissipation,
- had in some measure quieted it, and I had been growing
- a fine hardened villain, fancying myself indifferent to her,
- and chusing to fancy that she too must have become
- indifferent to me; talking to myself of our past attachment
- as a mere idle, trifling business, shrugging up my shoulders
- in proof of its being so, and silencing every reproach,
- overcoming every scruple, by secretly saying now and then,
- 'I shall be heartily glad to hear she is well married.'--
- But this note made me know myself better. I felt that
- she was infinitely dearer to me than any other woman
- in the world, and that I was using her infamously.
- But every thing was then just settled between Miss Grey
- and me. To retreat was impossible. All that I had to do,
- was to avoid you both. I sent no answer to Marianne,
- intending by that to preserve myself from her farther notice;
- and for some time I was even determined not to call in
- Berkeley Street;--but at last, judging it wiser to affect
- the air of a cool, common acquaintance than anything else,
- I watched you all safely out of the house one morning,
- and left my name."
-
- "Watched us out of the house!"
-
- "Even so. You would be surprised to hear how often
- I watched you, how often I was on the point of falling
- in with you. I have entered many a shop to avoid your sight,
- as the carriage drove by. Lodging as I did in Bond Street,
- there was hardly a day in which I did not catch a glimpse
- of one or other of you; and nothing but the most constant
- watchfulness on my side, a most invariably prevailing
- desire to keep out of your sight, could have separated us
- so long. I avoided the Middletons as much as possible,
- as well as everybody else who was likely to prove
- an acquaintance in common. Not aware of their being
- in town, however, I blundered on Sir John, I believe,
- the first day of his coming, and the day after I had called
- at Mrs. Jennings's. He asked me to a party, a dance at his
- house in the evening.--Had he NOT told me as an inducement
- that you and your sister were to be there, I should have
- felt it too certain a thing, to trust myself near him.
- The next morning brought another short note from Marianne--
- still affectionate, open, artless, confiding--everything
- that could make MY conduct most hateful. I could not
- answer it. I tried--but could not frame a sentence.
- But I thought of her, I believe, every moment of the day.
- If you CAN pity me, Miss Dashwood, pity my situation as it
- was THEN. With my head and heart full of your sister,
- I was forced to play the happy lover to another woman!--Those
- three or four weeks were worse than all. Well, at last,
- as I need not tell you, you were forced on me; and what a
- sweet figure I cut!--what an evening of agony it was!--
- Marianne, beautiful as an angel on one side, calling me
- Willoughby in such a tone!--Oh, God!--holding out her hand
- to me, asking me for an explanation, with those bewitching
- eyes fixed in such speaking solicitude on my face!--and
- Sophia, jealous as the devil on the other hand, looking
- all that was--Well, it does not signify; it is over now.--
- Such an evening!--I ran away from you all as soon as I could;
- but not before I had seen Marianne's sweet face as white
- as death.--THAT was the last, last look I ever had of her;--
- the last manner in which she appeared to me. It was a horrid
- sight!--yet when I thought of her to-day as really dying,
- it was a kind of comfort to me to imagine that I knew
- exactly how she would appear to those, who saw her last
- in this world. She was before me, constantly before me,
- as I travelled, in the same look and hue."
-
- A short pause of mutual thoughtfulness succeeded.
- Willoughby first rousing himself, broke it thus:
-
- "Well, let me make haste and be gone. Your sister
- is certainly better, certainly out of danger?"
-
- "We are assured of it."
-
- "Your poor mother, too!--doting on Marianne."
-
- "But the letter, Mr. Willoughby, your own letter;
- have you any thing to say about that?"
-
- "Yes, yes, THAT in particular. Your sister
- wrote to me again, you know, the very next morning.
- You saw what she said. I was breakfasting at the
- Ellisons,--and her letter, with some others, was brought
- to me there from my lodgings. It happened to catch
- Sophia's eye before it caught mine--and its size,
- the elegance of the paper, the hand-writing altogether,
- immediately gave her a suspicion. Some vague report had
- reached her before of my attachment to some young lady
- in Devonshire, and what had passed within her observation
- the preceding evening had marked who the young lady was,
- and made her more jealous than ever. Affecting that air
- of playfulness, therefore, which is delightful in a woman
- one loves, she opened the letter directly, and read
- its contents. She was well paid for her impudence.
- She read what made her wretched. Her wretchedness I could
- have borne, but her passion--her malice--At all events it
- must be appeased. And, in short--what do you think of my
- wife's style of letter-writing?--delicate--tender--
- truly feminine--was it not?"
-
- "Your wife!--The letter was in your own hand-writing."
-
- "Yes, but I had only the credit of servilely copying
- such sentences as I was ashamed to put my name to.
- The original was all her own--her own happy thoughts
- and gentle diction. But what could I do!--we were engaged,
- every thing in preparation, the day almost fixed--But I am
- talking like a fool. Preparation!--day!--In honest words,
- her money was necessary to me, and in a situation like
- mine, any thing was to be done to prevent a rupture.
- And after all, what did it signify to my character
- in the opinion of Marianne and her friends, in what language
- my answer was couched?--It must have been only to one end.
- My business was to declare myself a scoundrel, and whether
- I did it with a bow or a bluster was of little importance.--
- 'I am ruined for ever in their opinion--' said I to
- myself--'I am shut out for ever from their society,
- they already think me an unprincipled fellow, this letter
- will only make them think me a blackguard one.' Such were
- my reasonings, as, in a sort of desperate carelessness,
- I copied my wife's words, and parted with the last relics
- of Marianne. Her three notes--unluckily they were all
- in my pocketbook, or I should have denied their existence,
- and hoarded them for ever--I was forced to put them up,
- and could not even kiss them. And the lock of hair--that too
- I had always carried about me in the same pocket-book,
- which was now searched by Madam with the most ingratiating
- virulence,--the dear lock--all, every memento was torn
- from me."
-
- "You are very wrong, Mr. Willoughby, very blamable,"
- said Elinor, while her voice, in spite of herself,
- betrayed her compassionate emotion; "you ought not to speak
- in this way, either of Mrs. Willoughby or my sister.
- You had made your own choice. It was not forced on you.
- Your wife has a claim to your politeness, to your respect,
- at least. She must be attached to you, or she would not
- have married you. To treat her with unkindness, to speak
- of her slightingly is no atonement to Marianne--nor can I
- suppose it a relief to your own conscience."
-
- "Do not talk to me of my wife," said he with a heavy sigh.--
- "She does not deserve your compassion.--She knew I had no
- regard for her when we married.--Well, married we were,
- and came down to Combe Magna to be happy, and afterwards
- returned to town to be gay.--And now do you pity me,
- Miss Dashwood?--or have I said all this to no purpose?--
- Am I--be it only one degree--am I less guilty in your opinion
- than I was before?--My intentions were not always wrong.
- Have I explained away any part of my guilt?"
-
- "Yes, you have certainly removed something--a little.--
- You have proved yourself, on the whole, less faulty than I
- had believed you. You have proved your heart less wicked,
- much less wicked. But I hardly know--the misery that
- you have inflicted--I hardly know what could have made
- it worse."
-
- "Will you repeat to your sister when she is recovered,
- what I have been telling you?--Let me be a little lightened
- too in her opinion as well as in yours. You tell me that
- she has forgiven me already. Let me be able to fancy that
- a better knowledge of my heart, and of my present feelings,
- will draw from her a more spontaneous, more natural, more
- gentle, less dignified, forgiveness. Tell her of my misery
- and my penitence--tell her that my heart was never inconstant
- to her, and if you will, that at this moment she is dearer
- to me than ever."
-
- "I will tell her all that is necessary to what may
- comparatively be called, your justification. But you have
- not explained to me the particular reason of your coming now,
- nor how you heard of her illness."
-
- "Last night, in Drury Lane lobby, I ran against Sir
- John Middleton, and when he saw who I was--for the first
- time these two months--he spoke to me.--That he had cut
- me ever since my marriage, I had seen without surprise
- or resentment. Now, however, his good-natured, honest,
- stupid soul, full of indignation against me, and concern
- for your sister, could not resist the temptation of telling
- me what he knew ought to--though probably he did not
- think it WOULD--vex me horridly. As bluntly as he could
- speak it, therefore, he told me that Marianne Dashwood
- was dying of a putrid fever at Cleveland--a letter that
- morning received from Mrs. Jennings declared her danger
- most imminent--the Palmers are all gone off in a fright,
- &c.--I was too much shocked to be able to pass myself
- off as insensible even to the undiscerning Sir John.
- His heart was softened in seeing mine suffer; and so much
- of his ill-will was done away, that when we parted,
- he almost shook me by the hand while he reminded me of an
- old promise about a pointer puppy. What I felt on hearing
- that your sister was dying--and dying too, believing me
- the greatest villain upon earth, scorning, hating me
- in her latest moments--for how could I tell what horrid
- projects might not have been imputed? ONE person I
- was sure would represent me as capable of any thing--
- What I felt was dreadful!--My resolution was soon made,
- and at eight o'clock this morning I was in my carriage.
- Now you know all."
-
- Elinor made no answer. Her thoughts were silently fixed
- on the irreparable injury which too early an independence
- and its consequent habits of idleness, dissipation, and luxury,
- had made in the mind, the character, the happiness,
- of a man who, to every advantage of person and talents,
- united a disposition naturally open and honest, and a
- feeling, affectionate temper. The world had made him
- extravagant and vain--Extravagance and vanity had made him
- cold-hearted and selfish. Vanity, while seeking its own
- guilty triumph at the expense of another, had involved
- him in a real attachment, which extravagance, or at least
- its offspring, necessity, had required to be sacrificed.
- Each faulty propensity in leading him to evil, had led
- him likewise to punishment. The attachment, from which
- against honour, against feeling, against every better interest
- he had outwardly torn himself, now, when no longer allowable,
- governed every thought; and the connection, for the sake
- of which he had, with little scruple, left her sister
- to misery, was likely to prove a source of unhappiness
- to himself of a far more incurable nature. From a reverie
- of this kind she was recalled at the end of some minutes
- by Willoughby, who, rousing himself from a reverie at least
- equally painful, started up in preparation for going, and said--
-
- "There is no use in staying here; I must be off."
-
- "Are you going back to town?"
-
- "No--to Combe Magna. I have business there;
- from thence to town in a day or two. Good bye."
-
- He held out his hand. She could not refuse to give
- him hers's;--he pressed it with affection.
-
- "And you DO think something better of me than
- you did?"--said he, letting it fall, and leaning against
- the mantel-piece as if forgetting he was to go.
-
- Elinor assured him that she did;--that she forgave,
- pitied, wished him well--was even interested in his
- happiness--and added some gentle counsel as to the behaviour
- most likely to promote it. His answer was not very encouraging.
-
- "As to that," said he, "I must rub through the world
- as well as I can. Domestic happiness is out of the question.
- If, however, I am allowed to think that you and yours feel
- an interest in my fate and actions, it may be the means--it
- may put me on my guard--at least, it may be something to
- live for. Marianne to be sure is lost to me for ever.
- Were I even by any blessed chance at liberty again--"
-
- Elinor stopped him with a reproof.
-
- "Well,"--he replied--"once more good bye. I shall
- now go away and live in dread of one event."
-
- "What do you mean?"
-
- "Your sister's marriage."
-
- "You are very wrong. She can never be more lost
- to you than she is now."
-
- "But she will be gained by some one else. And if
- that some one should be the very he whom, of all others,
- I could least bear--but I will not stay to rob myself
- of all your compassionate goodwill, by shewing
- that where I have most injured I can least forgive.
- Good bye,--God bless you!"
-
- And with these words, he almost ran out of the room.
-
-
-
- CHAPTER 45
-
-
- Elinor, for some time after he left her, for some time
- even after the sound of his carriage had died away, remained
- too much oppressed by a crowd of ideas, widely differing in
- themselves, but of which sadness was the general result,
- to think even of her sister.
-
- Willoughby, he, whom only half an hour ago she had
- abhorred as the most worthless of men, Willoughby, in spite
- of all his faults, excited a degree of commiseration
- for the sufferings produced by them, which made her
- think of him as now separated for ever from her family,
- with a tenderness, a regret, rather in proportion, as she
- soon acknowledged within herself--to his wishes than to
- his merits. She felt that his influence over her mind
- was heightened by circumstances which ought not in reason
- to have weight; by that person of uncommon attraction,
- that open, affectionate, and lively manner which it
- was no merit to possess; and by that still ardent love
- for Marianne, which it was not even innocent to indulge.
- But she felt that it was so, long, long before she could
- feel his influence less.
-
- When at last she returned to the unconscious Marianne,
- she found her just awaking, refreshed by so long and sweet
- a sleep to the extent of her hopes. Elinor's heart was full.
- The past, the present, the future, Willoughby's visit,
- Marianne's safety, and her mother's expected arrival,
- threw her altogether into an agitation of spirits
- which kept off every indication of fatigue, and made
- her only fearful of betraying herself to her sister.
- Short was the time, however, in which that fear could
- affect her, for within half an hour after Willoughby's
- leaving the house, she was again called down stairs
- by the sound of another carriage.--Eager to save her
- mother from every unnecessary moment's horrible suspense,
- she ran immediately into the hall, and reached the outward
- door just in time to receive and support her as she
- entered it.
-
- Mrs. Dashwood, whose terror as they drew near the
- house had produced almost the conviction of Marianne's
- being no more, had no voice to inquire after her,
- no voice even for Elinor; but SHE, waiting neither for
- salutation nor inquiry, instantly gave the joyful relief;--
- and her mother, catching it with all her usual warmth,
- was in a moment as much overcome by her happiness, as she
- had been before by her fears. She was supported into
- the drawing-room between her daughter and her friend;--
- and there, shedding tears of joy, though still unable
- to speak, embraced Elinor again and again, turning from her
- at intervals to press Colonel Brandon's hand, with a look
- which spoke at once her gratitude, and her conviction
- of his sharing with herself in the bliss of the moment.
- He shared it, however, in a silence even greater than
- her own.
-
- As soon as Mrs. Dashwood had recovered herself,
- to see Marianne was her first desire; and in two minutes she
- was with her beloved child, rendered dearer to her than ever
- by absence, unhappiness, and danger. Elinor's delight,
- as she saw what each felt in the meeting, was only checked
- by an apprehension of its robbing Marianne of farther sleep;--
- but Mrs. Dashwood could be calm, could be even prudent,
- when the life of a child was at stake, and Marianne,
- satisfied in knowing her mother was near her, and conscious
- of being too weak for conversation, submitted readily to the
- silence and quiet prescribed by every nurse around her.
- Mrs. Dashwood WOULD sit up with her all night; and Elinor,
- in compliance with her mother's entreaty, went to bed.
- But the rest, which one night entirely sleepless,
- and many hours of the most wearing anxiety seemed to
- make requisite, was kept off by irritation of spirits.
- Willoughby, "poor Willoughby," as she now allowed
- herself to call him, was constantly in her thoughts; she
- would not but have heard his vindication for the world,
- and now blamed, now acquitted herself for having judged him
- so harshly before. But her promise of relating it to her
- sister was invariably painful. She dreaded the performance
- of it, dreaded what its effect on Marianne might be;
- doubted whether after such an explanation she could ever
- be happy with another; and for a moment wished Willoughby
- a widower. Then, remembering Colonel Brandon, reproved herself,
- felt that to HIS sufferings and his constancy far more
- than to his rival's, the reward of her sister was due,
- and wished any thing rather than Mrs. Willoughby's death.
-
- The shock of Colonel Brandon's errand at Barton had been
- much softened to Mrs. Dashwood by her own previous alarm;
- for so great was her uneasiness about Marianne, that she
- had already determined to set out for Cleveland on that
- very day, without waiting for any further intelligence,
- and had so far settled her journey before his arrival,
- that the Careys were then expected every moment to fetch
- Margaret away, as her mother was unwilling to take her
- where there might be infection.
-
- Marianne continued to mend every day, and the brilliant
- cheerfulness of Mrs. Dashwood's looks and spirits proved
- her to be, as she repeatedly declared herself, one of
- the happiest women in the world. Elinor could not hear
- the declaration, nor witness its proofs without sometimes
- wondering whether her mother ever recollected Edward.
- But Mrs. Dashwood, trusting to the temperate account
- of her own disappointment which Elinor had sent her,
- was led away by the exuberance of her joy to think only
- of what would increase it. Marianne was restored to her
- from a danger in which, as she now began to feel,
- her own mistaken judgment in encouraging the unfortunate
- attachment to Willoughby, had contributed to place her;--
- and in her recovery she had yet another source of joy
- unthought of by Elinor. It was thus imparted to her,
- as soon as any opportunity of private conference between
- them occurred.
-
- "At last we are alone. My Elinor, you do not yet
- know all my happiness. Colonel Brandon loves Marianne.
- He has told me so himself."
-
- Her daughter, feeling by turns both pleased and pained,
- surprised and not surprised, was all silent attention.
-
- "You are never like me, dear Elinor, or I should
- wonder at your composure now. Had I sat down to wish
- for any possible good to my family, I should have fixed
- on Colonel Brandon's marrying one of you as the object
- most desirable. And I believe Marianne will be the most
- happy with him of the two."
-
- Elinor was half inclined to ask her reason for thinking so,
- because satisfied that none founded on an impartial
- consideration of their age, characters, or feelings,
- could be given;--but her mother must always be carried
- away by her imagination on any interesting subject,
- and therefore instead of an inquiry, she passed it off with a smile.
-
- "He opened his whole heart to me yesterday as we travelled.
- It came out quite unawares, quite undesignedly. I, you may
- well believe, could talk of nothing but my child;--he could
- not conceal his distress; I saw that it equalled my own,
- and he perhaps, thinking that mere friendship, as the world
- now goes, would not justify so warm a sympathy--or rather,
- not thinking at all, I suppose--giving way to irresistible
- feelings, made me acquainted with his earnest, tender, constant,
- affection for Marianne. He has loved her, my Elinor, ever since
- the first moment of seeing her."
-
- Here, however, Elinor perceived,--not the language,
- not the professions of Colonel Brandon, but the natural
- embellishments of her mother's active fancy, which fashioned
- every thing delightful to her as it chose.
-
- "His regard for her, infinitely surpassing anything
- that Willoughby ever felt or feigned, as much more warm,
- as more sincere or constant--which ever we are to call it--
- has subsisted through all the knowledge of dear Marianne's
- unhappy prepossession for that worthless young man!--and
- without selfishness--without encouraging a hope!--could
- he have seen her happy with another--Such a noble mind!--
- such openness, such sincerity!--no one can be deceived
- in HIM."
-
- "Colonel Brandon's character," said Elinor,
- "as an excellent man, is well established."
-
- "I know it is"--replied her mother seriously, "or
- after such a warning, I should be the last to encourage
- such affection, or even to be pleased by it. But his coming
- for me as he did, with such active, such ready friendship,
- is enough to prove him one of the worthiest of men."
-
- "His character, however," answered Elinor, "does not rest
- on ONE act of kindness, to which his affection for Marianne,
- were humanity out of the case, would have prompted him.
- To Mrs. Jennings, to the Middletons, he has been long
- and intimately known; they equally love and respect him;
- and even my own knowledge of him, though lately acquired,
- is very considerable; and so highly do I value and esteem him,
- that if Marianne can be happy with him, I shall be as ready
- as yourself to think our connection the greatest blessing
- to us in the world. What answer did you give him?--Did you
- allow him to hope?"
-
- "Oh! my love, I could not then talk of hope to him
- or to myself. Marianne might at that moment be dying.
- But he did not ask for hope or encouragement. His was
- an involuntary confidence, an irrepressible effusion
- to a soothing friend--not an application to a parent.
- Yet after a time I DID say, for at first I was quite
- overcome--that if she lived, as I trusted she might,
- my greatest happiness would lie in promoting their marriage;
- and since our arrival, since our delightful security,
- I have repeated it to him more fully, have given him every
- encouragement in my power. Time, a very little time,
- I tell him, will do everything;--Marianne's heart is
- not to be wasted for ever on such a man as Willoughby.--
- His own merits must soon secure it."
-
- "To judge from the Colonel's spirits, however,
- you have not yet made him equally sanguine."
-
- "No.--He thinks Marianne's affection too deeply
- rooted for any change in it under a great length of time,
- and even supposing her heart again free, is too diffident
- of himself to believe, that with such a difference of age
- and disposition he could ever attach her. There, however,
- he is quite mistaken. His age is only so much beyond
- hers as to be an advantage, as to make his character and
- principles fixed;--and his disposition, I am well convinced,
- is exactly the very one to make your sister happy.
- And his person, his manners too, are all in his favour.
- My partiality does not blind me; he certainly is not
- so handsome as Willoughby--but at the same time,
- there is something much more pleasing in his countenance.--
- There was always a something,--if you remember,--in Willoughby's
- eyes at times, which I did not like."
-
- Elinor could NOT remember it;--but her mother,
- without waiting for her assent, continued,
-
- "And his manners, the Colonel's manners are not only
- more pleasing to me than Willoughby's ever were, but they
- are of a kind I well know to be more solidly attaching
- to Marianne. Their gentleness, their genuine attention
- to other people, and their manly unstudied simplicity
- is much more accordant with her real disposition, than
- the liveliness--often artificial, and often ill-timed
- of the other. I am very sure myself, that had Willoughby
- turned out as really amiable, as he has proved himself
- the contrary, Marianne would yet never have been so happy
- with HIM, as she will be with Colonel Brandon."
-
- She paused.--Her daughter could not quite agree
- with her, but her dissent was not heard, and therefore
- gave no offence.
-
- "At Delaford, she will be within an easy distance of me,"
- added Mrs. Dashwood, "even if I remain at Barton; and in all
- probability,--for I hear it is a large village,--indeed there
- certainly MUST be some small house or cottage close by,
- that would suit us quite as well as our present situation."
-
- Poor Elinor!--here was a new scheme for getting
- her to Delaford!--but her spirit was stubborn.
-
- "His fortune too!--for at my time of life you know,
- everybody cares about THAT;--and though I neither know
- nor desire to know, what it really is, I am sure it must be
- a good one."
-
- Here they were interrupted by the entrance of a
- third person, and Elinor withdrew to think it all over
- in private, to wish success to her friend, and yet
- in wishing it, to feel a pang for Willoughby.
-
-
-
- CHAPTER 46
-
-
- Marianne's illness, though weakening in its kind,
- had not been long enough to make her recovery slow;
- and with youth, natural strength, and her mother's presence
- in aid, it proceeded so smoothly as to enable her to remove,
- within four days after the arrival of the latter,
- into Mrs. Palmer's dressing-room. When there, at her own
- particular request, for she was impatient to pour forth
- her thanks to him for fetching her mother, Colonel Brandon
- was invited to visit her.
-
- His emotion on entering the room, in seeing her altered
- looks, and in receiving the pale hand which she immediately
- held out to him, was such, as, in Elinor's conjecture,
- must arise from something more than his affection for Marianne,
- or the consciousness of its being known to others;
- and she soon discovered in his melancholy eye and varying
- complexion as he looked at her sister, the probable
- recurrence of many past scenes of misery to his mind,
- brought back by that resemblance between Marianne and Eliza
- already acknowledged, and now strengthened by the hollow eye,
- the sickly skin, the posture of reclining weakness,
- and the warm acknowledgment of peculiar obligation.
-
- Mrs. Dashwood, not less watchful of what passed than
- her daughter, but with a mind very differently influenced,
- and therefore watching to very different effect,
- saw nothing in the Colonel's behaviour but what arose
- from the most simple and self-evident sensations, while in
- the actions and words of Marianne she persuaded herself
- to think that something more than gratitude already dawned.
-
- At the end of another day or two, Marianne growing
- visibly stronger every twelve hours, Mrs. Dashwood,
- urged equally by her own and her daughter's wishes,
- began to talk of removing to Barton. On HER measures
- depended those of her two friends; Mrs. Jennings could
- not quit Cleveland during the Dashwoods' stay; and Colonel
- Brandon was soon brought, by their united request,
- to consider his own abode there as equally determinate,
- if not equally indispensable. At his and Mrs. Jennings's
- united request in return, Mrs. Dashwood was prevailed
- on to accept the use of his carriage on her journey back,
- for the better accommodation of her sick child; and the Colonel,
- at the joint invitation of Mrs. Dashwood and Mrs. Jennings,
- whose active good-nature made her friendly and hospitable
- for other people as well as herself, engaged with pleasure
- to redeem it by a visit at the cottage, in the course
- of a few weeks.
-
- The day of separation and departure arrived;
- and Marianne, after taking so particular and lengthened
- a leave of Mrs. Jennings, one so earnestly grateful, so full
- of respect and kind wishes as seemed due to her own heart
- from a secret acknowledgment of past inattention, and bidding
- Colonel Brandon farewell with a cordiality of a friend,
- was carefully assisted by him into the carriage, of which he
- seemed anxious that she should engross at least half.
- Mrs. Dashwood and Elinor then followed, and the others
- were left by themselves, to talk of the travellers,
- and feel their own dullness, till Mrs. Jennings was summoned
- to her chaise to take comfort in the gossip of her maid
- for the loss of her two young companions; and Colonel Brandon
- immediately afterwards took his solitary way to Delaford.
-
- The Dashwoods were two days on the road, and Marianne
- bore her journey on both, without essential fatigue.
- Every thing that the most zealous affection, the most
- solicitous care could do to render her comfortable,
- was the office of each watchful companion, and each
- found their reward in her bodily ease, and her calmness
- of spirits. To Elinor, the observation of the latter
- was particularly grateful. She, who had seen her week
- after week so constantly suffering, oppressed by anguish
- of heart which she had neither courage to speak of,
- nor fortitude to conceal, now saw with a joy, which no other
- could equally share, an apparent composure of mind, which,
- in being the result as she trusted of serious reflection,
- must eventually lead her to contentment and cheerfulness.
-
- As they approached Barton, indeed, and entered
- on scenes of which every field and every tree brought
- some peculiar, some painful recollection, she grew silent
- and thoughtful, and turning away her face from their notice,
- sat earnestly gazing through the window. But here,
- Elinor could neither wonder nor blame; and when she saw,
- as she assisted Marianne from the carriage, that she
- had been crying, she saw only an emotion too natural
- in itself to raise any thing less tender than pity,
- and in its unobtrusiveness entitled to praise. In the
- whole of her subsequent manner, she traced the direction
- of a mind awakened to reasonable exertion; for no sooner
- had they entered their common sitting-room, than Marianne
- turned her eyes around it with a look of resolute firmness,
- as if determined at once to accustom herself to the sight
- of every object with which the remembrance of Willoughby could
- be connected.--She said little, but every sentence aimed
- at cheerfulness, and though a sigh sometimes escaped her,
- it never passed away without the atonement of a smile.
- After dinner she would try her piano-forte. She went to it;
- but the music on which her eye first rested was an opera,
- procured for her by Willoughby, containing some of their
- favourite duets, and bearing on its outward leaf her own name
- in his hand-writing.--That would not do.--She shook her head,
- put the music aside, and after running over the keys
- for a minute, complained of feebleness in her fingers,
- and closed the instrument again; declaring however
- with firmness as she did so, that she should in future
- practice much.
-
- The next morning produced no abatement in these
- happy symptoms. On the contrary, with a mind and body
- alike strengthened by rest, she looked and spoke with
- more genuine spirit, anticipating the pleasure of
- Margaret's return, and talking of the dear family party
- which would then be restored, of their mutual pursuits
- and cheerful society, as the only happiness worth a wish.
-
- "When the weather is settled, and I have recovered
- my strength," said she, "we will take long walks together
- every day. We will walk to the farm at the edge of the down,
- and see how the children go on; we will walk to Sir John's
- new plantations at Barton Cross, and the Abbeyland;
- and we will often go the old ruins of the Priory,
- and try to trace its foundations as far as we are told
- they once reached. I know we shall be happy. I know
- the summer will pass happily away. I mean never to be
- later in rising than six, and from that time till dinner
- I shall divide every moment between music and reading.
- I have formed my plan, and am determined to enter on a course
- of serious study. Our own library is too well known to me,
- to be resorted to for any thing beyond mere amusement.
- But there are many works well worth reading at the Park;
- and there are others of more modern production which I
- know I can borrow of Colonel Brandon. By reading only six
- hours a-day, I shall gain in the course of a twelve-month
- a great deal of instruction which I now feel myself
- to want."
-
- Elinor honoured her for a plan which originated
- so nobly as this; though smiling to see the same eager
- fancy which had been leading her to the extreme of languid
- indolence and selfish repining, now at work in introducing
- excess into a scheme of such rational employment and virtuous
- self-control. Her smile however changed to a sigh when she
- remembered that promise to Willoughby was yet unfulfilled,
- and feared she had that to communicate which might again
- unsettle the mind of Marianne, and ruin at least for a time
- this fair prospect of busy tranquillity. Willing therefore
- to delay the evil hour, she resolved to wait till her
- sister's health were more secure, before she appointed it.
- But the resolution was made only to be broken.
-
- Marianne had been two or three days at home, before
- the weather was fine enough for an invalid like herself
- to venture out. But at last a soft, genial morning appeared;
- such as might tempt the daughter's wishes and the
- mother's confidence; and Marianne, leaning on Elinor's arm,
- was authorised to walk as long as she could without fatigue,
- in the lane before the house.
-
- The sisters set out at a pace, slow as the feebleness
- of Marianne in an exercise hitherto untried since her
- illness required;--and they had advanced only so far
- beyond the house as to admit a full view of the hill,
- the important hill behind, when pausing with her eyes
- turned towards it, Marianne calmly said,
-
- "There, exactly there,"--pointing with one hand,
- "on that projecting mound,--there I fell; and there I
- first saw Willoughby."
-
- Her voice sunk with the word, but presently reviving
- she added,
-
- "I am thankful to find that I can look with so little pain
- on the spot!--shall we ever talk on that subject, Elinor?"--
- hesitatingly it was said.--"Or will it be wrong?--I can talk
- of it now, I hope, as I ought to do."--
-
- Elinor tenderly invited her to be open.
-
- "As for regret," said Marianne, "I have done with that,
- as far as HE is concerned. I do not mean to talk to you
- of what my feelings have been for him, but what they
- are NOW.--At present, if I could be satisfied on one point,
- if I could be allowed to think that he was not ALWAYS
- acting a part, not ALWAYS deceiving me;--but above all,
- if I could be assured that he never was so VERY wicked
- as my fears have sometimes fancied him, since the story
- of that unfortunate girl"--
-
- She stopt. Elinor joyfully treasured her words
- as she answered,
-
- "If you could be assured of that, you think you
- should be easy."
-
- "Yes. My peace of mind is doubly involved in it;--
- for not only is it horrible to suspect a person, who has
- been what HE has been to ME, of such designs,--but what must
- it make me appear to myself?--What in a situation like mine,
- but a most shamefully unguarded affection could expose
- me to"--
-
- "How then," asked her sister, "would you account
- for his behaviour?"
-
- "I would suppose him,--Oh, how gladly would I suppose
- him, only fickle, very, very fickle."
-
- Elinor said no more. She was debating within herself
- on the eligibility of beginning her story directly,
- or postponing it till Marianne were in stronger health;--
- and they crept on for a few minutes in silence.
-
- "I am not wishing him too much good," said Marianne
- at last with a sigh, "when I wish his secret reflections
- may be no more unpleasant than my own. He will suffer
- enough in them."
-
- "Do you compare your conduct with his?"
-
- "No. I compare it with what it ought to have been;
- I compare it with yours."
-
- "Our situations have borne little resemblance."
-
- "They have borne more than our conduct.--Do not,
- my dearest Elinor, let your kindness defend what I know
- your judgment must censure. My illness has made me think--
- It has given me leisure and calmness for serious recollection.
- Long before I was enough recovered to talk, I was perfectly
- able to reflect. I considered the past: I saw in my
- own behaviour, since the beginning of our acquaintance
- with him last autumn, nothing but a series of imprudence
- towards myself, and want of kindness to others.
- I saw that my own feelings had prepared my sufferings,
- and that my want of fortitude under them had almost led
- me to the grave. My illness, I well knew, had been
- entirely brought on by myself by such negligence of my
- own health, as I had felt even at the time to be wrong.
- Had I died,--it would have been self-destruction. I
- did not know my danger till the danger was removed;
- but with such feelings as these reflections gave me,
- I wonder at my recovery,--wonder that the very eagerness
- of my desire to live, to have time for atonement to my God,
- and to you all, did not kill me at once. Had I died,--
- in what peculiar misery should I have left you, my nurse,
- my friend, my sister!--You, who had seen all the fretful
- selfishness of my latter days; who had known all the
- murmurings of my heart!--How should I have lived in YOUR
- remembrance!--My mother too! How could you have consoled
- her!--I cannot express my own abhorrence of myself.
- Whenever I looked towards the past, I saw some duty neglected,
- or some failing indulged. Every body seemed injured by me.
- The kindness, the unceasing kindness of Mrs. Jennings,
- I had repaid with ungrateful contempt. To the Middletons,
- to the Palmers, the Steeles, to every common acquaintance even,
- I had been insolent and unjust; with a heart hardened
- against their merits, and a temper irritated by their
- very attention.--To John, to Fanny,--yes, even to them,
- little as they deserve, I had given less than their due.
- But you,--you above all, above my mother, had been wronged
- by me. I, and only I, knew your heart and its sorrows;
- yet to what did it influence me?--not to any compassion
- that could benefit you or myself.--Your example was
- before me; but to what avail?--Was I more considerate
- of you and your comfort? Did I imitate your forbearance,
- or lessen your restraints, by taking any part in those
- offices of general complaisance or particular gratitude
- which you had hitherto been left to discharge alone?--No;--
- not less when I knew you to be unhappy, than when I
- had believed you at ease, did I turn away from every
- exertion of duty or friendship; scarcely allowing sorrow
- to exist but with me, regretting only THAT heart which
- had deserted and wronged me, and leaving you, for or I
- professed an unbounded affection, to be miserable for my
- sake."
-
- Here ceased the rapid flow of her self-reproving spirit;
- and Elinor, impatient to soothe, though too honest
- to flatter, gave her instantly that praise and support
- which her frankness and her contrition so well deserved.
- Marianne pressed her hand and replied,
-
- "You are very good.--The future must be my proof.
- I have laid down my plan, and if I am capable of adhering
- to it--my feelings shall be governed and my temper improved.
- They shall no longer worry others, nor torture myself.
- I shall now live solely for my family. You, my mother,
- and Margaret, must henceforth be all the world to me;
- you will share my affections entirely between you.
- >From you, from my home, I shall never again have the smallest
- incitement to move; and if I do mix in other society,
- it will be only to shew that my spirit is humbled,
- my heart amended, and that I can practise the civilities,
- the lesser duties of life, with gentleness and forbearance.
- As for Willoughby--to say that I shall soon or that I shall
- ever forget him, would be idle. His remembrance can be overcome
- by no change of circumstances or opinions. But it shall
- be regulated, it shall be checked by religion, by reason,
- by constant employment."
-
- She paused--and added in a low voice, "If I could
- but know HIS heart, everything would become easy."
-
- Elinor, who had now been for some time reflecting
- on the propriety or impropriety of speedily hazarding
- her narration, without feeling at all nearer decision than
- at first, heard this; and perceiving that as reflection
- did nothing, resolution must do all, soon found herself
- leading to the fact.
-
- She managed the recital, as she hoped, with address;
- prepared her anxious listener with caution; related simply
- and honestly the chief points on which Willoughby
- grounded his apology; did justice to his repentance,
- and softened only his protestations of present regard.
- Marianne said not a word.--She trembled, her eyes
- were fixed on the ground, and her lips became whiter
- than even sickness had left them. A thousand inquiries
- sprung up from her heart, but she dared not urge one.
- She caught every syllable with panting eagerness; her hand,
- unknowingly to herself, closely pressed her sister's, and
- tears covered her cheeks.
-
- Elinor, dreading her being tired, led her towards home;
- and till they reached the door of the cottage,
- easily conjecturing what her curiosity must be
- though no question was suffered to speak it, talked of
- nothing but Willoughby, and their conversation together;
- and was carefully minute in every particular of speech
- and look, where minuteness could be safely indulged.
- As soon as they entered the house, Marianne with a kiss
- of gratitude and these two words just articulate through
- her tears, "Tell mama," withdrew from her sister and
- walked slowly up stairs. Elinor would not attempt
- to disturb a solitude so reasonable as what she now sought;
- and with a mind anxiously pre-arranging its result,
- and a resolution of reviving the subject again,
- should Marianne fail to do it, she turned into the parlour
- to fulfill her parting injunction.
-
-
-
- CHAPTER 47
-
-
- Mrs. Dashwood did not hear unmoved the vindication
- of her former favourite. She rejoiced in his being
- cleared from some part of his imputed guilt;--she was
- sorry for him;--she wished him happy. But the feelings
- of the past could not be recalled.--Nothing could restore
- him with a faith unbroken--a character unblemished,
- to Marianne. Nothing could do away the knowledge
- of what the latter had suffered through his means,
- nor remove the guilt of his conduct towards Eliza.
- Nothing could replace him, therefore, in her former esteem,
- nor injure the interests of Colonel Brandon.
-
- Had Mrs. Dashwood, like her daughter, heard Willoughby's
- story from himself--had she witnessed his distress,
- and been under the influence of his countenance and his
- manner, it is probable that her compassion would have
- been greater. But it was neither in Elinor's power,
- nor in her wish, to rouse such feelings in another, by her
- retailed explanation, as had at first been called forth
- in herself. Reflection had given calmness to her judgment,
- and sobered her own opinion of Willoughby's deserts;--
- she wished, therefore, to declare only the simple truth,
- and lay open such facts as were really due to his character,
- without any embellishment of tenderness to lead the
- fancy astray.
-
- In the evening, when they were all three together,
- Marianne began voluntarily to speak of him again;--
- but that it was not without an effort, the restless,
- unquiet thoughtfulness in which she had been for some time
- previously sitting--her rising colour, as she spoke,--
- and her unsteady voice, plainly shewed.
-
- "I wish to assure you both," said she, "that I see
- every thing--as you can desire me to do."
-
- Mrs. Dashwood would have interrupted her instantly
- with soothing tenderness, had not Elinor, who really wished
- to hear her sister's unbiased opinion, by an eager sign,
- engaged her silence. Marianne slowly continued--
-
- "It is a great relief to me--what Elinor told
- me this morning--I have now heard exactly what I
- wished to hear."--For some moments her voice was lost;
- but recovering herself, she added, and with greater
- calmness than before--"I am now perfectly satisfied,
- I wish for no change. I never could have been happy
- with him, after knowing, as sooner or later I must
- have known, all this.--I should have had no confidence,
- no esteem. Nothing could have done it away to my feelings."
-
- "I know it--I know it," cried her mother.
- "Happy with a man of libertine practices!--With one
- who so injured the peace of the dearest of our friends,
- and the best of men!--No--my Marianne has not a heart
- to be made happy with such a man!--Her conscience, her
- sensitive counscience, would have felt all that the
- conscience of her husband ought to have felt."
-
- Marianne sighed, and repeated, "I wish for no change."
-
- "You consider the matter," said Elinor, "exactly as
- a good mind and a sound understanding must consider it;
- and I dare say you perceive, as well as myself, not only
- in this, but in many other circumstances, reason enough
- to be convinced that your marriage must have involved you
- in many certain troubles and disappointments, in which
- you would have been poorly supported by an affection,
- on his side, much less certain. Had you married,
- you must have been always poor. His expensiveness is
- acknowledged even by himself, and his whole conduct declares
- that self-denial is a word hardly understood by him.
- His demands and your inexperience together, on a small,
- very small income, must have brought on distresses which
- would not be the LESS grievous to you, from having been
- entirely unknown and unthought of before. YOUR sense
- of honour and honesty would have led you, I know,
- when aware of your situation, to attempt all the economy
- that would appear to you possible: and, perhaps, as long
- as your frugality retrenched only on your own comfort,
- you might have been suffered to practice it, but beyond that--
- and how little could the utmost of your single management
- do to stop the ruin which had begun before your marriage?--
- Beyond THAT, had you endeavoured, however reasonably,
- to abridge HIS enjoyments, is it not to be feared, that instead
- of prevailing on feelings so selfish to consent to it,
- you would have lessened your own influence on his heart,
- and made him regret the connection which had involved him
- in such difficulties?"
-
- Marianne's lips quivered, and she repeated the word
- "Selfish?" in a tone that implied--"do you really think
- him selfish?"
-
- "The whole of his behaviour," replied Elinor,
- "from the beginning to the end of the affair, has been
- grounded on selfishness. It was selfishness which first
- made him sport with your affections; which afterwards,
- when his own were engaged, made him delay the confession
- of it, and which finally carried him from Barton.
- His own enjoyment, or his own ease, was, in every particular,
- his ruling principle."
-
- "It is very true. MY happiness never was his object."
-
- "At present," continued Elinor, "he regrets what he
- has done. And why does he regret it?--Because he finds
- it has not answered towards himself. It has not made
- him happy. His circumstances are now unembarrassed--he
- suffers from no evil of that kind; and he thinks only
- that he has married a woman of a less amiable temper
- than yourself. But does it follow that had he married you,
- he would have been happy?--The inconveniences would have
- been different. He would then have suffered under the
- pecuniary distresses which, because they are removed,
- he now reckons as nothing. He would have had a wife
- of whose temper he could make no complaint, but he would
- have been always necessitous--always poor; and probably
- would soon have learned to rank the innumerable comforts
- of a clear estate and good income as of far more importance,
- even to domestic happiness, than the mere temper of a wife."
-
- "I have not a doubt of it," said Marianne; "and I
- have nothing to regret--nothing but my own folly."
-
- "Rather say your mother's imprudence, my child,"
- said Mrs. Dashwood; "SHE must be answerable."
-
- Marianne would not let her proceed;--and Elinor,
- satisfied that each felt their own error, wished to avoid
- any survey of the past that might weaken her sister's
- spirits; she, therefore, pursuing the first subject,
- immediately continued,
-
- "One observation may, I think, be fairly drawn from
- the whole of the story--that all Willoughby's difficulties
- have arisen from the first offence against virtue, in his
- behaviour to Eliza Williams. That crime has been the origin
- of every lesser one, and of all his present discontents."
-
- Marianne assented most feelingly to the remark;
- and her mother was led by it to an enumeration of Colonel
- Brandon's injuries and merits, warm as friendship
- and design could unitedly dictate. Her daughter did
- not look, however, as if much of it were heard by her.
-
- Elinor, according to her expectation, saw on the two
- or three following days, that Marianne did not continue
- to gain strength as she had done; but while her resolution
- was unsubdued, and she still tried to appear cheerful
- and easy, her sister could safely trust to the effect
- of time upon her health.
-
- Margaret returned, and the family were again all
- restored to each other, again quietly settled at the cottage;
- and if not pursuing their usual studies with quite
- so much vigour as when they first came to Barton,
- at least planning a vigorous prosecution of them in future.
-
- Elinor grew impatient for some tidings of Edward.
- She had heard nothing of him since her leaving London,
- nothing new of his plans, nothing certain even of his
- present abode. Some letters had passed between her
- and her brother, in consequence of Marianne's illness;
- and in the first of John's, there had been this sentence:--
- "We know nothing of our unfortunate Edward, and can make no
- enquiries on so prohibited a subject, but conclude him
- to be still at Oxford;" which was all the intelligence
- of Edward afforded her by the correspondence, for his name
- was not even mentioned in any of the succeeding letters.
- She was not doomed, however, to be long in ignorance of
- his measures.
-
- Their man-servant had been sent one morning to Exeter
- on business; and when, as he waited at table, he had
- satisfied the inquiries of his mistress as to the event
- of his errand, this was his voluntary communication--
-
- "I suppose you know, ma'am, that Mr. Ferrars is married."
-
- Marianne gave a violent start, fixed her eyes
- upon Elinor, saw her turning pale, and fell back in her
- chair in hysterics. Mrs. Dashwood, whose eyes, as she
- answered the servant's inquiry, had intuitively taken
- the same direction, was shocked to perceive by Elinor's
- countenance how much she really suffered, and a moment
- afterwards, alike distressed by Marianne's situation,
- knew not on which child to bestow her principal attention.
-
- The servant, who saw only that Miss Marianne was
- taken ill, had sense enough to call one of the maids,
- who, with Mrs. Dashwood's assistance, supported her into
- the other room. By that time, Marianne was rather better,
- and her mother leaving her to the care of Margaret
- and the maid, returned to Elinor, who, though still
- much disordered, had so far recovered the use of her reason
- and voice as to be just beginning an inquiry of Thomas,
- as to the source of his intelligence. Mrs. Dashwood
- immediately took all that trouble on herself; and Elinor
- had the benefit of the information without the exertion of seeking it.
-
- "Who told you that Mr. Ferrars was married, Thomas?"
-
- "I see Mr. Ferrars myself, ma'am, this morning
- in Exeter, and his lady too, Miss Steele as was. They was
- stopping in a chaise at the door of the New London Inn,
- as I went there with a message from Sally at the Park
- to her brother, who is one of the post-boys. I happened
- to look up as I went by the chaise, and so I see directly
- it was the youngest Miss Steele; so I took off my hat,
- and she knew me and called to me, and inquired after you,
- ma'am, and the young ladies, especially Miss Marianne,
- and bid me I should give her compliments and Mr. Ferrars's,
- their best compliments and service, and how sorry they
- was they had not time to come on and see you, but they was
- in a great hurry to go forwards, for they was going further
- down for a little while, but howsever, when they come back,
- they'd make sure to come and see you."
-
- "But did she tell you she was married, Thomas?"
-
- "Yes, ma'am. She smiled, and said how she
- had changed her name since she was in these parts.
- She was always a very affable and free-spoken young lady,
- and very civil behaved. So, I made free to wish her joy."
-
- "Was Mr. Ferrars in the carriage with her?"
-
- "Yes, ma'am, I just see him leaning back in it,
- but he did not look up;--he never was a gentleman much
- for talking."
-
- Elinor's heart could easily account for his not
- putting himself forward; and Mrs. Dashwood probably
- found the same explanation.
-
- "Was there no one else in the carriage?"
-
- "No, ma'am, only they two."
-
- "Do you know where they came from?"
-
- "They come straight from town, as Miss Lucy--
- Mrs. Ferrars told me."
-
- "And are they going farther westward?"
-
- "Yes, ma'am--but not to bide long. They will soon
- be back again, and then they'd be sure and call here."
-
- Mrs. Dashwood now looked at her daughter;
- but Elinor knew better than to expect them.
- She recognised the whole of Lucy in the message, and was
- very confident that Edward would never come near them.
- She observed in a low voice, to her mother, that they
- were probably going down to Mr. Pratt's, near Plymouth.
-
- Thomas's intelligence seemed over. Elinor looked
- as if she wished to hear more.
-
- "Did you see them off, before you came away?"
-
- "No, ma'am--the horses were just coming out, but I
- could not bide any longer; I was afraid of being late."
-
- "Did Mrs. Ferrars look well?"
-
- "Yes, ma'am, she said how she was very well;
- and to my mind she was always a very handsome young
- lady--and she seemed vastly contented."
-
- Mrs. Dashwood could think of no other question,
- and Thomas and the tablecloth, now alike needless,
- were soon afterwards dismissed. Marianne had already sent
- to say, that she should eat nothing more. Mrs. Dashwood's
- and Elinor's appetites were equally lost, and Margaret
- might think herself very well off, that with so much
- uneasiness as both her sisters had lately experienced,
- so much reason as they had often had to be careless
- of their meals, she had never been obliged to go without
- her dinner before.
-
- When the dessert and the wine were arranged,
- and Mrs. Dashwood and Elinor were left by themselves,
- they remained long together in a similarity of thoughtfulness
- and silence. Mrs. Dashwood feared to hazard any remark,
- and ventured not to offer consolation. She now found
- that she had erred in relying on Elinor's representation
- of herself; and justly concluded that every thing
- had been expressly softened at the time, to spare her
- from an increase of unhappiness, suffering as she then
- had suffered for Marianne. She found that she had been
- misled by the careful, the considerate attention of
- her daughter, to think the attachment, which once she
- had so well understood, much slighter in reality, than
- she had been wont to believe, or than it was now proved
- to be. She feared that under this persuasion she had
- been unjust, inattentive, nay, almost unkind, to her Elinor;--
- that Marianne's affliction, because more acknowledged,
- more immediately before her, had too much engrossed
- her tenderness, and led her away to forget that in Elinor
- she might have a daughter suffering almost as much,
- certainly with less self-provocation, and greater fortitude.
-
-
-
- CHAPTER 48
-
-
- Elinor now found the difference between the expectation
- of an unpleasant event, however certain the mind may be told
- to consider it, and certainty itself. She now found, that
- in spite of herself, she had always admitted a hope,
- while Edward remained single, that something would occur
- to prevent his marrying Lucy; that some resolution of
- his own, some mediation of friends, or some more eligible
- opportunity of establishment for the lady, would arise
- to assist the happiness of all. But he was now married;
- and she condemned her heart for the lurking flattery,
- which so much heightened the pain of the intelligence.
-
- That he should be married soon, before (as she imagined)
- he could be in orders, and consequently before he could
- be in possession of the living, surprised her a little
- at first. But she soon saw how likely it was that Lucy,
- in her self-provident care, in her haste to secure him,
- should overlook every thing but the risk of delay.
- They were married, married in town, and now hastening
- down to her uncle's. What had Edward felt on being within
- four miles from Barton, on seeing her mother's servant,
- on hearing Lucy's message!
-
- They would soon, she supposed, be settled at
- Delaford.--Delaford,--that place in which so much
- conspired to give her an interest; which she wished
- to be acquainted with, and yet desired to avoid.
- She saw them in an instant in their parsonage-house; saw
- in Lucy, the active, contriving manager, uniting at once
- a desire of smart appearance with the utmost frugality,
- and ashamed to be suspected of half her economical practices;--
- pursuing her own interest in every thought, courting the
- favour of Colonel Brandon, of Mrs. Jennings, and of every
- wealthy friend. In Edward--she knew not what she saw,
- nor what she wished to see;--happy or unhappy,--nothing
- pleased her; she turned away her head from every sketch of him.
-
- Elinor flattered herself that some one of their
- connections in London would write to them to announce
- the event, and give farther particulars,--but day after
- day passed off, and brought no letter, no tidings.
- Though uncertain that any one were to blame, she found
- fault with every absent friend. They were all thoughtless
- or indolent.
-
- "When do you write to Colonel Brandon, ma'am?"
- was an inquiry which sprung from the impatience
- of her mind to have something going on.
-
- "I wrote to him, my love, last week, and rather
- expect to see, than to hear from him again. I earnestly
- pressed his coming to us, and should not be surprised
- to see him walk in today or tomorrow, or any day."
-
- This was gaining something, something to look forward to.
- Colonel Brandon must have some information to give.
-
- Scarcely had she so determined it, when the figure
- of a man on horseback drew her eyes to the window.
- He stopt at their gate. It was a gentleman, it
- was Colonel Brandon himself. Now she could hear more;
- and she trembled in expectation of it. But--it was
- NOT Colonel Brandon--neither his air--nor his height.
- Were it possible, she must say it must be Edward.
- She looked again. He had just dismounted;--she could not be
- mistaken,--it WAS Edward. She moved away and sat down.
- "He comes from Mr. Pratt's purposely to see us. I WILL be
- calm; I WILL be mistress of myself."
-
- In a moment she perceived that the others were likewise
- aware of the mistake. She saw her mother and Marianne
- change colour; saw them look at herself, and whisper
- a few sentences to each other. She would have given
- the world to be able to speak--and to make them understand
- that she hoped no coolness, no slight, would appear
- in their behaviour to him;--but she had no utterance,
- and was obliged to leave all to their own discretion.
-
- Not a syllable passed aloud. They all waited
- in silence for the appearance of their visitor.
- His footsteps were heard along the gravel path; in a moment
- he was in the passage, and in another he was before them.
-
- His countenance, as he entered the room, was not
- too happy, even for Elinor. His complexion was white
- with agitation, and he looked as if fearful of his
- reception, and conscious that he merited no kind one.
- Mrs. Dashwood, however, conforming, as she trusted,
- to the wishes of that daughter, by whom she then meant
- in the warmth of her heart to be guided in every thing,
- met with a look of forced complacency, gave him her hand,
- and wished him joy.
-
- He coloured, and stammered out an unintelligible reply.
- Elinor's lips had moved with her mother's, and, when the
- moment of action was over, she wished that she had shaken
- hands with him too. But it was then too late, and with a
- countenance meaning to be open, she sat down again
- and talked of the weather.
-
- Marianne had retreated as much as possible
- out of sight, to conceal her distress; and Margaret,
- understanding some part, but not the whole of the case,
- thought it incumbent on her to be dignified, and therefore
- took a seat as far from him as she could, and maintained
- a strict silence.
-
- When Elinor had ceased to rejoice in the dryness
- of the season, a very awful pause took place. It was put
- an end to by Mrs. Dashwood, who felt obliged to hope that he
- had left Mrs. Ferrars very well. In a hurried manner,
- he replied in the affirmative.
-
- Another pause.
-
- Elinor resolving to exert herself, though fearing
- the sound of her own voice, now said,
-
- "Is Mrs. Ferrars at Longstaple?"
-
- "At Longstaple!" he replied, with an air of surprise.--
- "No, my mother is in town."
-
- "I meant," said Elinor, taking up some work from
- the table, "to inquire for Mrs. EDWARD Ferrars."
-
- She dared not look up;--but her mother and Marianne both
- turned their eyes on him. He coloured, seemed perplexed,
- looked doubtingly, and, after some hesitation, said,--
-
- "Perhaps you mean--my brother--you mean Mrs.--Mrs.
- ROBERT Ferrars."
-
- "Mrs. Robert Ferrars!"--was repeated by Marianne and her
- mother in an accent of the utmost amazement;--and though
- Elinor could not speak, even HER eyes were fixed on him
- with the same impatient wonder. He rose from his seat,
- and walked to the window, apparently from not knowing
- what to do; took up a pair of scissors that lay there,
- and while spoiling both them and their sheath by cutting
- the latter to pieces as he spoke, said, in a hurried voice,
-
- "Perhaps you do not know--you may not have heard
- that my brother is lately married to--to the youngest--to
- Miss Lucy Steele."
-
- His words were echoed with unspeakable astonishment
- by all but Elinor, who sat with her head leaning over
- her work, in a state of such agitation as made her hardly
- know where she was.
-
- "Yes," said he, "they were married last week,
- and are now at Dawlish."
-
- Elinor could sit it no longer. She almost ran
- out of the room, and as soon as the door was closed,
- burst into tears of joy, which at first she thought would
- never cease. Edward, who had till then looked any where,
- rather than at her, saw her hurry away, and perhaps saw--
- or even heard, her emotion; for immediately afterwards
- he fell into a reverie, which no remarks, no inquiries,
- no affectionate address of Mrs. Dashwood could penetrate,
- and at last, without saying a word, quitted the room,
- and walked out towards the village--leaving the others
- in the greatest astonishment and perplexity on a change
- in his situation, so wonderful and so sudden;--a perplexity
- which they had no means of lessening but by their
- own conjectures.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER 49
-
-
- Unaccountable, however, as the circumstances of his
- release might appear to the whole family, it was certain
- that Edward was free; and to what purpose that freedom would
- be employed was easily pre-determined by all;--for after
- experiencing the blessings of ONE imprudent engagement,
- contracted without his mother's consent, as he had already
- done for more than four years, nothing less could be expected
- of him in the failure of THAT, than the immediate contraction
- of another.
-
- His errand at Barton, in fact, was a simple one.
- It was only to ask Elinor to marry him;--and considering
- that he was not altogether inexperienced in such a question,
- it might be strange that he should feel so uncomfortable
- in the present case as he really did, so much in need of
- encouragement and fresh air.
-
- How soon he had walked himself into the proper
- resolution, however, how soon an opportunity of exercising
- it occurred, in what manner he expressed himself,
- and how he was received, need not be particularly told.
- This only need be said;--that when they all sat down to
- table at four o'clock, about three hours after his arrival,
- he had secured his lady, engaged her mother's consent,
- and was not only in the rapturous profession of
- the lover, but, in the reality of reason and truth,
- one of the happiest of men. His situation indeed was
- more than commonly joyful. He had more than the ordinary
- triumph of accepted love to swell his heart, and raise
- his spirits. He was released without any reproach
- to himself, from an entanglement which had long formed
- his misery, from a woman whom he had long ceased to love;--
- and elevated at once to that security with another,
- which he must have thought of almost with despair,
- as soon as he had learnt to consider it with desire.
- He was brought, not from doubt or suspense, but from
- misery to happiness;--and the change was openly spoken
- in such a genuine, flowing, grateful cheerfulness,
- as his friends had never witnessed in him before.
-
- His heart was now open to Elinor, all its weaknesses,
- all its errors confessed, and his first boyish attachment
- to Lucy treated with all the philosophic dignity of twenty-four.
-
- "It was a foolish, idle inclination on my side,"
- said he, "the consequence of ignorance of the world--
- and want of employment. Had my brother given me
- some active profession when I was removed at eighteen
- from the care of Mr. Pratt, I think--nay, I am sure,
- it would never have happened; for though I left Longstaple
- with what I thought, at the time, a most unconquerable
- preference for his niece, yet had I then had any pursuit,
- any object to engage my time and keep me at a distance
- from her for a few months, I should very soon have
- outgrown the fancied attachment, especially by mixing
- more with the world, as in such case I must have done.
- But instead of having any thing to do, instead of having any
- profession chosen for me, or being allowed to chuse any myself,
- I returned home to be completely idle; and for the first
- twelvemonth afterwards I had not even the nominal employment,
- which belonging to the university would have given me;
- for I was not entered at Oxford till I was nineteen.
- I had therefore nothing in the world to do, but to fancy
- myself in love; and as my mother did not make my home
- in every respect comfortable, as I had no friend,
- no companion in my brother, and disliked new acquaintance,
- it was not unnatural for me to be very often at Longstaple,
- where I always felt myself at home, and was always sure
- of a welcome; and accordingly I spent the greatest part
- of my time there from eighteen to nineteen: Lucy appeared
- everything that was amiable and obliging. She was pretty
- too--at least I thought so THEN; and I had seen so little
- of other women, that I could make no comparisons, and see
- no defects. Considering everything, therefore, I hope,
- foolish as our engagement was, foolish as it has since
- in every way been proved, it was not at the time an unnatural
- or an inexcusable piece of folly."
-
- The change which a few hours had wrought in the minds
- and the happiness of the Dashwoods, was such--so great--as
- promised them all, the satisfaction of a sleepless night.
- Mrs. Dashwood, too happy to be comfortable, knew not how
- to love Edward, nor praise Elinor enough, how to be enough
- thankful for his release without wounding his delicacy,
- nor how at once to give them leisure for unrestrained
- conversation together, and yet enjoy, as she wished,
- the sight and society of both.
-
- Marianne could speak HER happiness only by tears.
- Comparisons would occur--regrets would arise;--and her joy,
- though sincere as her love for her sister, was of a kind to
- give her neither spirits nor language.
-
- But Elinor--how are HER feelings to be described?--From
- the moment of learning that Lucy was married to another,
- that Edward was free, to the moment of his justifying
- the hopes which had so instantly followed, she was every
- thing by turns but tranquil. But when the second moment
- had passed, when she found every doubt, every solicitude
- removed, compared her situation with what so lately it
- had been,--saw him honourably released from his former
- engagement, saw him instantly profiting by the release,
- to address herself and declare an affection as tender,
- as constant as she had ever supposed it to be,--she
- was oppressed, she was overcome by her own felicity;--
- and happily disposed as is the human mind to be easily
- familiarized with any change for the better, it required
- several hours to give sedateness to her spirits, or any
- degree of tranquillity to her heart.
-
- Edward was now fixed at the cottage at least for
- a week;--for whatever other claims might be made on him,
- it was impossible that less than a week should be given
- up to the enjoyment of Elinor's company, or suffice
- to say half that was to be said of the past, the present,
- and the future;--for though a very few hours spent in
- the hard labor of incessant talking will despatch more
- subjects than can really be in common between any two
- rational creatures, yet with lovers it is different.
- Between THEM no subject is finished, no communication
- is even made, till it has been made at least twenty
- times over.
-
- Lucy's marriage, the unceasing and reasonable wonder
- among them all, formed of course one of the earliest
- discussions of the lovers;--and Elinor's particular knowledge
- of each party made it appear to her in every view, as one
- of the most extraordinary and unaccountable circumstances
- she had ever heard. How they could be thrown together,
- and by what attraction Robert could be drawn on to marry
- a girl, of whose beauty she had herself heard him speak
- without any admiration,--a girl too already engaged
- to his brother, and on whose account that brother had been
- thrown off by his family--it was beyond her comprehension
- to make out. To her own heart it was a delightful affair,
- to her imagination it was even a ridiculous one, but
- to her reason, her judgment, it was completely a puzzle.
-
- Edward could only attempt an explanation by supposing,
- that, perhaps, at first accidentally meeting, the vanity
- of the one had been so worked on by the flattery
- of the other, as to lead by degrees to all the rest.
- Elinor remembered what Robert had told her in Harley Street,
- of his opinion of what his own mediation in his brother's
- affairs might have done, if applied to in time.
- She repeated it to Edward.
-
- "THAT was exactly like Robert,"--was his immediate
- observation.--"And THAT," he presently added, "might
- perhaps be in HIS head when the acquaintance between
- them first began. And Lucy perhaps at first might
- think only of procuring his good offices in my favour.
- Other designs might afterward arise."
-
- How long it had been carrying on between them,
- however, he was equally at a loss with herself to make out;
- for at Oxford, where he had remained for choice ever since
- his quitting London, he had had no means of hearing of her
- but from herself, and her letters to the very last were
- neither less frequent, nor less affectionate than usual.
- Not the smallest suspicion, therefore, had ever occurred
- to prepare him for what followed;--and when at last it
- burst on him in a letter from Lucy herself, he had been
- for some time, he believed, half stupified between
- the wonder, the horror, and the joy of such a deliverance.
- He put the letter into Elinor's hands.
-
- "DEAR SIR,
-
- "Being very sure I have long lost your affections,
- I have thought myself at liberty to bestow my own
- on another, and have no doubt of being as happy with
- him as I once used to think I might be with you;
- but I scorn to accept a hand while the heart was
- another's. Sincerely wish you happy in your choice,
- and it shall not be my fault if we are not always
- good friends, as our near relationship now makes
- proper. I can safely say I owe you no ill-will,
- and am sure you will be too generous to do us any
- ill offices. Your brother has gained my affections
- entirely, and as we could not live without one
- another, we are just returned from the altar, and
- are now on our way to Dawlish for a few weeks, which
- place your dear brother has great curiosity to see,
- but thought I would first trouble you with these
- few lines, and shall always remain,
-
- "Your sincere well-wisher, friend, and sister,
- "LUCY FERRARS.
-
- "I have burnt all your letters, and will return
- your picture the first opportunity. Please to destroy
- my scrawls--but the ring with my hair you are very
- welcome to keep."
-
- Elinor read and returned it without any comment.
-
- "I will not ask your opinion of it as a composition,"
- said Edward.--"For worlds would not I have had a letter
- of hers seen by YOU in former days.--In a sister it
- is bad enough, but in a wife!--how I have blushed over
- the pages of her writing!--and I believe I may say that
- since the first half year of our foolish--business--this
- is the only letter I ever received from her, of which
- the substance made me any amends for the defect of the style."
-
- "However it may have come about," said Elinor,
- after a pause,--"they are certainly married. And your mother
- has brought on herself a most appropriate punishment.
- The independence she settled on Robert, through resentment
- against you, has put it in his power to make his own choice;
- and she has actually been bribing one son with a thousand
- a-year, to do the very deed which she disinherited the
- other for intending to do. She will hardly be less hurt,
- I suppose, by Robert's marrying Lucy, than she would have
- been by your marrying her."
-
- "She will be more hurt by it, for Robert always
- was her favourite.--She will be more hurt by it,
- and on the same principle will forgive him much sooner."
-
- In what state the affair stood at present between them,
- Edward knew not, for no communication with any of his family
- had yet been attempted by him. He had quitted Oxford
- within four and twenty hours after Lucy's letter arrived,
- and with only one object before him, the nearest road
- to Barton, had had no leisure to form any scheme of conduct,
- with which that road did not hold the most intimate connection.
- He could do nothing till he were assured of his fate with
- Miss Dashwood; and by his rapidity in seeking THAT fate,
- it is to be supposed, in spite of the jealousy with
- which he had once thought of Colonel Brandon, in spite
- of the modesty with which he rated his own deserts,
- and the politeness with which he talked of his doubts,
- he did not, upon the whole, expect a very cruel reception.
- It was his business, however, to say that he DID, and he
- said it very prettily. What he might say on the subject
- a twelvemonth after, must be referred to the imagination
- of husbands and wives.
-
- That Lucy had certainly meant to deceive, to go off
- with a flourish of malice against him in her message
- by Thomas, was perfectly clear to Elinor; and Edward himself,
- now thoroughly enlightened on her character, had no
- scruple in believing her capable of the utmost meanness
- of wanton ill-nature. Though his eyes had been long opened,
- even before his acquaintance with Elinor began, to her
- ignorance and a want of liberality in some of her opinions--
- they had been equally imputed, by him, to her want
- of education; and till her last letter reached him,
- he had always believed her to be a well-disposed,
- good-hearted girl, and thoroughly attached to himself.
- Nothing but such a persuasion could have prevented
- his putting an end to an engagement, which, long before
- the discovery of it laid him open to his mother's anger,
- had been a continual source of disquiet and regret to him.
-
- "I thought it my duty," said he, "independent of my feelings,
- to give her the option of continuing the engagement or not,
- when I was renounced by my mother, and stood to all
- appearance without a friend in the world to assist me.
- In such a situation as that, where there seemed nothing
- to tempt the avarice or the vanity of any living creature,
- how could I suppose, when she so earnestly, so warmly insisted
- on sharing my fate, whatever it might be, that any thing
- but the most disinterested affection was her inducement?
- And even now, I cannot comprehend on what motive she acted,
- or what fancied advantage it could be to her, to be
- fettered to a man for whom she had not the smallest regard,
- and who had only two thousand pounds in the world.
- She could not foresee that Colonel Brandon would give me a living."
-
- "No; but she might suppose that something would occur
- in your favour; that your own family might in time relent.
- And at any rate, she lost nothing by continuing the engagement,
- for she has proved that it fettered neither her inclination
- nor her actions. The connection was certainly a
- respectable one, and probably gained her consideration among
- her friends; and, if nothing more advantageous occurred,
- it would be better for her to marry YOU than be single."
-
- Edward was, of course, immediately convinced that
- nothing could have been more natural than Lucy's conduct,
- nor more self-evident than the motive of it.
-
- Elinor scolded him, harshly as ladies always scold
- the imprudence which compliments themselves, for having
- spent so much time with them at Norland, when he must
- have felt his own inconstancy.
-
- "Your behaviour was certainly very wrong," said she;
- "because--to say nothing of my own conviction, our relations
- were all led away by it to fancy and expect WHAT, as you
- were THEN situated, could never be."
-
- He could only plead an ignorance of his own heart,
- and a mistaken confidence in the force of his engagement.
-
- "I was simple enough to think, that because my FAITH
- was plighted to another, there could be no danger in my being
- with you; and that the consciousness of my engagement was
- to keep my heart as safe and sacred as my honour. I felt
- that I admired you, but I told myself it was only friendship;
- and till I began to make comparisons between yourself
- and Lucy, I did not know how far I was got. After that,
- I suppose, I WAS wrong in remaining so much in Sussex,
- and the arguments with which I reconciled myself to the
- expediency of it, were no better than these:--The danger
- is my own; I am doing no injury to anybody but myself."
-
- Elinor smiled, and shook her head.
-
- Edward heard with pleasure of Colonel Brandon's
- being expected at the Cottage, as he really wished
- not only to be better acquainted with him, but to have an
- opportunity of convincing him that he no longer resented
- his giving him the living of Delaford--"Which, at present,"
- said he, "after thanks so ungraciously delivered as mine
- were on the occasion, he must think I have never forgiven
- him for offering."
-
- NOW he felt astonished himself that he had never yet
- been to the place. But so little interest had be taken
- in the matter, that he owed all his knowledge of the house,
- garden, and glebe, extent of the parish, condition of
- the land, and rate of the tithes, to Elinor herself,
- who had heard so much of it from Colonel Brandon, and heard
- it with so much attention, as to be entirely mistress of the subject.
-
- One question after this only remained undecided,
- between them, one difficulty only was to be overcome.
- They were brought together by mutual affection,
- with the warmest approbation of their real friends;
- their intimate knowledge of each other seemed to make
- their happiness certain--and they only wanted something
- to live upon. Edward had two thousand pounds, and Elinor
- one, which, with Delaford living, was all that they could
- call their own; for it was impossible that Mrs. Dashwood
- should advance anything; and they were neither of them
- quite enough in love to think that three hundred and fifty
- pounds a-year would supply them with the comforts of life.
-
- Edward was not entirely without hopes of some
- favourable change in his mother towards him; and on THAT
- he rested for the residue of their income. But Elinor
- had no such dependence; for since Edward would still
- be unable to marry Miss Morton, and his chusing herself
- had been spoken of in Mrs. Ferrars's flattering language
- as only a lesser evil than his chusing Lucy Steele,
- she feared that Robert's offence would serve no other
- purpose than to enrich Fanny.
-
- About four days after Edward's arrival Colonel
- Brandon appeared, to complete Mrs. Dashwood's satisfaction,
- and to give her the dignity of having, for the first time
- since her living at Barton, more company with her than
- her house would hold. Edward was allowed to retain the
- privilege of first comer, and Colonel Brandon therefore
- walked every night to his old quarters at the Park;
- from whence he usually returned in the morning, early enough
- to interrupt the lovers' first tete-a-tete before breakfast.
-
- A three weeks' residence at Delaford, where,
- in his evening hours at least, he had little to do
- but to calculate the disproportion between thirty-six
- and seventeen, brought him to Barton in a temper of mind
- which needed all the improvement in Marianne's looks,
- all the kindness of her welcome, and all the encouragement
- of her mother's language, to make it cheerful.
- Among such friends, however, and such flattery, he did revive.
- No rumour of Lucy's marriage had yet reached him:--he knew
- nothing of what had passed; and the first hours of his
- visit were consequently spent in hearing and in wondering.
- Every thing was explained to him by Mrs. Dashwood,
- and he found fresh reason to rejoice in what he had done
- for Mr. Ferrars, since eventually it promoted the interest of Elinor.
-
- It would be needless to say, that the gentlemen advanced
- in the good opinion of each other, as they advanced in each
- other's acquaintance, for it could not be otherwise.
- Their resemblance in good principles and good sense,
- in disposition and manner of thinking, would probably
- have been sufficient to unite them in friendship,
- without any other attraction; but their being in love
- with two sisters, and two sisters fond of each other,
- made that mutual regard inevitable and immediate,
- which might otherwise have waited the effect of time
- and judgment.
-
- The letters from town, which a few days before would
- have made every nerve in Elinor's body thrill with transport,
- now arrived to be read with less emotion that mirth.
- Mrs. Jennings wrote to tell the wonderful tale, to vent her
- honest indignation against the jilting girl, and pour forth
- her compassion towards poor Mr. Edward, who, she was sure,
- had quite doted upon the worthless hussy, and was now,
- by all accounts, almost broken-hearted, at Oxford.--
- "I do think," she continued, "nothing was ever carried
- on so sly; for it was but two days before Lucy called
- and sat a couple of hours with me. Not a soul suspected
- anything of the matter, not even Nancy, who, poor soul!
- came crying to me the day after, in a great fright
- for fear of Mrs. Ferrars, as well as not knowing how to
- get to Plymouth; for Lucy it seems borrowed all her
- money before she went off to be married, on purpose
- we suppose to make a show with, and poor Nancy had not
- seven shillings in the world;--so I was very glad to give
- her five guineas to take her down to Exeter, where she
- thinks of staying three or four weeks with Mrs. Burgess,
- in hopes, as I tell her, to fall in with the Doctor again.
- And I must say that Lucy's crossness not to take them
- along with them in the chaise is worse than all.
- Poor Mr. Edward! I cannot get him out of my head, but you
- must send for him to Barton, and Miss Marianne must try to
- comfort him."
-
- Mr. Dashwood's strains were more solemn.
- Mrs. Ferrars was the most unfortunate of women--poor
- Fanny had suffered agonies of sensibility--and he
- considered the existence of each, under such a blow,
- with grateful wonder. Robert's offence was unpardonable,
- but Lucy's was infinitely worse. Neither of them were
- ever again to be mentioned to Mrs. Ferrars; and even,
- if she might hereafter be induced to forgive her son,
- his wife should never be acknowledged as her daughter,
- nor be permitted to appear in her presence. The secrecy
- with which everything had been carried on between them,
- was rationally treated as enormously heightening
- the crime, because, had any suspicion of it occurred
- to the others, proper measures would have been taken
- to prevent the marriage; and he called on Elinor to join
- with him in regretting that Lucy's engagement with Edward
- had not rather been fulfilled, than that she should thus
- be the means of spreading misery farther in the family.--
- He thus continued:
-
- "Mrs. Ferrars has never yet mentioned Edward's name,
- which does not surprise us; but, to our great astonishment,
- not a line has been received from him on the occasion.
- Perhaps, however, he is kept silent by his fear of offending,
- and I shall, therefore, give him a hint, by a line
- to Oxford, that his sister and I both think a letter
- of proper submission from him, addressed perhaps to Fanny,
- and by her shewn to her mother, might not be taken amiss;
- for we all know the tenderness of Mrs. Ferrars's heart,
- and that she wishes for nothing so much as to be on good terms
- with her children."
-
- This paragraph was of some importance to the
- prospects and conduct of Edward. It determined him
- to attempt a reconciliation, though not exactly
- in the manner pointed out by their brother and sister.
-
- "A letter of proper submission!" repeated he;
- "would they have me beg my mother's pardon for Robert's
- ingratitude to HER, and breach of honour to ME?--I can
- make no submission--I am grown neither humble nor
- penitent by what has passed.--I am grown very happy;
- but that would not interest.--I know of no submission
- that IS proper for me to make."
-
- "You may certainly ask to be forgiven," said Elinor,
- "because you have offended;--and I should think you
- might NOW venture so far as to profess some concern
- for having ever formed the engagement which drew on you
- your mother's anger."
-
- He agreed that he might.
-
- "And when she has forgiven you, perhaps a little humility
- may be convenient while acknowledging a second engagement,
- almost as imprudent in HER eyes as the first."
-
- He had nothing to urge against it, but still
- resisted the idea of a letter of proper submission;
- and therefore, to make it easier to him, as he declared
- a much greater willingness to make mean concessions
- by word of mouth than on paper, it was resolved that,
- instead of writing to Fanny, he should go to London,
- and personally intreat her good offices in his favour.--
- "And if they really DO interest themselves," said Marianne,
- in her new character of candour, "in bringing about
- a reconciliation, I shall think that even John and Fanny
- are not entirely without merit."
-
- After a visit on Colonel Brandon's side of only three
- or four days, the two gentlemen quitted Barton together.--
- They were to go immediately to Delaford, that Edward
- might have some personal knowledge of his future home,
- and assist his patron and friend in deciding on what
- improvements were needed to it; and from thence,
- after staying there a couple of nights, he was to proceed
- on his journey to town.
-
-
-
- CHAPTER 50
-
-
- After a proper resistance on the part of Mrs. Ferrars,
- just so violent and so steady as to preserve her from that
- reproach which she always seemed fearful of incurring,
- the reproach of being too amiable, Edward was admitted
- to her presence, and pronounced to be again her son.
-
- Her family had of late been exceedingly fluctuating.
- For many years of her life she had had two sons;
- but the crime and annihilation of Edward a few weeks ago,
- had robbed her of one; the similar annihilation of Robert
- had left her for a fortnight without any; and now,
- by the resuscitation of Edward, she had one again.
-
- In spite of his being allowed once more to live,
- however, he did not feel the continuance of his existence
- secure, till he had revealed his present engagement;
- for the publication of that circumstance, he feared,
- might give a sudden turn to his constitution, and carry
- him off as rapidly as before. With apprehensive caution
- therefore it was revealed, and he was listened to with
- unexpected calmness. Mrs. Ferrars at first reasonably
- endeavoured to dissuade him from marrying Miss Dashwood,
- by every argument in her power;--told him, that in Miss Morton
- he would have a woman of higher rank and larger fortune;--
- and enforced the assertion, by observing that Miss Morton
- was the daughter of a nobleman with thirty thousand pounds,
- while Miss Dashwood was only the daughter of a private
- gentleman with no more than THREE; but when she found that,
- though perfectly admitting the truth of her representation,
- he was by no means inclined to be guided by it,
- she judged it wisest, from the experience of the past,
- to submit--and therefore, after such an ungracious delay
- as she owed to her own dignity, and as served to prevent
- every suspicion of good-will, she issued her decree
- of consent to the marriage of Edward and Elinor.
-
- What she would engage to do towards augmenting
- their income was next to be considered; and here it
- plainly appeared, that though Edward was now her only son,
- he was by no means her eldest; for while Robert was
- inevitably endowed with a thousand pounds a-year,
- not the smallest objection was made against Edward's taking
- orders for the sake of two hundred and fifty at the utmost;
- nor was anything promised either for the present or in future,
- beyond the ten thousand pounds, which had been given with Fanny.
-
- It was as much, however, as was desired,
- and more than was expected, by Edward and Elinor;
- and Mrs. Ferrars herself, by her shuffling excuses,
- seemed the only person surprised at her not giving more.
-
- With an income quite sufficient to their wants
- thus secured to them, they had nothing to wait for
- after Edward was in possession of the living, but the
- readiness of the house, to which Colonel Brandon,
- with an eager desire for the accommodation of Elinor,
- was making considerable improvements; and after waiting
- some time for their completion, after experiencing,
- as usual, a thousand disappointments and delays
- from the unaccountable dilatoriness of the workmen, Elinor,
- as usual, broke through the first positive resolution
- of not marrying till every thing was ready, and the
- ceremony took place in Barton church early in the autumn.
-
- The first month after their marriage was spent
- with their friend at the Mansion-house; from whence
- they could superintend the progress of the Parsonage,
- and direct every thing as they liked on the spot;--
- could chuse papers, project shrubberies, and invent a sweep.
- Mrs. Jennings's prophecies, though rather jumbled together,
- were chiefly fulfilled; for she was able to visit Edward
- and his wife in their Parsonage by Michaelmas, and she
- found in Elinor and her husband, as she really believed,
- one of the happiest couples in the world. They had
- in fact nothing to wish for, but the marriage of Colonel
- Brandon and Marianne, and rather better pasturage for
- their cows.
-
- They were visited on their first settling by almost
- all their relations and friends. Mrs. Ferrars came
- to inspect the happiness which she was almost ashamed
- of having authorised; and even the Dashwoods were at
- the expense of a journey from Sussex to do them honour.
-
- "I will not say that I am disappointed, my dear sister,"
- said John, as they were walking together one morning before
- the gates of Delaford House, "THAT would be saying too much,
- for certainly you have been one of the most fortunate young
- women in the world, as it is. But, I confess, it would
- give me great pleasure to call Colonel Brandon brother.
- His property here, his place, his house, every thing is in
- such respectable and excellent condition!--and his woods!--I
- have not seen such timber any where in Dorsetshire, as there
- is now standing in Delaford Hanger!--And though, perhaps,
- Marianne may not seem exactly the person to attract him--
- yet I think it would altogether be advisable for you to
- have them now frequently staying with you, for as Colonel
- Brandon seems a great deal at home, nobody can tell what
- may happen--for, when people are much thrown together,
- and see little of anybody else--and it will always be
- in your power to set her off to advantage, and so forth;--
- in short, you may as well give her a chance--You understand me."--
-
- But though Mrs. Ferrars DID come to see them, and always
- treated them with the make-believe of decent affection,
- they were never insulted by her real favour and preference.
- THAT was due to the folly of Robert, and the cunning
- of his wife; and it was earned by them before many months
- had passed away. The selfish sagacity of the latter,
- which had at first drawn Robert into the scrape,
- was the principal instrument of his deliverance from it;
- for her respectful humility, assiduous attentions,
- and endless flatteries, as soon as the smallest opening
- was given for their exercise, reconciled Mrs. Ferrars
- to his choice, and re-established him completely in
- her favour.
-
- The whole of Lucy's behaviour in the affair,
- and the prosperity which crowned it, therefore, may be held
- forth as a most encouraging instance of what an earnest,
- an unceasing attention to self-interest, however its progress
- may be apparently obstructed, will do in securing every
- advantage of fortune, with no other sacrifice than that of time
- and conscience. When Robert first sought her acquaintance,
- and privately visited her in Bartlett's Buildings,
- it was only with the view imputed to him by his brother.
- He merely meant to persuade her to give up the engagement;
- and as there could be nothing to overcome but the affection
- of both, he naturally expected that one or two interviews
- would settle the matter. In that point, however,
- and that only, he erred;--for though Lucy soon gave him
- hopes that his eloquence would convince her in TIME,
- another visit, another conversation, was always wanted
- to produce this conviction. Some doubts always lingered
- in her mind when they parted, which could only be
- removed by another half hour's discourse with himself.
- His attendance was by this means secured, and the rest
- followed in course. Instead of talking of Edward,
- they came gradually to talk only of Robert,--a subject
- on which he had always more to say than on any other,
- and in which she soon betrayed an interest even equal
- to his own; and in short, it became speedily evident
- to both, that he had entirely supplanted his brother.
- He was proud of his conquest, proud of tricking Edward,
- and very proud of marrying privately without his
- mother's consent. What immediately followed is known.
- They passed some months in great happiness at Dawlish;
- for she had many relations and old acquaintances to
- cut--and he drew several plans for magnificent cottages;--
- and from thence returning to town, procured the forgiveness
- of Mrs. Ferrars, by the simple expedient of asking it,
- which, at Lucy's instigation, was adopted. The forgiveness,
- at first, indeed, as was reasonable, comprehended only Robert;
- and Lucy, who had owed his mother no duty and therefore
- could have transgressed none, still remained some weeks
- longer unpardoned. But perseverance in humility of conduct
- and messages, in self-condemnation for Robert's offence,
- and gratitude for the unkindness she was treated with,
- procured her in time the haughty notice which overcame
- her by its graciousness, and led soon afterwards, by rapid
- degrees, to the highest state of affection and influence.
- Lucy became as necessary to Mrs. Ferrars, as either Robert
- or Fanny; and while Edward was never cordially forgiven
- for having once intended to marry her, and Elinor,
- though superior to her in fortune and birth, was spoken
- of as an intruder, SHE was in every thing considered,
- and always openly acknowledged, to be a favourite child.
- They settled in town, received very liberal assistance
- from Mrs. Ferrars, were on the best terms imaginable
- with the Dashwoods; and setting aside the jealousies
- and ill-will continually subsisting between Fanny and Lucy,
- in which their husbands of course took a part, as well
- as the frequent domestic disagreements between Robert and
- Lucy themselves, nothing could exceed the harmony in which
- they all lived together.
-
- What Edward had done to forfeit the right of eldest
- son, might have puzzled many people to find out; and what
- Robert had done to succeed to it, might have puzzled them
- still more. It was an arrangement, however, justified in
- its effects, if not in its cause; for nothing ever
- appeared in Robert's style of living or of talking to give
- a suspicion of his regretting the extent of his income,
- as either leaving his brother too little, or bringing
- himself too much;--and if Edward might be judged from
- the ready discharge of his duties in every particular,
- from an increasing attachment to his wife and his home,
- and from the regular cheerfulness of his spirits,
- he might be supposed no less contented with his lot,
- no less free from every wish of an exchange.
-
- Elinor's marriage divided her as little from her
- family as could well be contrived, without rendering
- the cottage at Barton entirely useless, for her mother
- and sisters spent much more than half their time with her.
- Mrs. Dashwood was acting on motives of policy as well
- as pleasure in the frequency of her visits at Delaford;
- for her wish of bringing Marianne and Colonel Brandon together
- was hardly less earnest, though rather more liberal than
- what John had expressed. It was now her darling object.
- Precious as was the company of her daughter to her,
- she desired nothing so much as to give up its constant
- enjoyment to her valued friend; and to see Marianne settled at
- the mansion-house was equally the wish of Edward and Elinor.
- They each felt his sorrows, and their own obligations,
- and Marianne, by general consent, was to be the reward
- of all.
-
- With such a confederacy against her--with a knowledge
- so intimate of his goodness--with a conviction of his fond
- attachment to herself, which at last, though long after it
- was observable to everybody else--burst on her--what could she do?
-
- Marianne Dashwood was born to an extraordinary fate.
- She was born to discover the falsehood of her own opinions,
- and to counteract, by her conduct, her most favourite maxims.
- She was born to overcome an affection formed so late
- in life as at seventeen, and with no sentiment
- superior to strong esteem and lively friendship,
- voluntarily to give her hand to another!--and THAT other,
- a man who had suffered no less than herself under the
- event of a former attachment, whom, two years before,
- she had considered too old to be married,--and who still
- sought the constitutional safeguard of a flannel waistcoat!
-
- But so it was. Instead of falling a sacrifice
- to an irresistible passion, as once she had fondly
- flattered herself with expecting,--instead of remaining
- even for ever with her mother, and finding her only
- pleasures in retirement and study, as afterwards in her
- more calm and sober judgment she had determined on,--
- she found herself at nineteen, submitting to new attachments,
- entering on new duties, placed in a new home, a wife,
- the mistress of a family, and the patroness of a village.
-
- Colonel Brandon was now as happy, as all those who best
- loved him, believed he deserved to be;--in Marianne he
- was consoled for every past affliction;--her regard and her
- society restored his mind to animation, and his spirits
- to cheerfulness; and that Marianne found her own happiness
- in forming his, was equally the persuasion and delight
- of each observing friend. Marianne could never love
- by halves; and her whole heart became, in time, as much
- devoted to her husband, as it had once been to Willoughby.
-
- Willoughby could not hear of her marriage without
- a pang; and his punishment was soon afterwards complete
- in the voluntary forgiveness of Mrs. Smith, who, by stating
- his marriage with a woman of character, as the source
- of her clemency, gave him reason for believing that had he
- behaved with honour towards Marianne, he might at once have
- been happy and rich. That his repentance of misconduct,
- which thus brought its own punishment, was sincere,
- need not be doubted;--nor that he long thought of Colonel
- Brandon with envy, and of Marianne with regret. But that
- he was for ever inconsolable, that he fled from society,
- or contracted an habitual gloom of temper, or died of a
- broken heart, must not be depended on--for he did neither.
- He lived to exert, and frequently to enjoy himself.
- His wife was not always out of humour, nor his home
- always uncomfortable; and in his breed of horses and dogs,
- and in sporting of every kind, he found no inconsiderable
- degree of domestic felicity.
-
- For Marianne, however--in spite of his incivility
- in surviving her loss--he always retained that decided
- regard which interested him in every thing that befell her,
- and made her his secret standard of perfection in woman;--
- and many a rising beauty would be slighted by him in
- after-days as bearing no comparison with Mrs. Brandon.
-
- Mrs. Dashwood was prudent enough to remain at the cottage,
- without attempting a removal to Delaford; and fortunately for
- Sir John and Mrs. Jennings, when Marianne was taken from them,
- Margaret had reached an age highly suitable for dancing,
- and not very ineligible for being supposed to have a lover.
-
- Between Barton and Delaford, there was that constant
- communication which strong family affection would
- naturally dictate;--and among the merits and the happiness
- of Elinor and Marianne, let it not be ranked as the least
- considerable, that though sisters, and living almost within
- sight of each other, they could live without disagreement
- between themselves, or producing coolness between their husbands.
-
- THE END
-
-
-